Selected quad for the lemma: mercy_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
mercy_n heart_n keep_v minister_n 2,849 5 9.2045 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A30238 An expository comment, doctrinal, controversal, and practical upon the whole first chapter to the second epistle of St. Paul to the Corinthians by Anthony Burgesse ... Burgess, Anthony, d. 1664. 1661 (1661) Wing B5647; ESTC R19585 945,529 736

There are 53 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

comfortable_a and_o thankful_a thought_n which_o shall_v constant_o lodge_v in_o our_o soul_n and_o first_o to_o this_o duty_n of_o blessing_n of_o god_n there_o be_v require_v as_o the_o foundation_n stone_n a_o deep_a sense_n of_o our_o own_o unworthiness_n of_o the_o least_o mercy_n that_o god_n bestow_v upon_o we_o that_o be_v excellent_a of_o jacob_n gen._n 32._o 10._o i_o be_o less_o than_o all_o thy_o mercy_n a_o man_n that_o will_v shoot_v his_o arrow_n high_a draw_v it_o backward_o first_o the_o low_a we_o be_v in_o our_o own_o eye_n the_o more_o unworthy_a in_o our_o own_o thought_n then_o a_o very_a crumb_n of_o bread_n a_o very_a drop_n of_o water_n will_v be_v acknowledge_v a_o great_a mercy_n arminian_n popish_a and_o socinian_n doctrine_n do_v all_o hinder_v a_o man_n in_o his_o thankfulness_n because_o they_o do_v not_o in_o a_o scripture_n way_n level_v the_o mountain_n of_o our_o heart_n they_o leave_v something_o of_o our_o own_o still_o that_o we_o must_v secret_o uphold_v ourselves_o with_o when_o god_n give_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n canaan_n deut._n 9_o 4._o how_o zealous_o do_v moses_n endeavour_v to_o take_v they_o off_o from_o their_o own_o righteousness_n they_o must_v take_v heed_n that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o least_o thought_n in_o their_o heart_n about_o their_o righteousness_n oh_o then_o consider_v what_o be_v that_o locust_n and_o caterpillar_n which_o devour_v all_o the_o sweet_a fruit_n of_o thy_o praise_n and_o thy_o joy_n in_o god_n be_v it_o not_o want_v of_o a_o true_a consideration_n how_o unworthy_a thou_o be_v will_v thou_o not_o call_v thyself_o beast_n for_o murmur_a and_o grieve_v under_o any_o burden_n god_n lay_v upon_o thou_o if_o thou_o have_v a_o feeling_n of_o thy_o meanness_n and_o lowliness_n those_o therefore_o who_o be_v constant_o in_o a_o tender_a feeling_n and_o apprehension_n of_o their_o own_o unworthiness_n if_o god_n give_v they_o the_o least_o temporal_a mercy_n but_o especial_o if_o they_o have_v a_o drop_n of_o any_o spiritual_a mercy_n that_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n though_o but_o in_o glimpse_n shine_v upon_o they_o they_o cry_v out_o who_o be_o i_o lord_n and_o what_o be_o i_o that_o thou_o shall_v visit_v so_o unworthy_a a_o wretch_n second_o he_o must_v not_o only_o be_v sensible_a of_o his_o unworthiness_n who_o will_v affectionate_o bless_v god_n at_o all_o time_n but_o he_o must_v also_o consider_v what_o wrath_n and_o vengeance_n he_o do_v deserve_v oh_o this_o will_v be_v like_o fire_n in_o thy_o bosom_n this_o will_v quick_o cast_v out_o all_o those_o troublesome_a and_o disquiet_a thought_n what_o oh_o my_o soul_n be_v thou_o disquiet_v for_o want_n of_o this_o or_o that_o what_o be_v thy_o own_o but_o hell_n and_o eternal_a torment_n be_v any_o soul-mercy_n be_v any_o body-mercy_n thy_o own_o can_v thou_o claim_v a_o right_n to_o they_o no_o the_o law_n curse_v thou_o because_o thou_o do_v not_o continue_v in_o all_o thing_n command_v so_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v curse_v in_o soul_n in_o body_n at_o home_o and_o abroad_o nothing_o but_o temporal_a spiritual_a and_o eternal_a curse_n may_v compass_v thou_o about_o now_o then_o if_o when_o god_n may_v thus_o curse_v and_o damn_v thou_o he_o do_v bless_v and_o pardon_v thou_o what_o joyful_a song_n shall_v this_o fill_v thy_o heart_n and_o mouth_n with_o i_o have_v deserve_v death_n but_o behold_v life_n my_o merit_n be_v hell_n and_o damnation_n but_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v grace_n and_o peace_n as_o a_o malefactor_n when_o thou_o may_v just_o expect_v punishment_n behold_v god_n do_v to_o thou_o as_o to_o joseph_n who_o under_o expectation_n of_o punishment_n be_v raise_v up_o to_o the_o high_a honour_n in_o the_o king_n court_n oh_o then_o awe_z thy_o soul_n say_v why_o be_o i_o so_o foolish_a and_o bru●●●sh_a i_o be_o not_o in_o hell_n i_o be_o not_o howl_v in_o those_o eternal_a flame_n which_o i_o may_v not_o be_v keep_v a_o moment_n from_o and_o yet_o how_o impatient_a and_o unquiet_a be_v my_o heart_n a_o full_a persuasion_n then_o of_o what_o we_o deserve_v will_v provoke_v the_o soul_n to_o a_o cordial_a blessing_n of_o god_n for_o every_o mercy_n three_o there_o be_v require_v the_o regeneration_n and_o renovation_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n as_o a_o wicked_a man_n can_v pray_v to_o god_n so_o neither_o can_v he_o praise_v god_n therefore_o though_o natural_a man_n may_v have_v it_o often_o in_o their_o mouth_n they_o bless_v their_o good_a god_n and_o i_o praise_v my_o god_n yet_o to_o praise_n god_n require_v a_o principle_n of_o grace_n within_o a_o supernatural_a root_n as_o well_o as_o to_o pray_v to_o god_n indeed_o they_o may_v external_o sing_v psalm_n and_o give_v praise_n to_o god_n even_o as_o they_o pray_v but_o all_o this_o while_n there_o be_v nothing_o at_o the_o root_n all_o be_v dead_a within_o psal_n 147._o 1._o praise_n be_v comely_a for_o the_o upright_a it_o be_v a_o comely_a suitable_a thing_n for_o a_o man_n of_o a_o upright_a and_o gracious_a heart_n to_o bless_v god_n but_o for_o a_o carnal_a profane_a man_n it_o be_v as_o unseemly_a as_o a_o pearl_n on_o the_o swine_n nose_n god_n be_v dishonour_v and_o not_o please_v oh_o then_o that_o this_o may_v awaken_v every_o natural_a man_n thou_o can_v neither_o pray_v to_o god_n or_o praise_v he_o thou_o can_v neither_o receive_v gift_n from_o god_n aright_o or_o return_v praise_n to_o he_o aright_o so_o that_o this_o must_v be_v look_v to_o as_o the_o principal_a and_o chief_a of_o all_o have_v god_n put_v his_o own_o image_n into_o i_o have_v god_n bestow_v the_o life_n of_o grace_n upon_o i_o then_o praise_n be_v seemly_a and_o comely_a for_o i_o even_o among_o man_n the_o rule_n be_v laudari_fw-la à_fw-la laudat_fw-la be_v laudabile_fw-la est_fw-la four_o to_o bless_v god_n and_o praise_v he_o there_o be_v require_v a_o heavenly_a raise_v frame_n of_o soul_n for_o though_o the_o principle_n of_o regeneration_n be_v the_o foundation_n in_o every_o one_o whereby_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o bless_v god_n yet_o that_o be_v more_o remote_a and_o habitual_o only_a hence_o it_o be_v that_o many_o of_o god_n child_n though_o in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n yet_o be_v not_o in_o a_o praise_n thankful_a temper_n they_o be_v as_o so_o many_o clod_n of_o earth_n they_o be_v not_o affect_v with_o god_n goodness_n their_o soul_n be_v not_o enlarge_v and_o therefore_o they_o mourn_v because_o they_o be_v such_o block_n and_o lump_n of_o earth_n therefore_o beside_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o regeneration_n there_o must_v be_v proxim_n and_o immediate_a disposition_n which_o be_v as_o the_o whet_n of_o the_o tool_n like_o the_o cock_n stir_v of_o himself_o and_o clap_v of_o his_o wing_n before_o he_o crow_v and_o of_o all_o disposition_n a_o heavenly_a heart_n be_v the_o most_o excellent_a why_o be_v it_o that_o in_o heaven_n the_o glorify_a saint_n do_v spend_v all_o eternity_n in_o blessing_n and_o glorify_v of_o god_n and_o be_v never_o weary_a of_o it_o be_v it_o not_o because_o all_o be_v make_v perfect_o heavenly_a within_o they_o if_o the_o earth_n though_o a_o dull_a and_o heavy_a element_n be_v at_o last_o transmute_v into_o air_n or_o fire_n it_o lose_v its_o former_a gravity_n and_o dulness_n and_o ascend_v upward_o thus_o the_o soul_n when_o free_v from_o the_o clog_n and_o burden_n of_o the_o earth_n do_v with_o more_o ease_n and_o speed_n lift_v up_o itself_o too_o god_n the_o lark_n all_o the_o while_o she_o sit_v on_o the_o ground_n scarce_o sing_v but_o when_o she_o rise_v from_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o high_a and_o high_a still_o she_o fly_v the_o more_o sweet_o and_o earnest_o do_v she_o sing_v thus_o it_o be_v necessary_a if_o thou_o will_v real_o and_o daily_o bless_v and_o praise_n god_n then_o raise_v thyself_o above_o the_o earth_n the_o near_a to_o heaven_n thy_o heart_n come_v the_o sweet_a will_v thy_o meditation_n be_v the_o more_o joyful_a will_v thy_o thought_n be_v hence_o five_o joy_n and_o gladness_n of_o heart_n be_v require_v to_o bless_v god_n the_o psalmist_n often_o call_v to_o sing_v with_o joy_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v any_o man_n merry_a let_v he_o sing_v psalm_n jam._n 5._o 13._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o say_v come_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o heart_n which_o be_v fill_v with_o grief_n and_o sorrow_n be_v in_o no_o disposition_n to_o bless_v god_n as_o the_o string_n of_o musical_a instrument_n while_o wet_a and_o moist_a be_v not_o prepare_v to_o make_v any_o melodious_a sound_n to_o bless_v god_n with_o a_o heavy_a heart_n to_o praise_n god_n with_o a_o trouble_a disquiet_v soul_n be_v to_o contradict_v with_o our_o heart_n what_o we_o say_v with_o our_o mouth_n consider_v then_o that_o
though_o it_o be_v thy_o duty_n to_o humble_v thyself_o for_o sin_n to_o confess_v and_o bewail_v thy_o iniquity_n yet_o it_o be_v also_o a_o duty_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n always_o and_o till_o the_o heart_n be_v fit_v by_o this_o joy_n thou_o can_v nor_o bless_v god_n with_o that_o hearty_a affection_n as_o thou_o ought_v to_o do_v psal_n 103._o david_n say_v bless_v the_o lord_n o_o my_o soul_n and_o all_o within_o thou_o praise_v his_o holy_a name_n all_o within_o thou_o you_o see_v to_o praise_n god_n be_v heart-work_n as_o well_o as_o lip-work_n all_o within_o we_o must_v move_v and_o be_v affect_v thy_o heart_n can_v boil_v over_o as_o the_o psalmist_n sometime_o express_v it_o unless_o this_o fire_n of_o joy_n do_v inflame_v it_o oh_o then_o know_v that_o a_o grieve_v disquiet_v soul_n can_v bless_v god_n it_o hinder_v you_o from_o that_o duty_n which_o the_o apostle_n press_v col._n 3._o 16._o admonish_v one_o another_o in_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n sing_v with_o grace_n in_o your_o heart_n what_o a_o heaven_n be_v such_o a_o heart_n where_o there_o be_v these_o spiritual_a hymn_n and_o psalm_n but_o alas_o how_o often_o be_v thy_o heart_n like_o a_o howl_a wilderness_n where_o the_o cry_n and_o doleful_a sound_n of_o unbelieving_a and_o distrustful_a fear_n do_v torment_v thou_o six_o to_o bless_v god_n there_o be_v require_v faith_n and_o a_o rest_v of_o the_o soul_n upon_o god_n as_o a_o reconcile_a father_n alas_o can_v the_o damn_a in_o hell_n bless_v god_n can_v cain_n or_o judas_n bless_v god_n by_o no_o mean_n because_o there_o be_v no_o faith_n there_o be_v no_o rest_v upon_o god_n as_o a_o father_n hence_o you_o see_v the_o apostle_n add_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o father_n of_o all_o mercy_n to_o curse_a and_o condemn_v sinner_n god_n be_v not_o a_o father_n of_o mercy_n but_o of_o vengeance_n and_o fury_n a_o god_n of_o dreadful_a judgement_n who_o be_v say_v to_o be_v angry_a with_o the_o wicked_a all_o the_o day_n long_o hence_o david_n do_v so_o often_o in_o the_o psalm_n exercise_v those_o appropriate_a and_o apply_v act_n of_o faith_n my_o god_n and_o my_o tower_n my_o strong_a help_n and_o defence_n it_o be_v his_o faith_n that_o make_v he_o so_o thankful_a for_o what_o be_v it_o to_o hear_v of_o christ_n and_o all_o spiritual_a mercy_n by_o he_o if_o faith_n do_v not_o apply_v they_o and_o make_v they_o my_o own_o and_o then_o we_o be_v stir_v up_o to_o give_v god_n thanks_o for_o they_o insomuch_o that_o faith_n have_v the_o great_a influence_n into_o our_o thankfulness_n seven_o faith_n of_o adherence_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o make_v the_o heart_n so_o thorough_o and_o affectionate_o thankful_a as_o it_o shall_v be_v unless_o also_o there_o be_v as_o some_o call_v it_o faith_n of_o evidence_n or_o a_o good_a and_o true_a persuasion_n that_o god_n be_v our_o god_n it_o be_v the_o reflect_a act_n of_o the_o soul_n whereby_o it_o know_v and_o be_v assure_v that_o god_n have_v pardon_v my_o sin_n and_o have_v forgive_v my_o iniquity_n that_o be_v like_o oil_n to_o the_o lamp_n of_o this_o duty_n david_n in_o some_o psalm_n depend_v upon_o god_n and_o so_o many_o time_n the_o choice_a of_o god_n servant_n they_o be_v support_v to_o rest_n on_o he_o to_o build_v their_o hope_n on_o christ_n but_o then_o want_v this_o assurance_n not_o feel_v this_o love_n of_o god_n shed_v abroad_o in_o their_o soul_n hence_o they_o be_v not_o fervent_a and_o zealous_a in_o these_o duty_n of_o blessing_n and_o thanksgiving_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v you_o not_o see_v many_o of_o god_n people_n more_o forward_o to_o duty_n of_o humiliation_n and_o mourning_n more_o attend_v to_o self-debasement_n and_o self-abhorrency_a than_o they_o be_v to_o faith_n joy_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n the_o one_o they_o be_v constant_o in_o the_o other_o unless_o provoke_v and_o force_v as_o it_o be_v they_o seldom_o accomplish_v now_o this_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v so_o we_o be_v to_o rejoice_v as_o well_o as_o tremble_v we_o be_v to_o put_v both_o together_o we_o be_v to_o bless_v god_n for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o confess_v sin_n we_o be_v to_o rejoice_v in_o give_v of_o thanks_o as_o well_o as_o to_o humble_v our_o soul_n in_o acknowledge_v of_o our_o sinfulness_n thou_o often_o say_v lord_n pity_v i_o lord_n show_v mercy_n to_o i_o but_o how_o seldom_o do_v thou_o say_v o_o lord_n i_o bless_v thou_o for_o thy_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o my_o heart_n have_v be_v full_a of_o sorrow_n for_o sin_n and_o now_o it_o be_v full_a of_o joy_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o it_o i_o have_v pray_v that_o my_o corruption_n may_v be_v subdue_v and_o i_o bless_v god_n that_o prayer_n be_v gracious_o answer_v if_o you_o win_v a_o mercy_n by_o prayer_n and_o do_v not_o wear_v it_o by_o praise_n you_o great_o offend_v god_n serm._n xxx_o of_o praise_v god_n and_o that_o for_o all_o but_o especial_o for_o spiritual_a mercy_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 3_o bless_a be_v god_n even_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n from_o the_o method_n that_o paul_n use_v here_o and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o most_o of_o his_o other_o epistle_n we_o have_v observe_v the_o duty_n that_o lie_v upon_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o be_v careful_a and_o conscientious_a in_o this_o duty_n of_o blessing_n and_o praise_v of_o god_n which_o be_v as_o the_o legal_a ointment_n for_o the_o highpriest_n compound_v of_o choice_n and_o sweet_a ingredient_n it_o be_v a_o angelical_a work_n to_o bless_v god_n there_o remain_v further_a particular_n that_o be_v constituent_a of_o this_o comfortable_a and_o profitable_a duty_n as_o first_o the_o heart_n that_o be_v due_o fit_v to_o praise_n god_n though_o it_o be_v thankful_a for_o every_o mercy_n even_o the_o least_o mercy_n yet_o it_o keep_v a_o order_n in_o its_o thanksgiving_n according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o its_o object_n so_o that_o it_o praise_v god_n chief_o and_o principal_o for_o spiritual_a mercy_n and_o then_o secondary_o for_o temporal_a mercy_n and_o this_o argue_v the_o difficulty_n of_o this_o duty_n and_o that_o also_o only_a the_o regenerate_a and_o spiritual_a man_n can_v in_o a_o scripture-way_n bless_v god_n for_o he_o only_o do_v prefer_v heavenly_a thing_n above_o earthly_a when_o the_o psalmist_n have_v speak_v of_o outward_a mercy_n to_o a_o people_n psal_n 144._o 12_o 13_o 15._o great_a mercy_n in_o son_n and_o daughter_n rich_a abundance_n and_o plenty_n he_o correct_v all_o at_o last_o happy_a be_v that_o people_n that_o be_v in_o such_o a_o case_n yea_o happy_a be_v that_o people_n who_o god_n be_v the_o lord_n so_o that_o you_o see_v all_o the_o outward_a desirable_a mercy_n that_o be_v be_v but_o in_o a_o subordination_n to_o god_n favour_n when_o thou_o be_v break_v forth_o after_o this_o manner_n i_o bless_v god_n for_o my_o child_n for_o my_o health_n for_o my_o outward_a content_n oh_o but_o above_o all_o lord_n that_o i_o have_v any_o spiritual_a mercy_n that_o thou_o have_v love_v my_o soul_n convert_v i_o to_o thyself_o save_v i_o from_o the_o evil_a way_n of_o the_o world_n in_o this_o my_o soul_n be_v overwhelm_v so_o then_o as_o we_o see_v it_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o petition_n seek_v you_o first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n thus_o it_o be_v also_o in_o thanksgiving_n whatsoever_o heavenly_a mercy_n god_n have_v bestow_v on_o thou_o bless_v god_n for_o that_o in_o the_o first_o place_n thus_o the_o apostle_n do_v praise_n god_n in_o a_o most_o divine_a manner_n eph._n 1._o 3._o bless_a be_v god_n who_o have_v bless_v we_o with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o christ_n insomuch_o that_o this_o may_v be_v a_o good_a touchstone_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o grace_n in_o thou_o whether_o thy_o soul_n be_v most_o affect_v and_o enlarge_v towards_o god_n for_o soul-mercy_n that_o thou_o can_v true_o say_v o_o lord_n in_o that_o thou_o have_v make_v i_o in_o a_o save_a manner_n to_o know_v thou_o in_o that_o thou_o have_v reveal_v thy_o son_n to_o i_o i_o do_v more_o rejoice_v in_o this_o and_o bless_v thou_o for_o it_o then_o if_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n do_v thou_o see_v a_o natural_a worldly_a man_n boast_v in_o his_o riches_n in_o his_o birth_n in_o his_o greatness_n above_o other_o and_o know_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o god_n favour_n and_o spiritual_a mercy_n to_o his_o soul_n this_o be_v like_o a_o beast_n that_o be_v crown_v with_o garland_n but_o yet_o prepare_v for_o the_o slaughter_n can_v thou_o say_v o_o lord_n i_o judge_v all_o the_o outward_a mercy_n i_o have_v to_o be_v but_o husk_n and_o empty_a
to_o take_v away_o his_o mercy_n that_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o his_o mercy_n not_o the_o attribute_n of_o mercy_n this_o you_o must_v diligent_o attend_v to_o because_o the_o effect_n of_o god_n mercy_n be_v more_o and_o less_o but_o the_o attribute_n in_o god_n can_v be_v so_o god_n be_v not_o more_o or_o less_o merciful_a neither_o do_v mercy_n as_o a_o attribute_n oppose_v justice_n as_o a_o attribute_n but_o the_o effect_n of_o god_n mercy_n may_v be_v and_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o justice_n 3._o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o god_n general_a mercy_n and_o his_o special_a his_o general_a mercy_n be_v extend_v to_o all_o the_o creature_n the_o whole_a world_n be_v full_a of_o his_o mercy_n psal_n 33._o 5._o so_o his_o mercy_n be_v say_v to_o be_v over_o all_o his_o work_n will_v the_o world_n subsist_v for_o a_o moment_n when_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o be_v so_o full_a of_o rebellion_n against_o god_n be_v it_o not_o for_o his_o mercy_n all_o that_o we_o see_v we_o hear_v we_o taste_v we_o feel_v be_v nothing_o but_o mercy_n his_o special_a mercy_n be_v to_o rational_a creature_n man_n and_o angel_n and_o that_o again_o be_v twofold_n more_o special_a and_o most_o special_a more_o special_a be_v the_o vouchsafe_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o mean_n of_o grace_n both_o to_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o good_a this_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v set_v open_a for_o both_o but_o then_o there_o be_v the_o most_o special_a mercy_n and_o that_o be_v vouchsafe_v only_o to_o the_o elect_a by_o which_o mean_n they_o be_v convert_v justify_v and_o shall_v be_v glorify_v and_o of_o this_o it_o be_v the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 9_o 15._o i_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o i_o will_v have_v mercy_n thus_o much_o may_v suffice_v for_o the_o doctrinal_a information_n about_o this_o truth_n let_v we_o mercy_n in_o the_o next_o place_n take_v notice_n what_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o expression_n father_n of_o mercy_n for_o this_o be_v a_o box_n of_o ointment_n to_o be_v open_v and_o bestow_v upon_o poor_a soul_n and_o while_o this_o glory_n of_o god_n do_v pass_v by_o we_o can_v see_v but_o the_o back_n part_n of_o it_o first_o when_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n this_o imply_v that_o he_o only_o give_v mercy_n and_o receive_v none_o so_o that_o as_o the_o father_n give_v be_v to_o the_o child_n but_o receive_v nothing_o of_o the_o child_n thus_o god_n he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n because_o he_o be_v absolute_o sufficient_a in_o himself_o he_o need_v nothing_o from_o any_o because_o then_o there_o will_v be_v a_o superior_a to_o god_n and_o this_o consideration_n may_v great_o aggravate_v the_o glorious_a nature_n of_o god_n in_o be_v merciful_a in_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v like_o the_o sun_n give_v light_n but_o receive_v none_o at_o all_o we_o can_v say_v of_o angel_n they_o be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n because_o though_o they_o be_v minister_a spirit_n to_o serve_v we_o a_o angel_n be_v send_v to_o comfort_n christ_n yet_o they_o need_v mercy_n as_o well_o as_o we_o the_o river_n need_v the_o spring_n but_o the_o spring_n be_v the_o last_o and_o need_v not_o the_o river_n and_o so_o angel_n and_o man_n they_o need_v mercy_n every_o way_n but_o god_n he_o need_v none_o only_o he_o be_v the_o giver_n of_o all_o it_o be_v more_o bless_v to_o give_v than_o to_o receive_v even_o in_o this_o sense_n second_o when_o he_o be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n it_o imply_v the_o voluntariness_n and_o readiness_n in_o god_n to_o it_o psal_n 103._o like_a as_o a_o father_n pity_v his_o child_n etc._n etc._n we_o do_v not_o entreat_v or_o hire_v a_o father_n to_o pity_v a_o miserable_a child_n his_o own_o bowel_n persuade_v he_o to_o it_o now_o this_o be_v much_o more_o in_o god_n for_o as_o the_o psalmist_n argue_v he_o that_o make_v the_o eye_n shall_v not_o he_o see_v so_o he_o that_o give_v bowel_n and_o pity_n to_o parent_n shall_v not_o he_o much_o rather_o be_v merciful_a so_o that_o as_o it_o be_v for_o holiness_n if_o all_o the_o holiness_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n be_v put_v together_o it_o will_v be_v but_o a_o drop_n to_o what_o be_v in_o god_n so_o if_o all_o the_o mercy_n and_o all_o the_o compassion_n of_o all_o the_o father_n and_o mother_n in_o the_o world_n be_v join_v together_o it_o will_v be_v nothing_o to_o god_n oh_o what_o dishonour_n do_v thy_o unbelieving_a fearful_a heart_n do_v to_o this_o merciful_a father_n thou_o think_v he_o have_v but_o the_o mercy_n of_o a_o man_n thou_o judge_v of_o his_o bowel_n according_a to_o thy_o own_o no_o god_n mercy_n be_v as_o much_o above_o thy_o sin_n and_o misery_n as_o his_o essence_n be_v above_o thy_o be_v o_o nomen_fw-la misericordia_fw-la sub_fw-la quo_fw-la nemini_fw-la desperandum_fw-la but_o of_o that_o more_o present_o only_o when_o he_o be_v call_v a_o father_n of_o mercy_n that_o denote_v the_o readiness_n in_o god_n and_o willingness_n in_o he_o and_o this_o be_v remarkable_a in_o god_n mercy_n over_o what_o be_v in_o man_n our_o mercy_n be_v many_o time_n because_o the_o object_n miserable_a be_v of_o our_o own_o flesh_n and_o nature_n with_o we_o it_o move_v the_o heart_n to_o see_v one_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o we_o to_o be_v thus_o miserable_a but_o god_n he_o be_v infinite_o above_o man_n he_o have_v no_o communion_n in_o nature_n with_o we_o and_o yet_o he_o be_v merciful_a again_o mercy_n among_o man_n be_v often_o because_o we_o have_v be_v under_o such_o misery_n ourselves_o they_o that_o have_v the_o pain_n of_o the_o stone_n commiserate_v those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o like_a manner_n trouble_v because_o they_o know_v what_o it_o be_v thus_o many_o eminent_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v exercise_v with_o soul-temptation_n and_o desertion_n that_o they_o may_v know_v how_o to_o mourn_v with_o bleed_a bowel_n over_o those_o that_o be_v so_o tempt_v thus_o the_o mercy_n of_o christ_n as_o mediator_n differ_v from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n as_o absolute_o consider_v for_o he_o be_v tempt_v like_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n sin_n only_o except_v heb._n 4._o 15._o and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o the_o apostle_n give_v that_o he_o may_v be_v touch_v with_o a_o feel_n of_o our_o infirmity_n christ_n know_v what_o the_o meaning_n be_v of_o every_o groan_n and_o every_o sigh_n that_o come_v from_o a_o child_n in_o darkness_n cry_v out_o why_o have_v my_o god_n forsake_v i_o thus_o christ_n as_o mediator_n be_v merciful_a in_o another_o way_n than_o god_n be_v yet_o this_o advance_v still_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o whereas_o his_o bless_a and_o perfect_a nature_n can_v know_v experimental_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v miserable_a what_o it_o be_v to_o need_v mercy_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o his_o breast_n be_v full_a and_o no_o womon_n be_v in_o great_a pain_n to_o be_v ease_v of_o her_o burden_n than_o god_n to_o bestow_v his_o mercy_n three_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o father_n of_o mercy_n a_o father_n there_o be_v imply_v that_o he_o do_v lay_v our_o misery_n to_o heart_n for_o although_o he_o can_v be_v passionate_o affect_v as_o man_n nor_o be_v sensible_a of_o our_o infirmity_n as_o christ_n be_v yet_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o our_o misery_n be_v take_v notice_n of_o as_o real_o so_o as_o to_o be_v succour_v by_o he_o as_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o most_o compassionate_a father_n that_o be_v that_o expression_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o israelite_n misery_n under_o bondage_n be_v remarkable_a exod._n 2._o 24_o 25._o he_o hear_v their_o groan_a he_o remember_v his_o covenant_n he_o look_v upon_o his_o child_n he_o have_v respect_n or_o know_v they_o see_v here_o ear_n eye_n memory_n and_o mind_n all_o be_v affect_v with_o their_o trouble_n so_o isa_n 63._o 9_o it_o be_v say_v in_o all_o their_o affliction_n he_o be_v afflict_v as_o than_o anger_n against_o wicked_a man_n though_o in_o god_n it_o be_v not_o the_o ebulsition_n of_o blood_n about_o the_o heart_n or_o accompany_v with_o a_o pale_a countenance_n yet_o it_o be_v more_o real_o and_o dreadful_a in_o god_n than_o in_o man_n therefore_o better_a have_v all_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n angry_a with_o thou_o than_o god_n so_o it_o be_v in_o his_o mercy_n in_o he_o mercy_n though_o it_o have_v not_o humane_a concomitant_n yet_o it_o be_v more_o real_a operative_a and_o efficacious_a than_o all_o the_o merciful_a father_n in_o the_o world_n be_v and_o thou_o have_v better_o have_v god_n show_v mercy_n to_o thou_o than_o all_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n for_o in_o the_o four_o place_n when_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n there_o
be_v imply_v the_o real_a and_o lively_a work_n of_o it_o the_o father_n though_o he_o pity_v his_o child_n yet_o can_v give_v he_o the_o mercy_n of_o health_n much_o less_o the_o mercy_n of_o grace_n minister_n though_o they_o be_v spiritual_a father_n they_o can_v only_o pray_v for_o mercy_n preach_v of_o mercy_n but_o to_o give_v you_o pardon_v of_o sin_n to_o give_v you_o comfort_n of_o conscience_n and_o assurance_n that_o they_o can_v do_v but_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o these_o mercy_n he_o can_v give_v joy_n to_o the_o soul_n and_o neither_o devil_n or_o sin_n can_v discomfort_v as_o the_o whole_a creation_n come_v out_o of_o the_o womb_n of_o nothing_o at_o first_o when_o god_n say_v let_v there_o be_v light_n immediate_o there_o be_v light_a and_o as_o god_n be_v call_v the_o father_n of_o rain_n job_n 38._o 28._o because_o he_o can_v open_v the_o bottle_n of_o heaven_n and_o refresh_v the_o parch_a earth_n when_o he_o please_v so_o also_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n because_o he_o can_v turn_v thy_o darkness_n into_o light_n thy_o hell_n into_o heaven_n yea_o he_o do_v it_o that_o so_o what_o many_o sermon_n many_o ordinance_n can_v not_o do_v that_o god_n sudden_o and_o insuperable_o do_v he_o comfort_v irresistible_o as_o well_o as_o convert_v irresistible_o but_o of_o this_o more_o in_o the_o next_o property_n viz._n a_o god_n of_o all_o consolation_n five_o in_o that_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n there_o be_v imply_v that_o it_o be_v only_o from_o himself_o that_o he_o pity_v we_o that_o he_o have_v something_o within_o he_o to_o provoke_v to_o compassion_n when_o we_o have_v enough_o to_o provoke_v he_o and_o this_o be_v represent_v in_o that_o precious_a parable_n of_o the_o prodigal_a son_n return_v to_o his_o father_n though_o there_o be_v cause_n enough_o from_o the_o son_n to_o alienate_v the_o father_n to_o upbraid_v he_o with_o his_o prodigality_n and_o rebellion_n say_v whence_o come_v you_o where_o be_v all_o the_o good_n i_o give_v you_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o the_o father_n run_v to_o meet_v he_o kiss_v and_o embrace_v he_o who_o may_v have_v chastise_v he_o receive_v he_o with_o as_o much_o readiness_n as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o be_v such_o a_o prodigal_a son_n but_o what_o move_v he_o all_o this_o while_n the_o affection_n of_o a_o father_n it_o be_v not_o then_o for_o the_o godly_a soul_n to_o be_v pore_v and_o puzzle_v itself_o always_o what_o be_v there_o in_o i_o that_o may_v make_v god_n show_v mercy_n to_o i_o what_o have_v i_o what_o find_v i_o in_o i_o that_o may_v prevail_v with_o god_n oh_o foolish_a and_o unwise_a christian_a think_v rather_o what_o be_v in_o god_n to_o love_v thou_o to_o pity_v thou_o i_o will_v go_v to_o my_o father_n say_v the_o prodigal_n though_o i_o have_v lose_v the_o obedience_n of_o a_o son_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o the_o bowel_n of_o a_o father_n the_o bowel_n of_o a_o father_n be_v ready_a to_o beget_v he_o again_o think_v what_o a_o fountain_n his_o goodness_n be_v to_o issue_v forth_o river_n of_o mercy_n so_o that_o it_o be_v with_o thou_o as_o some_o parch_a dry_a wilderness_n it_o have_v no_o spring_n no_o stream_n to_o refresh_v itself_o with_o till_o cloud_n from_o above_o fall_n upon_o it_o thus_o thy_o heart_n be_v scorch_v and_o even_o burn_v like_o hell_n till_o god_n give_v thou_o not_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n but_o christ_n blood_n to_o cool_v thy_o afflict_a soul_n thus_o you_o see_v what_o be_v in_o this_o a_o father_n of_o mercy_n a_o father_n in_o the_o second_o place_n what_o brief_o be_v in_o the_o object_n a_o father_n of_o mercy_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n and_o that_o imply_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v no_o mercy_n but_o it_o come_v from_o god_n every_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n be_v from_o he_o jam._n 1._o for_o if_o so_o be_v any_o creature_n be_v the_o original_n of_o mercy_n though_o it_o be_v but_o the_o least_o as_o to_o that_o particular_a it_o will_v be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n if_o the_o sun_n of_o itself_o be_v the_o high_a cause_n of_o give_v light_n to_o thou_o if_o it_o be_v not_o god_n that_o do_v cause_v this_o sun_n to_o shine_v on_o thou_o that_o sun_n will_v be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o light_n although_o therefore_o god_n have_v appoint_v natural_a cause_n moral_a cause_n yea_o and_o supernatural_a mean_n of_o mercy_n and_o comfort_n to_o thou_o yet_o take_v heed_n of_o call_v these_o father_n thy_o food_n will_v not_o be_v a_o mercy_n to_o thou_o thy_o house_n a_o mercy_n no_o thy_o sense_n thy_o understanding_n will_v not_o be_v a_o mercy_n to_o thou_o be_v it_o not_o for_o this_o father_n of_o mercy_n so_o that_o wheresoever_o and_o whensoever_o thou_o meet_v with_o any_o mercy_n look_v high_o than_o the_o creature_n see_v a_o hand_n from_o heaven_n give_v it_o thou_o as_o gerson_n a_o devout_a papist_n speak_v of_o his_o parent_n how_o that_o they_o to_o teach_v he_o while_o a_o child_n that_o every_o mercy_n be_v from_o god_n have_v a_o devise_n that_o from_o the_o roof_n of_o the_o chamber_n shall_v be_v convey_v to_o he_o every_o apple_n or_o nut_n or_o such_o childish_a refreshment_n he_o desire_v but_o christ_n himself_o matth._n 5._o when_o he_o press_v against_o careful_a distrustful_a thought_n he_o say_v your_o heavenly_a father_n know_v what_o you_o want_v so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o thy_o own_o natural_a father_n that_o be_v a_o mercy_n to_o thou_o but_o thy_o father_n in_o heaven_n as_o that_o good_a man_n in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n when_o they_o bring_v he_o news_n his_o father_n be_v dead_a define_v blasphemias_fw-la loqui_fw-la pater_fw-la eminens_fw-la immortalis_fw-la est_fw-la thus_o be_v we_o to_o call_v nothing_o a_o father_n of_o mercy_n to_o we_o but_o god_n himself_o so_o that_o what_o our_o saviour_n say_v mat._n 23._o 9_o call_v no_o man_n father_n on_o earth_n in_o respect_n of_o faith_n and_o obedience_n neither_o be_v we_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o mercy_n oh_o but_o how_o difficult_a be_v it_o not_o to_o have_v other_o father_n of_o mercy_n beside_o he_o serm._n xxxiii_o of_o the_o multitude_n variety_n property_n and_o object_n of_o god_n mercy_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 3_o the_o father_n of_o mercy_n we_o be_v further_a to_o explicate_v what_o be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a attribute_n the_o father_n of_o mercy_n we_o have_v already_o declare_v what_o be_v in_o the_o word_n father_n and_o give_v one_o instance_n what_o be_v in_o the_o word_n mercy_n the_o second_o thing_n comprise_v in_o it_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o they_o he_o do_v not_o say_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n but_o of_o mercy_n it_o be_v not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o mercy_n many_o mercy_n mercy_n innumerable_a mercy_n that_o he_o be_v father_n of_o even_o as_o david_n do_v sometime_o call_v god_n the_o god_n of_o his_o salvation_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n because_o of_o the_o frequent_a and_o many_o deliverance_n god_n vouchsafe_v to_o he_o the_o lord_n therefore_o be_v not_o straighten_a in_o mercy_n no_o more_o than_o in_o power_n but_o as_o nothing_o be_v impossible_a to_o he_o so_o every_o kind_n of_o mercy_n be_v easy_o producible_a by_o he_o the_o multitude_n of_o god_n mercy_n be_v that_o which_o david_n do_v often_o mention_n psal_n 106._o 7_o 45._o psal_n 51._o 1._o and_o indeed_o be_v not_o these_o mercy_n many_o our_o sin_n will_v be_v more_o than_o they_o and_o exceed_v they_o in_o number_n david_n complain_v that_o his_o iniquity_n be_v more_o than_o the_o hair_n of_o his_o head_n and_o yet_o at_o another_o time_n acknowledge_v that_o such_o be_v the_o benefit_n of_o god_n towards_o he_o that_o he_o be_v never_o able_a to_o reckon_v they_o up_o we_o can_v then_o come_v and_o say_v to_o god_n about_o mercy_n as_o esau_n do_v to_o his_o father_n about_o blessing_n have_v thou_o but_o one_o blessing_n o_o my_o father_n have_v thou_o but_o one_o mercy_n woe_n will_v be_v to_o we_o if_o god_n have_v not_o multitude_n of_o mercy_n for_o we_o have_v multitude_n of_o sin_n and_o misery_n oh_o then_o let_v the_o break_a humble_a heart_n who_o groan_v under_o this_o that_o he_o have_v many_o sin_n they_o be_v not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o many_o yea_o the_o multitude_n of_o they_o be_v like_o so_o many_o locust_n and_o caterpillar_n in_o egypt_n he_o can_v look_v this_o way_n or_o that_o way_n but_o sin_n do_v compass_v he_o about_o let_v such_o remember_v that_o there_o be_v more_o mercy_n for_o they_o than_o sin_n against_o they_o if_o thou_o have_v multitude_n of_o sin_n god_n have_v multitude_n of_o mercy_n to_o cover_v they_o so_o as_o thou_o do_v not_o cover_v they_o but_o confess_v and_o bewail_v
to_o hell_n from_o these_o jollity_n all_o true_a comfort_n be_v from_o god_n 2._o there_o be_v imply_v that_o god_n have_v a_o store-house_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o comfort_n whatsoever_o thy_o necessity_n and_o want_n be_v he_o can_v comfort_v thou_o it_o be_v not_o every_o comfort_n that_o will_v heal_v every_o wound_n but_o god_n have_v a_o treasury_n of_o all_o if_o thy_o soul_n need_v comfort_n he_o can_v comfort_v that_o if_o thy_o body_n need_v comfort_n he_o can_v do_v that_o oh_o then_o let_v not_o these_o consolation_n of_o god_n seem_v a_o small_a thing_n to_o you_o job_n 15._o 11._o serm._n xxxv_o some_o proposition_n clear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n mercy_n from_o both_o doctrinal_a and_o practical_a objection_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 3_o the_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n we_o shall_v now_o put_v both_o these_o description_n of_o god_n joint_o together_o have_v already_o consider_v they_o several_o for_o see_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v all_o our_o hope_n christ_n have_v this_o rainbow_n about_o his_o throne_n and_o although_o it_o may_v affect_v we_o to_o hear_v that_o god_n be_v wise_a omnipotent_a of_o glorious_a majesty_n yet_o nothing_o be_v so_o suitable_a and_o proper_a for_o poor_a sinner_n as_o to_o hear_v of_o god_n mercy_n therefore_o i_o shall_v at_o this_o time_n enlarge_v further_o about_o it_o and_o so_o conclude_v and_o that_o which_o i_o shall_v deliver_v shall_v be_v lay_v down_o in_o so_o many_o proposition_n which_o will_v be_v to_o obviate_v either_o practical_a or_o doctrinal_a objection_n and_o first_o the_o mercy_n and_o comfort_n of_o god_n this_o glorious_a nature_n of_o he_o whereby_o god_n he_o be_v ready_a to_o pity_v those_o that_o be_v miserable_a be_v so_o to_o be_v manage_v in_o the_o public_a preach_v thereof_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sovereign_a antidote_n against_o all_o despair_n and_o yet_o a_o curb_n against_o all_o presumption_n for_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o we_o can_v hardly_o open_a the_o treasure_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o discover_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o goodness_n to_o the_o humble_a sinner_n but_o present_o the_o carnal_a profane_a heart_n be_v ready_a to_o encourage_v himself_o thereby_o it_o be_v therefore_o the_o part_n of_o a_o wise_a dispenser_n of_o this_o glad_a tiding_n to_o consider_v the_o subject_n with_o who_o he_o have_v to_o do_v and_o according_o to_o publish_v terror_n to_o who_o terror_n be_v due_a wrath_n to_o who_o wrath_n be_v due_a and_o then_o on_o the_o other_o side_n peace_n to_o who_o peace_n belong_v mercy_n to_o who_o mercy_n belong_v though_o therefore_o god_n style_v himself_o the_o god_n of_o the_o fatherless_a and_o the_o widow_n that_o he_o be_v pitiful_a to_o such_o as_o be_v miserable_a though_o very_o wicked_a it_o may_v be_v and_o profane_a yet_o this_o be_v with_o a_o general_a mercy_n only_o his_o peculiar_a and_o special_a mercy_n be_v only_o to_o those_o that_o fear_v he_o if_o then_o a_o man_n go_v on_o wilful_o in_o his_o ungodly_a way_n if_o he_o will_v still_o retain_v his_o transgression_n he_o must_v not_o think_v to_o find_v god_n merciful_a to_o he_o he_o will_v find_v david_n prayer_n fulfil_v psal_n 59_o 5._o be_v not_o merciful_a to_o any_o wicked_a transgressor_n this_o bread_n be_v for_o child_n not_o for_o dog_n yet_o how_o difficult_o can_v we_o keep_v such_o off_o from_o apply_v this_o mercy_n to_o themselves_o those_o be_v common_o most_o confident_a of_o it_o to_o who_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v therefore_o beastly_a man_n be_v bar_v off_o from_o come_v near_o this_o mount_n this_o pearl_n be_v keep_v from_o swine_n when_o we_o meet_v with_o break_a contrite_a heart_n here_o we_o display_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n with_o all_o our_o might_n to_o such_o we_o say_v god_n mercy_n be_v infinite_o more_o than_o their_o sin_n that_o although_o they_o have_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o they_o be_v but_o as_o a_o drop_n to_o the_o sunbeam_n of_o his_o mercy_n which_o will_v quick_o dry_v they_o up_o to_o such_o we_o say_v god_n do_v as_o easy_o pardon_v great_a sin_n as_o little_a as_o the_o sun_n do_v enlighten_v one_o place_n with_o as_o much_o ease_n as_o another_o to_o such_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o hope_v in_o god_n mercy_n that_o they_o can_v dishonour_v god_n more_o than_o by_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o one_o who_o be_v hardly_o bring_v to_o remit_v offence_n that_o it_o be_v god_n will_v we_o shall_v come_v to_o this_o fountain_n and_o drink_v abundant_o of_o it_o we_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o can_v think_v so_o much_o of_o sin_n to_o condemn_v they_o as_o they_o may_v of_o the_o multitude_n of_o god_n mercy_n to_o save_v they_o to_o such_o we_o say_v that_o when_o they_o have_v think_v all_o they_o can_v yet_o there_o be_v more_o in_o god_n mercy_n than_o they_o can_v go_v to_o the_o bottom_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o forget_v sin_n but_o he_o can_v forget_v his_o property_n of_o mercy_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o mercy_n be_v so_o to_o be_v hold_v out_o as_o the_o cloud_n be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n it_o be_v light_a to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n to_o guide_v they_o but_o darkness_n to_o the_o egyptian_a the_o doctrine_n of_o mercy_n be_v indeed_o matter_n of_o terror_n to_o every_o presumptuous_a sinner_n for_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o it_o but_o it_o be_v full_a of_o beauty_n and_o revive_n to_o the_o wound_a heart_n hence_o the_o whole_a drift_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o represent_v this_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o a_o humble_a sinner_n this_o be_v the_o main_a scope_n of_o it_o for_o who_o can_v or_o dare_v think_v of_o god_n any_o otherwise_o but_o a_o consume_a fire_n till_o the_o scripture_n have_v reveal_v he_o otherwise_o and_o indeed_o the_o parable_n of_o a_o shepherd_n fetch_v home_o his_o lose_a sheep_n be_v comfortable_a yet_o christ_n exceed_v that_o shepherd_n for_o he_o seek_v for_o his_o sheep_n as_o good_n that_o he_o need_v that_o he_o want_v but_o christ_n do_v for_o we_o who_o he_o do_v not_o want_v he_o be_v well_o enough_o without_o we_o again_o that_o also_o be_v a_o refresh_a parable_n of_o the_o father_n entertain_v so_o merciful_o his_o prodigal_a son_n but_o yet_o christ_n exceed_v that_o father_n also_o for_o there_o the_o son_n come_v first_o and_o humble_v himself_o and_o entreat_v for_o favour_n but_o god_n he_o do_v first_o seek_v we_o out_o by_o his_o mercy_n we_o do_v not_o choose_v he_o but_o he_o choose_v we_o though_o vorstius_n do_v distinguish_v of_o special_a grace_n to_o believer_n call_v one_o ordinary_a which_o god_n vouchsafe_v to_o those_o who_o seek_v he_o in_o the_o use_n of_o mean_n and_o another_o extraordinary_a which_o god_n he_o say_v sometime_o but_o rare_o vouchsafe_v and_o that_o be_v while_o man_n never_o think_v of_o god_n yea_o in_o way_n of_o opposition_n to_o god_n as_o the_o gentile_n and_o paul_n yet_o indeed_o we_o may_v say_v of_o all_o that_o be_v convert_v that_o god_n think_v of_o they_o before_o they_o think_v of_o god_n it_o be_v he_o that_o prevent_v they_o his_o grace_n find_v they_o out_o and_o prepare_v they_o for_o mercy_n again_o christ_n compare_v himself_o to_o the_o physician_n but_o what_o physician_n heal_v as_o he_o do_v other_o physician_n they_o make_v their_o patient_n sick_a and_o bleed_v to_o help_v they_o to_o health_n but_o christ_n he_o himself_o be_v wound_v and_o his_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o to_o save_v we_o all_o this_o be_v to_o show_v that_o we_o can_v embolden_v and_o encourage_v the_o sincere_a convert_n enough_o but_o the_o more_o hopeful_a and_o confident_a thought_n he_o have_v of_o god_n mercy_n the_o more_o please_a it_o be_v to_o god_n second_o we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o god_n mercy_n without_o scripture-light_n and_o guidance_n for_o if_o we_o do_v we_o sholl_a thereby_o encourage_v ourselves_o in_o wicked_a way_n and_o yet_o say_v god_n be_v merciful_a and_o true_o this_o be_v the_o poison_n that_o many_o suck_v down_o they_o judge_v of_o god_n mercy_n according_a to_o their_o own_o humane_a pity_n and_o compassion_n and_o thereupon_o never_o consider_v his_o justice_n his_o wisdom_n his_o holiness_n as_o well_o as_o mercy_n so_o that_o this_o be_v diligent_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o we_o must_v not_o apprehend_v of_o god_n as_o full_a of_o mercy_n and_o comfort_v any_o otherways_o than_o the_o scripture_n do_v manifest_v he_o and_o that_o will_v be_v salt_n to_o season_v you_o against_o the_o abuse_n of_o god_n mercy_n so_o as_o to_o turn_v his_o grace_n into_o wantonness_n how_o many_o be_v there_o undo_v themselves_o for_o want_n of_o a_o scripture_n consideration_n of_o god_n mercy_n both_o doctrinal_o and_o
very_o powerful_a for_o their_o salvation_n they_o be_v like_o the_o saw_n and_o hammer_n that_o do_v prepare_v and_o polish_v the_o stone_n to_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o build_n so_o that_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o these_o to_o be_v deny_v these_o be_v even_o to_o be_v deprive_v or_o deny_v salvation_n itself_o only_o when_o we_o say_v they_o be_v mean_v institute_v to_o procure_v salvation_n you_o must_v not_o think_v there_o be_v any_o intrinsical_a virtue_n in_o these_o as_o the_o lutheran_n speak_v about_o the_o word_n preach_v or_o as_o the_o papist_n about_o the_o sacrament_n work_v salvation_n as_o physic_n do_v health_n by_o a_o natural_a causality_n no_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o some_o it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o life_n but_o of_o death_n 2_o cor._n 2._o 16._o it_o be_v to_o some_o people_n as_o the_o ark_n to_o the_o philistines_n because_o not_o use_v aright_o it_o become_v their_o further_a damnation_n 2._o there_o be_v occasional_a mean_n which_o do_v not_o direct_o but_o occasional_o promote_v as_o the_o salvation_n of_o believer_n and_o they_o be_v 1._o their_o very_a sin_n these_o be_v occasiones_fw-la passivae_fw-la passive_a occasion_n mere_o sin_n because_o sin_n of_o itself_o have_v such_o a_o deadly_a nature_n that_o it_o be_v not_o ordinable_a to_o salvation_n only_o the_o omnipotency_n the_o wisdom_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n make_v the_o former_a sin_n the_o godly_a have_n commitred_a to_o be_v admirable_a antidote_n and_o preservative_n against_o future_a sin_n thus_o paul_n blasphemy_n and_o persecution_n be_v overpowr_v to_o promote_v his_o salvation_n by_o make_v he_o more_o active_a even_o as_o one_o grief_n do_v cure_v another_o sometime_o or_o the_o burn_n of_o fire_n be_v take_v out_o by_o fire_n which_o make_v one_o not_o afraid_a to_o say_v that_o he_o get_v good_a by_o his_o sin_n more_o than_o by_o his_o grace_n hence_o rom._n 8._o many_o learned_a man_n do_v not_o exclude_v sin_n themselves_o from_o that_o comfortable_a expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n all_o thing_n shall_v work_v together_o for_o their_o good_a the_o second_o occasional_a mean_n be_v affliction_n and_o these_o may_v be_v call_v active_a affliction_n occasion_n because_o in_o their_o nature_n they_o be_v ordinable_a and_o actual_o by_o god_n be_v ordain_v to_o help_v forward_o our_o salvation_n now_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o this_o be_v from_o god_n predestination_n and_o election_n of_o such_o to_o salvation_n and_o because_o so_o elect_v every_o thing_n become_v instrumental_a to_o that_o end_n so_o that_o god_n govern_v and_o rule_v in_o all_o thing_n thereby_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o eternal_a blessedness_n for_o election_n will_v obtain_v and_o can_v be_v frustrate_v so_o that_o the_o use_n may_v be_v to_o inform_v the_o people_n of_o god_n of_o their_o infinite_a obligation_n to_o the_o goodness_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o in_o this_o particular_a if_o grace_n do_v fall_v asleep_o as_o it_o be_v but_o a_o moment_n thy_o salvation_n may_v be_v for_o ever_o lose_v but_o this_o grace_n that_o keep_v thou_o do_v neither_o slumber_n nor_o sleep_n what_o joy_n and_o gladness_n may_v it_o fill_v the_o godly_a heart_n with_o when_o he_o be_v allow_v to_o say_v with_o paul_n i_o know_v this_o shall_v turn_v to_o my_o salvation_n if_o i_o be_v afflict_v if_o i_o be_v comfort_v if_o i_o have_v mercy_n if_o i_o be_v without_o they_o if_o i_o live_v if_o i_o die_v i_o know_v all_o these_o thing_n shall_v carry_v on_o my_o salvation_n serm._n lvi_o of_o paul_n hope_n and_o persuasion_n of_o the_o corinthian_n with_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o it_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 7._o and_o our_o hope_n of_o you_o be_v steadfast_a know_v that_o as_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o suffering_n so_o shall_v you_o be_v also_o of_o the_o consolation_n these_o word_n bring_v in_o as_o some_o say_v be_v a_o parenthesis_n be_v by_o way_n of_o mitigation_n and_o mollify_a the_o mind_n of_o the_o corinthian_n for_o paul_n in_o his_o former_a epistle_n have_v severe_o reprove_v they_o it_o obtain_v good_a success_n and_o procure_v some_o spiritual_a effect_n upon_o they_o for_o they_o be_v make_v sorrowful_a thereby_o and_o set_v upon_o the_o work_n of_o reformation_n and_o although_o the_o false_a apostle_n have_v too_o much_o prevail_v with_o they_o yet_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o sound_a temper_n than_o former_o neither_o be_v paul_n affliction_n such_o matter_n of_o contempt_n as_o former_o yea_o they_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o same_o suffering_n with_o he_o these_o thing_n lay_v together_o make_v paul_n use_v these_o encourage_n and_o soften_a passage_n to_o rebuke_n we_o must_v join_v meekness_n and_o love_n together_o the_o artificer_n can_v build_v his_o house_n with_o hard_a brick_n or_o stone_n he_o must_v have_v his_o soft_a mortar_n to_o cement_v they_o together_o rigidness_n to_o rigidness_n will_v neuer_o unite_v there_o must_v be_v yield_v as_o well_o as_o severity_n else_o the_o edification_n of_o god_n church_n can_v proceed_v the_o word_n be_v a_o profession_n of_o paul_n charitable_a esteem_n and_o love_a apprehension_n of_o they_o though_o sometime_o he_o do_v rebuke_v they_o very_o sharp_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o have_v no_o hope_n of_o you_o no_o epistle_n or_o writing_n will_v do_v you_o any_o good_a this_o may_v have_v more_o harden_v they_o in_o obstinacy_n yea_o as_o chrysostom_n well_o observe_v on_o this_o place_n he_o speak_v more_o hopeful_o and_o confident_o of_o these_o corinthian_n than_o he_o do_v of_o the_o thessalonian_n for_o 1_o thess_n 2._o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o he_o there_o discover_v the_o holy_a jealousy_n and_o fear_n he_o have_v lest_o they_o shall_v be_v oot_n much_o move_v with_o the_o affliction_n that_o do_v accompany_v the_o gospel_n when_o i_o can_v no_o long_o forbear_v say_v he_o i_o send_v timotheus_n to_o establish_v you_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v be_v move_v by_o these_o affliction_n again_o he_o repeat_v it_o when_o i_o can_v no_o long_o forbear_v i_o send_v to_o know_v your_o faith_n lest_o by_o some_o mean_v the_o tempter_n shall_v tempt_v you_o by_o these_o vehement_a and_o double_a affectionate_a expression_n you_o see_v with_o what_o a_o holy_a jealousy_n he_o be_v possess_v concern_v they_o but_o he_o speak_v far_o more_o confident_o about_o these_o corinthian_n our_o hope_n of_o you_o be_v steadfast_a that_o which_o the_o apostle_n here_o call_v his_o hope_n he_o do_v often_o in_o other_o place_n name_v his_o persuasion_n heb._n 6._o 9_o we_o be_v persuade_v better_a thing_n of_o you_o 2_o tim._n 1._o 5._o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o the_o same_o faith_n dwell_v in_o thou_o also_o 1_o pet._n 5._o 12._o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o sylvanus_n call_v he_o a_o faithful_a brother_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 12._o as_o i_o suppose_v the_o word_n do_v not_o there_o denote_v any_o doubt_n or_o fear_v about_o he_o for_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n scope_n who_o intend_v to_o commend_v he_o but_o it_o signify_v a_o firm_a and_o steadfast_a judgement_n concern_v his_o faithfulness_n now_o the_o question_n be_v what_o be_v that_o hope_n and_o persuasion_n or_o knowledge_n moral_a which_o paul_n have_v concern_v other_o man_n to_o understand_v this_o you_o must_v know_v paul_n have_v a_o twofold_a hope_n a_o divine_a hope_n and_o a_o charitable_a or_o prudential_n hope_v which_o we_o may_v call_v a_o moral_a hope_n divine_a hope_n be_v a_o supernatural_a grace_n wrought_v by_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o paul_n and_o so_o in_o every_o believer_n whereby_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o put_v his_o confidence_n in_o god_n expect_v from_o he_o only_o what_o he_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o so_o that_o of_o divine_a hope_n god_n be_v the_o efficient_a and_o god_n also_o be_v the_o object_n on_o which_o it_o be_v determine_v and_o as_o we_o must_v not_o believe_v in_o any_o thing_n but_o god_n so_o nether_a hope_n in_o any_o thing_n but_o god_n of_o this_o divine_a be_v hope_n paul_n do_v not_o here_o speak_v he_o do_v not_o say_v our_o hope_n in_o you_o be_v steadfast_a but_o of_o you_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o those_o preposition_n be_v often_o change_v therefore_o it_o be_v a_o moral_a hope_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o principle_n of_o prudence_n and_o charity_n by_o which_o paul_n be_v bind_v to_o judge_v thus_o favourable_o of_o they_o paul_n can_v not_o tell_v the_o heart_n of_o those_o he_o write_v to_o he_o can_v not_o infallible_o discern_v whether_o they_o be_v hypocrite_n or_o sincere_a only_o he_o judge_v the_o tree_n by_o the_o fruit_n yet_o you_o must_v not_o understand_v this_o as_o speak_v o●_n every_o particular_a and_o individual_a but_o collective_o for_o he_o write_v to_o they_o as_o a_o body_n and_o a_o
so_o be_v unclean_a by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n three_o this_o trust_n it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n by_o that_o grace_n we_o be_v able_a to_o depend_v upon_o god_n alone_o indeed_o the_o papist_n they_o make_v trust_v to_o be_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n hope_n and_o it_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o faith_n have_v some_o such_o proportionable_a act_n flow_v from_o it_o but_o the_o trust_n that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v so_o much_o of_o be_v plain_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n for_o what_o the_o old_a testament_n call_v trust_v in_o god_n so_o often_o in_o the_o new_a it_o be_v believe_v on_o god_n and_o on_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v no_o more_o than_o fiducial_a recumbency_n or_o rest_v of_o the_o soul_n upon_o christ_n though_o hope_n therefore_o have_v its_o trust_n yet_o faith_n likewise_o have_v its_o trust_n only_a hope_n object_n be_v apprehend_v as_o suture_a and_o in_o expectation_n but_o faith_n trust_v make_v the_o object_n present_a as_o to_o apprehension_n and_o therefore_o heb._n 11._o 1._o it_o be_v call_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o by_o trust_v then_o on_o god_n we_o mean_v not_o that_o act_n of_o faith_n whereby_o it_o know_v god_n nor_o that_o whereby_o it_o give_v assent_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n but_o whereby_o the_o whole_a heart_n be_v draw_v out_o to_o depend_v on_o god_n and_o rest_n upon_o he_o for_o whatsoever_o good_a thing_n he_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o and_o therefore_o this_o trust_n in_o god_n be_v necessary_o accompany_v with_o a_o love_n of_o god_n and_o endear_a thought_n about_o he_o as_o a_o gracious_a father_n who_o will_v merciful_o provide_v for_o all_o our_o want_n as_o austin_n of_o old_a credere_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la be_v credendo_fw-la amare_fw-la so_o that_o here_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o that_o historical_a and_o dogmatical_a faith_n which_o many_o christian_n have_v whereby_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o fiducial_a trust_n on_o god_n for_o this_o be_v necessary_o accompany_v with_o a_o hearty_a love_n of_o and_o delight_n in_o god_n and_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o it_o hence_o the_o devil_n that_o he_o may_v tempt_v to_o despair_v which_o be_v a_o sin_n opposite_a to_o trust_v in_o god_n he_o labour_v to_o keep_v the_o distress_a sinner_n in_o hard_a thought_n of_o god_n as_o one_o who_o be_v a_o provoke_v judge_n and_o will_v not_o show_v mercy_n so_o that_o as_o long_o as_o the_o heart_n be_v by_o these_o sad_a temptation_n keep_v at_o a_o distance_n and_o be_v estrange_v from_o god_n it_o can_v so_o full_o trust_v in_o he_o four_o it_o be_v not_o god_n absolute_o consider_v that_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o trust_n god_n in_o he_o for_o the_o devil_n and_o damn_a in_o hell_n though_o none_o need_v mercy_n and_o help_v more_o than_o they_o do_v yet_o they_o can_v trust_v in_o he_o therefore_o god_n relative_o consider_v as_o reveal_v himself_o to_o his_o people_n be_v the_o object_n of_o their_o hope_n and_o these_o attribute_n or_o property_n do_v especial_o sustain_v our_o trust_n in_o he_o 1._o that_o he_o be_v the_o infinite_a true_a and_o ever_o live_v god_n upon_o this_o ground_n to_o trust_v in_o idol_n to_o trust_v in_o riches_n to_o trust_v in_o man_n though_o never_o so_o great_a be_v forbid_v not_o only_o as_o a_o sin_n but_o as_o a_o vain_a thing_n uncertain_a riches_n they_o be_v idol_n be_v vanity_n they_o be_v nothing_o man_n have_v his_o breath_n in_o his_o nostril_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v foolish_a to_o trust_v in_o such_o thing_n but_o god_n be_v the_o jehovah_n and_o eternal_a even_o the_o everlasting_a god_n the_o same_o for_o ever_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o he_o only_o must_v be_v trust_v in_o be_v thy_o creature_n a_o jehovah_n have_v they_o a_o infinite_a be_v be_v they_o from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a no_o certain_o than_o it_o be_v idolatry_n to_o put_v trust_n in_o they_o 2._o god_n be_v the_o adequate_a object_n of_o our_o hope_n because_o of_o his_o immutability_n promise_n on_o his_o promise_n as_o well_o as_o in_o his_o be_v here_o be_v two_o particular_n include_v in_o this_o 1._o a_o promise_n for_o if_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v to_o we_o what_o he_o will_v do_v for_o we_o there_o can_v not_o be_v any_o trust_n in_o he_o hence_o god_n promise_n and_o man_n trust_v they_o must_v always_o go_v together_o to_o trust_v for_o such_o thing_n he_o have_v never_o promise_v be_v presumption_n and_o a_o temptation_n of_o god_n and_o not_o to_o trust_v for_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o have_v promise_v though_o they_o seem_v never_o so_o improbable_a or_o impossible_a to_o we_o be_v to_o limit_n god_n and_o to_o measure_v he_o according_a to_o our_o apprehension_n this_o be_v to_o make_v trust_v a_o act_n of_o sense_n or_o of_o reason_n not_o of_o faith_n the_o rule_n then_o of_o our_o trust_n be_v god_n promise_v it_o be_v not_o god_n infiniteness_n and_o eternity_n as_o such_o but_o we_o must_v also_o have_v a_o promise_n therefore_o though_o god_n be_v so_o full_a of_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n yet_o the_o damn_v can_v trust_v in_o he_o because_o they_o have_v no_o promise_n from_o god_n that_o he_o will_v do_v good_a to_o they_o but_o though_o we_o have_v a_o promise_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o a_o man_n who_o be_v a_o liar_n who_o be_v inconstant_a and_o mutable_a ready_a to_o repent_v of_o what_o he_o have_v promise_v than_o our_o trust_n will_v be_v weak_a and_o uncomfortable_a but_o god_n be_v unchangeable_a in_o his_o promise_n heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v soon_o pass_v away_o than_o this_o gracious_a word_n of_o god_n james_n 1._o 17._o with_o he_o there_o be_v no_o variableness_n nor_o shadow_n of_o change_n god_n then_o be_v the_o supreme_a verity_n and_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o he_o to_o lie_v as_o hebr._n 6._o 18_o 19_o no_o wonder_n that_o our_o hope_n and_o trust_n in_o god_n under_o all_o wave_n of_o temptation_n be_v a_o sure_a and_o steadfast_a anchor_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o why_o then_o be_v it_o that_o you_o see_v even_o the_o people_n of_o god_n toss_v up_o and_o down_o with_o such_o uncertain_a thought_n and_o work_n of_o heart_n why_o be_v it_o they_o have_v not_o a_o serene_a and_o quiet_a frame_n of_o heart_n all_o the_o day_n long_o it_o be_v because_o they_o let_v go_v this_o anchor_n they_o intermit_v this_o trust_n in_o god_n otherwise_o because_o god_n be_v the_o same_o and_o his_o promise_n be_v the_o same_o they_o also_o will_v be_v the_o same_o you_o see_v then_o why_o god_n be_v the_o adequate_a object_n of_o our_o trust_n because_o he_o have_v promise_v and_o because_o he_o be_v unchangeable_a in_o his_o promise_n what_o folly_n be_v it_o to_o trust_v in_o any_o earthly_a greatness_n and_o power_n it_o be_v but_o as_o the_o shadow_n that_o pass_v away_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o the_o fashion_n of_o the_o world_n 1_o corinth_n 7._o because_o it_o be_v so_o transitory_a therefore_o our_o name_n we_o customary_o use_v to_o express_v thing_n by_o be_v most_o absurd_a and_o improper_a if_o we_o regard_v scripture-expression_n for_o we_o use_v to_o say_v a_o kingly_a state_n a_o christian_a state_n and_o so_o statu●_n magnatum_fw-la status_fw-la be_v à_fw-la stando_fw-la and_o denote_v what_o be_v stable_n whereas_o all_o these_o be_v but_o a_o fashion_n a_o show_n that_o pass_v away_o thus_o when_o we_o will_v express_v the_o glory_n of_o a_o man_n we_o say_v he_o appear_v in_o great_a state_n now_o no_o word_n be_v so_o improper_a as_o that_o it_o be_v as_o if_o you_o shall_v call_v a_o shadow_n a_o substance_n or_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o a_o shadow_n or_o as_o if_o run_a shall_v be_v call_v stand_v still_o the_o scripture_n express_v it_o more_o full_o when_o act._n 25._o 23._o agrippa_z and_o bernice_n be_v say_v to_o appear_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o great_a pomp_n we_o translate_v in_o the_o original_n it_o be_v with_o a_o great_a fantasy_n or_o apparition_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v apply_v in_o scripture_n to_o apparition_n of_o spirit_n which_o quick_o vanish_v away_o now_o how_o contradictory_n be_v it_o to_o call_v a_o fantasy_n a_o state_n as_o if_o we_o shall_v call_v a_o feather_n which_o fly_v up_o and_o down_o a_o mountain_n that_o abide_v and_o can_v be_v remove_v see_v therefore_o all_o earthly_a greatness_n be_v thus_o fluid_a and_o ambulatory_a how_o can_v we_o put_v any_o trust_n therein_o last_o therefore_o be_v god_n the_o ground_n of_o our_o trust_n because_o he_o be_v only_o omnipotent_a almighty_a and_o omnipotent_a able_a to_o do_v of_o himself_o whatsoever_o he_o have_v promise_v for_o though_o we_o have_v
it_o have_v be_v better_a if_o god_n help_v have_v come_v soon_o if_o he_o have_v not_o defer_v so_o long_o but_o this_o be_v as_o if_o the_o patient_n shall_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o direct_v the_o physician_n when_o be_v the_o fit_a time_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o his_o medicinal_a help_n four_o the_o people_n of_o god_n aggravate_v their_o mercy_n by_o compare_v they_o with_o other_o misery_n i_o have_v health_n how_o many_o be_v in_o pain_n and_o misery_n exquisite_a torment_n i_o have_v sufficiency_n and_o fullness_n how_o many_o lazar_n be_v there_o that_o will_v be_v glad_a of_o the_o crumb_n that_o fall_v from_o my_o table_n as_o those_o leper_n that_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v famish_v but_o unexpected_o meet_v with_o full_a provision_n in_o the_o syrian's_n camp_n say_v we_o do_v not_o well_o 2_o king_n 7._o 9_o let_v we_o inform_v the_o king_n household_n for_o alas_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o eat_v their_o own_o child_n through_o the_o famine_n while_o these_o have_v all_o plenty_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n may_v thou_o reflect_v with_o thyself_o how_o many_o be_v there_o even_o of_o the_o dear_a servant_n of_o god_n that_o be_v naked_a hungry_a persecute_v and_o destitute_a of_o all_o hope_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o so_o afflict_a or_o in_o a_o low_a condition_n but_o he_o may_v look_v upon_o other_o who_o be_v more_o miserable_a than_o he_o this_o therefore_o will_v great_o sharpen_v thy_o affection_n to_o bless_v god_n when_o thou_o shall_v compare_v thy_o mercy_n with_o other_o misery_n especial_o if_o you_o do_v consider_v it_o in_o spiritual_n how_o many_o thousand_o sit_v in_o paganism_n and_o know_v nothing_o of_o christ_n how_o many_o lie_n roar_v in_o hell_n for_o the_o same_o sin_n or_o less_o sin_n it_o may_v be_v that_o thou_o have_v commit_v thus_o if_o thou_o set_v thyself_o to_o aggravate_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n from_o every_o consideration_n thou_o will_v find_v the_o circumstance_n will_v increase_v upon_o thou_o as_o the_o widow_n oil_n do_v and_o thou_o will_v see_v thou_o have_v more_o cause_n to_o bless_v ood_a then_o ever_o thou_o do_v apprehend_v at_o first_o if_o i_o say_v thou_o do_v this_o thou_o will_v no_o more_o complain_v of_o the_o coldness_n and_o chillness_n that_o be_v upon_o thy_o heart_n nothing_o do_v so_o much_o dull_v the_o heart_n as_o rest_v in_o general_n blessing_n god_n in_o general_n take_v every_o mercy_n as_o thou_o will_v some_o watch_n or_o curious_a work_n of_o art_n and_o view_v every_o piece_n every_o part_n or_o as_o those_o that_o hehold_v some_o admirable_a image_n they_o be_v intentive_a to_o every_o part_n thereof_o to_o observe_v the_o beauty_n life_n and_o proportion_n thereof_o oh_o it_o be_v this_o and_o this_o only_a will_v draw_v out_o thy_o soul_n and_o make_v thou_o have_v river_n of_o water_n flow_v from_o thou_o it_o be_v this_o that_o will_v make_v thou_o say_v with_o elihu_n job_n 32._o 18._o i_o be_o full_a of_o matter_n the_o spirit_n within_o i_o constrain_v i_o my_o belly_n be_v as_o wine_n which_o have_v no_o vent_n it_o be_v ready_a to_o burst_v like_o new_a bottle_n thus_o five_o word_n of_o praise_n come_v from_o a_o heart_n aggravate_v god_n mercy_n be_v more_o effectual_a than_o five_o hundred_o in_o a_o formal_a general_a way_n serm._n lxxv_o privative_a and_o prevent_a mercy_n be_v to_o be_v account_v of_o as_o positive_a 2_o cor._n 1._o 10._o who_o deliver_v we_o from_o so_o great_a a_o death_n and_o do_v deliver_v in_o this_o text_n we_o have_v paul_n celebrate_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o he_o in_o that_o extreme_a trouble_n mention_v before_o wherein_o be_v observe_v first_o the_o holy_a thankful_a temper_n of_o paul_n study_v to_o aggravate_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n he_o leave_v out_o nothing_o unexpressed_a which_o may_v not_o make_v for_o the_o great_a exaltation_n of_o god_n goodness_n towards_o he_o there_o remain_v a_o second_o doctrine_n which_o be_v that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v to_o account_v of_o the_o privative_a and_o prevent_a mercy_n positive_a as_o much_o as_o positive_a paul_n call_v this_o deliverance_n a_o deliverance_n from_o such_o a_o death_n so_o great_a a_o death_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o actual_o kill_v he_o be_v only_o in_o danger_n of_o it_o but_o because_o have_v not_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n prevent_v death_n have_v sure_o seize_v on_o he_o therefore_o this_o mercy_n of_o prevent_a death_n he_o do_v judge_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o positive_a deliverance_n from_o it_o that_o as_o we_o see_v god_n do_v deal_v with_o his_o people_n he_o accept_v of_o a_o willing_a mind_n for_o the_o deed_n and_o heb._n 11._o 17._o abraham_n be_v say_v to_o offer_v up_o his_o only_a beget_v son_n because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o immediate_a disposition_n and_o preparation_n of_o his_o heart_n he_o have_v do_v it_o have_v not_o god_n prevent_v it_o so_o it_o be_v here_o with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n those_o mercy_n which_o keep_v off_o the_o danger_n that_o be_v immediate_o issue_v out_o upon_o we_o they_o take_v as_o if_o the_o mercy_n be_v itself_o positive_o do_v to_o they_o divine_n have_v a_o say_n plures_fw-la sunt_fw-la gratiae_fw-la privativae_fw-la quam_fw-la positivae_fw-la there_o be_v more_o privative_a favour_n of_o god_n than_o positive_a and_o this_o they_o apply_v to_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o indeed_o if_o we_o consider_v how_o many_o sin_n god_n may_v keep_v thou_o from_o which_o other_o fall_v into_o how_o many_o temptation_n god_n do_v preserve_v thou_o in_o which_o swallow_v up_o other_o we_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o be_v no_o more_o able_a to_o reckon_v up_o these_o prevent_a mercy_n of_o god_n than_o we_o can_v count_v the_o star_n or_o reckon_v up_o the_o sand_n upon_o the_o seashore_n that_o this_o truth_n may_v affect_v we_o and_o cause_v we_o more_o to_o employ_v our_o thought_n in_o a_o thankful_a way_n towards_o god_n concern_v all_o that_o evil_n which_o may_v come_v upon_o we_o if_o god_n do_v not_o interpose_v let_v we_o take_v notice_n of_o these_o particular_n first_o that_o there_o be_v some_o mercy_n god_n do_v vouchsafe_v to_o his_o people_n which_o not_o do_v suppose_v evil_a to_o be_v actual_o come_v upon_o they_o as_o when_o joseph_n be_v deliver_v out_o of_o prison_n jonah_n out_o of_o the_o whale_n belly_n the_o lord_n do_v not_o prevent_v which_o he_o can_v have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v please_v but_o suffer_v they_o to_o overtake_v those_o child_n of_o he_o yea_o all_o the_o trouble_n which_o do_v befall_v the_o godly_a he_o can_v have_v prevent_v they_o if_o he_o have_v please_v he_o that_o can_v deliver_v out_o of_o they_o can_v also_o stop_v they_o from_o come_v but_o god_n out_o of_o wise_a end_n both_o relate_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o the_o good_a of_o his_o people_n do_v bring_v these_o exercise_n upon_o they_o then_o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v mercy_n which_o do_v not_o suppose_v evil_a actual_o to_o come_v upon_o we_o but_o ready_a and_o prepare_v to_o fall_v on_o we_o if_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o forbid_v that_o as_o we_o see_v it_o be_v with_o the_o angel_n when_o he_o have_v his_o draw_a sword_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o strike_v jerusalem_n with_o the_o plague_n as_o well_o as_o other_o place_n the_o lord_n do_v merciful_o command_v the_o angel_n to_o put_v up_o his_o sword_n now_o no_o doubt_n but_o david_n do_v account_v this_o prevent_a mercy_n this_o stop_n of_o the_o plague_n to_o be_v as_o great_a as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o for_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o preparation_n to_o this_o judgement_n they_o be_v but_o as_o so_o many_o dead_a corpse_n so_o that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v of_o too_o narrow_a and_o straighten_v a_o spirit_n when_o they_o look_v only_o to_o what_o trouble_v they_o have_v be_v in_o and_o god_n have_v deliver_v they_o oh_o consider_v further_o how_o many_o may_v have_v fall_v upon_o thou_o yea_o will_v certain_o have_v bruise_v thou_o have_v not_o the_o lord_n keep_v they_o off_o second_o these_o prevent_a mercy_n do_v empty_a themselves_o in_o a_o twofold_a channel_n prevent_v for_o they_o be_v either_o temporal_a evil_n or_o spiritual_a evil_n that_o these_o mercy_n do_v relate_v unto_o and_o thus_o prevent_v mercy_n do_v compass_v we_o about_o all_o the_o day_n long_o what_o evil_n may_v not_o have_v fall_v upon_o thou_o every_o moment_n this_o disease_n that_o casualty_n such_o a_o sudden_a and_o unexpected_a calamity_n insomuch_o that_o thou_o can_v not_o hear_v of_o any_o misery_n fall_v upon_o any_o live_n but_o it_o also_o may_v have_v come_v upon_o thou_o do_v any_o fit_a mourning_n and_o wring_v their_o hand_n cry_v out_o o_o you_o that_o pass_v by_o see_v if_o
there_o be_v any_o afflict_v with_o bitterness_n as_o i_o be_o and_o be_v not_o this_o thy_o case_n be_v not_o thy_o house_n a_o house_n of_o mourning_n for_o dead_a father_n or_o dead_a husband_n as_o well_o as_o other_o be_v not_o all_o this_o from_o the_o prevent_a mercy_n of_o god_n the_o second_o channel_n in_o which_o these_o mercy_n may_v be_v discover_v be_v in_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o certain_o here_o we_o may_v cry_v out_o also_o that_o they_o be_v more_o than_o can_v be_v number_v for_o what_o sin_n what_o temptation_n what_o terror_n and_o trouble_n of_o heart_n what_o wound_n and_o gash_n of_o soul_n do_v any_o of_o the_o godly_a fall_n into_o and_o thou_o may_v not_o also_o be_v plunge_v into_o the_o same_o who_o make_v thou_o to_o differ_v why_o must_v not_o the_o branch_n ingraff_v in_o insult_v over_o that_o which_o be_v break_v off_o but_o take_v heed_n and_o tremble_v be_v it_o not_o because_o god_n may_v break_v off_o those_o also_o oh_o then_o with_o bleed_v and_o melt_a heart_n acknowledge_v and_o say_v o_o lord_n what_o will_v have_v become_v of_o i_o if_o leave_v to_o such_o a_o passion_n if_o forsake_v in_o such_o a_o temptation_n why_o be_v it_o that_o i_o have_v not_o the_o guilt_n the_o condemnation_n that_o other_o lie_v under_o be_v it_o not_o because_o thy_o goodness_n do_v keep_v i_o even_o as_o david_n be_v preserve_v in_o respect_n of_o that_o business_n of_o the_o man_n of_o keilah_n he_o ask_v of_o god_n whether_o they_o will_v deliver_v he_o into_o saul_n hand_n and_o god_n tell_v he_o they_o will_v certain_o do_v it_o thereupon_o david_n will_v not_o commit_v himself_o to_o they_o it_o be_v thus_o often_o in_o respect_n of_o thy_o soul_n if_o thou_o go_v to_o such_o a_o place_n if_o thou_o be_v put_v into_o such_o a_o temptation_n if_o place_v in_o such_o a_o condition_n or_o relation_n god_n know_v that_o this_o will_v prove_v a_o snare_n to_o thou_o it_o will_v be_v a_o ruin_n to_o thou_o therefore_o the_o lord_n do_v so_o order_n by_o his_o mercy_n that_o thou_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o that_o condition_n divine_n have_v one_o kind_n of_o grace_n that_o they_o call_v gratia_n praeveniens_fw-la which_o do_v prevent_v we_o it_o come_v upon_o we_o before_o we_o have_v any_o thought_n any_o will_n or_o desire_v about_o it_o as_o god_n say_v he_o be_v find_v of_o those_o that_o seek_v he_o not_o and_o true_o such_o prevent_a grace_n we_o do_v not_o only_o need_v at_o our_o first_o conversion_n but_o all_o our_o life_n long_o as_o much_o as_o our_o daily_a bread_n grace_n must_v prevent_v our_o mind_n our_o will_n our_o affection_n otherwise_o some_o sin_n some_o lust_n or_o other_o will_v immediate_o fasten_v upon_o we_o let_v then_o the_o godly_a soul_n remember_v what_o a_o deep_a and_o vast_a ocean_n this_o be_v of_o prevent_a grace_n the_o bottom_n whereof_o thou_o can_v never_o dive_v into_o as_o paul_n say_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o be_o what_o i_o be_o so_o say_v austin_n he_o may_v have_v add_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n i_o be_o not_o what_o i_o be_o not_o it_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o thou_o be_v not_o a_o wither_a tree_n a_o barren_a wilderness_n it_o be_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n keep_v thou_o from_o hypocrisy_n and_o from_o apostasy_n what_o a_o sinner_n and_o evil_a wretch_n thou_o be_v not_o it_o be_v whole_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n three_o although_o the_o godly_a do_v thus_o judge_v of_o prevent_a mercy_n as_o well_o mercy_n as_o of_o positive_a mercy_n yet_o because_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o account_v of_o mercy_n by_o sense_n and_o feel_v we_o have_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o godly_a be_v exceedingly-forgetfull_a many_o time_n about_o prevent_a mercy_n it_o be_v often_o say_v we_o never_o prize_v a_o mercy_n till_o we_o want_v it_o how_o precious_a be_v health_n to_o a_o disease_a man_n ease_n to_o a_o torment_a man_n and_o so_o also_o we_o never_o account_v any_o evil_a grievous_a but_o while_o we_o feel_v it_o while_o it_o be_v upon_o our_o back_n and_o thereupon_o we_o be_v most_o sensible_a of_o such_o mercy_n which_o do_v take_v off_o this_o burden_n from_o we_o thus_o it_o be_v indeed_o because_o we_o judge_v of_o all_o thing_n according_a to_o our_o sense_n but_o if_o we_o do_v let_v judgement_n work_v than_o the_o godly_a soul_n will_v be_v likewise_o great_o enlarge_v for_o the_o keep_n of_o evil_n as_o well_o as_o remove_n of_o it_o the_o evil_n we_o never_o feel_v yet_o because_o ready_a to_o come_v upon_o we_o have_v not_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n keep_v it_o off_o be_v affectionate_o take_v notice_n of_o by_o that_o soul_n which_o delight_v to_o search_v out_o the_o work_n of_o god_n towards_o it_o the_o godly_a ought_v not_o be_v so_o brutish_a as_o to_o be_v teach_v only_o by_o thorn_n or_o to_o be_v like_o the_o horse_n which_o must_v have_v always_o the_o bit_n and_o bridle_n prevent_v mercy_n be_v as_o real_a a_o mercy_n as_o a_o positive_a one_o god_n be_v as_o true_o good_a in_o keep_v of_o evil_n from_o thou_o as_o removing_z of_o it_o shall_v god_n therefore_o lose_v such_o of_o his_o glory_n and_o honour_n because_o thou_o will_v judge_v only_o by_o sense_n four_o that_o therefore_o the_o child_n of_o god_n may_v know_v it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o mercy_n go_v further_o in_o the_o way_n of_o praise_n to_o god_n then_o usual_o they_o do_v let_v they_o consider_v these_o ensue_a rule_n concern_v prevent_a mercy_n and_o 1._o persuade_v thyself_o of_o this_o that_o whatsoever_o evil_a thou_o have_v deserve_v by_o thy_o sin_n and_o be_v not_o bring_v upon_o thou_o look_v upon_o this_o as_o a_o prevent_a mercy_n and_o be_v affect_v wit_n it_o as_o much_o as_o with_o any_o positive_a mercy_n and_o true_o this_o very_a particular_a may_v be_v like_o a_o live_a coal_n from_o the_o altar_n to_o warm_v and_o purify_v thy_o heart_n for_o haste_n thou_o not_o deserve_v all_o the_o curse_n threaten_v in_o the_o law_n as_o soon_o as_o ever_o as_o thou_o have_v sin_v may_v not_o the_o law_n of_o god_n immediate_o challenge_v thou_o take_v thou_o by_o the_o throat_n and_o hale_v thou_o to_o hell_n well_o if_o so_o consider_v this_o prevent_a mercy_n of_o god_n that_o keep_v thou_o from_o they_o may_v thou_o not_o true_o say_v remember_v the_o desert_n of_o thy_o sin_n not_o only_o the_o god_n who_o deliver_v from_o so_o great_a a_o death_n but_o also_o so_o great_a a_o hell_n and_o so_o great_a a_o damnation_n be_v not_o thy_o heart_n like_o a_o clod_n of_o earth_n like_o a_o stone_n how_o great_o will_v thou_o be_v affect_v in_o this_o particular_a say_v it_o be_v the_o lord_n mercy_n i_o be_o not_o in_o the_o grave_n it_o be_v the_o lord_n mercy_n i_o be_o not_o roar_v in_o hell_n for_o the_o law_n curse_v i_o i_o have_v transgress_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o keep_v off_o the_o execution_n of_o that_o dreadful_a sentence_n but_o the_o mere_a mercy_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o if_o thou_o be_v dead_a and_o raise_v again_o if_o damn_v in_o hell_n and_o yet_o deliver_v out_o will_v not_o thy_o mouth_n and_o heart_n be_v fill_v all_o over_o with_o blessing_n and_o praise_v of_o god_n why_o not_o then_o when_o god_n keep_v thou_o out_o of_o this_o destruction_n every_o moment_n it_o be_v observe_v as_o the_o demonstration_n of_o god_n great_a power_n and_o mercy_n that_o the_o water_n of_o the_o sea_n be_v high_a than_o the_o earth_n yet_o they_o be_v so_o check_v and_o bound_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n that_o they_o do_v not_o overflow_v the_o earth_n this_o be_v the_o mere_a prevent_a mercy_n of_o god_n insomuch_o that_o luther_n say_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v as_o wonderful_o preserve_v from_o destruction_n by_o the_o sea_n as_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n be_v in_o their_o passage_n to_o canaan_n when_o the_o water_n stand_v like_o wall_n on_o both_o side_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o any_o mercy_n we_o enjoy_v if_o we_o consider_v what_o the_o law_n threaten_v how_o that_o curse_v what_o we_o have_v deserve_v it_o be_v a_o wonder_n of_o wonder_n that_o every_o hour_n we_o do_v not_o fall_v into_o hell_n therefore_o if_o thou_o find_v thy_o heart_n not_o affect_v with_o these_o prevent_a mercy_n lay_v this_o particular_a close_n to_o thy_o soul_n mercy_n 2._o consider_v that_o whatsoever_o evil_a do_v actual_o fall_v upon_o any_o other_o in_o the_o world_n and_o not_o on_o thou_o this_o be_v a_o prevent_a mercy_n be_v another_o sick_a and_o not_o thou_o be_v another_o poor_a not_o thou_o this_o be_v a_o privative_a mercy_n for_o what_o reason_n can_v there_o be_v give_v of_o thy_o difference_n from_o other_o but_o only_o
such_o a_o trouble_n that_o come_v in_o with_o so_o seasonable_a a_o deliverance_n and_o when_o thou_o know_v his_o name_n thus_o will_v thou_o not_o trust_v in_o he_o 3._o it_o be_v a_o special_a way_n to_o keep_v the_o heart_n in_o a_o serene_a and_o quiet_a frame_n to_o future_a exercise_v trust_n in_o god_n for_o the_o future_a not_o only_o to_o bless_v god_n for_o the_o mercy_n we_o have_v and_o do_v enjoy_v but_o also_o as_o confident_o and_o secure_o to_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o all_o future_a thing_n that_o shall_v befall_v we_o as_o if_o we_o do_v for_o the_o present_a enjoy_v what_o we_o can_v desire_v we_o shall_v find_v that_o for_o want_v of_o this_o trust_n in_o god_n for_o the_o future_a all_o our_o anxiety_n and_o disquietness_n do_v arise_v we_o do_v continual_o create_v unto_o ourselves_o constant_a molestation_n of_o spirit_n because_o we_o make_v supposition_n about_o the_o future_a what_o if_o i_o shall_v be_v bring_v into_o such_o a_o condition_n what_o if_o such_o a_o sad_a estate_n shall_v befall_v i_o what_o if_o i_o be_v leave_v unto_o such_o a_o temptation_n thus_o constant_a conflict_n about_o what_o be_v to_o come_v take_v off_o all_o joy_n and_o thankfulness_n for_o what_o we_o have_v for_o the_o present_a therefore_o it_o be_v a_o special_a duty_n in_o the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o be_v act_v dependent_o upon_o god_n for_o the_o future_a as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o present_a our_o saviour_n mat._n 6._o 25._o do_v by_o several_a choice_n and_o precious_a argument_n endeavour_v to_o conquer_v that_o ill_a temper_n in_o his_o disciple_n who_o be_v so_o solicitous_a what_o will_v befall_v they_o to_o morrow_n how_o they_o shall_v be_v clothe_v hereafter_o how_o they_o shall_v live_v hereafter_o therefore_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v to_o live_v with_o as_o much_o joy_n and_o contentation_n in_o respect_n of_o future_a thing_n as_o if_o they_o be_v present_a and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o promise_n in_o scripture_n be_v sometime_o express_v in_o the_o past_a tense_n and_o sometime_o in_o the_o present_a because_o we_o be_v also_o as_o much_o assure_v of_o every_o good_a thing_n promise_v as_o if_o we_o have_v it_o already_o in_o our_o hand_n 4._o the_o good_a thing_n we_o be_v to_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o as_o future_a be_v both_o temporal_a spiritual_a and_o temporal_a thing_n though_o paul_n speak_v here_o and_o david_n many_o time_n in_o his_o psalm_n of_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o temporal_a mercy_n yet_o the_o most_o noble_a and_o excellent_a object_n of_o our_o confidence_n be_v to_o be_v eternal_a glory_n or_o the_o enjoy_v of_o god_n in_o that_o state_n of_o blessedness_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o god_n be_v sometime_o and_o everlasting_a glory_n be_v sometime_o call_v our_o hope_n because_o in_o the_o expectation_n of_o these_o thing_n the_o soul_n be_v daily_o support_v and_o certain_o if_o the_o husbandman_n will_v not_o plough_v but_o in_o hope_n neither_o will_v a_o believer_n endure_v all_o those_o suffering_n and_o affliction_n for_o christ_n sake_n but_o for_o this_o hope_n this_o trust_v to_o have_v that_o unspeakable_a joy_n hereafter_o and_o to_o be_v for_o ever_o with_o god_n shall_v be_v put_v forth_o more_o vigorous_o by_o we_o and_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o excellent_o useful_a to_o wean_v we_o from_o the_o world_n and_o to_o make_v we_o part_v with_o our_o dear_a comfort_n for_o christ_n sake_n yea_o as_o be_v hint_v before_o we_o be_v to_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o these_o temporal_a thing_n only_o as_o they_o be_v conducible_a thereby_o because_o god_n have_v promise_v they_o no_o further_o and_o so_o far_o they_o be_v absolute_o promise_v insomuch_o that_o we_o may_v no_o more_o distrust_n god_n about_o temporal_a thing_n so_o far_o as_o necessary_a to_o our_o salvation_n than_o we_o may_v of_o spiritual_a and_o gracious_a thing_n which_o may_v detect_v the_o hypocrisy_n of_o our_o heart_n whereby_o we_o please_v ourselves_o as_o if_o we_o trust_v on_o christ_n for_o our_o justification_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n when_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o we_o distrust_v he_o about_o a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n or_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n only_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v how_o paul_n and_o any_o godly_a man_n can_v trust_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o the_o future_a about_o temporal_a mercy_n see_v object_n that_o the_o godly_a may_v many_o time_n be_v without_o they_o and_o if_o paul_n be_v deliver_v once_o by_o god_n it_o dothnot_v follow_v he_o must_v be_v deliver_v every_o time_n for_o than_o he_o can_v not_o have_v suffer_v martyrdom_n as_o he_o do_v at_o last_o and_o why_o may_v not_o john_n the_o baptist_n and_o james_n have_v trust_v in_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v deliver_v which_o if_o they_o have_v do_v it_o have_v be_v a_o false_a trust_n to_o this_o some_o say_v that_o we_o be_v as_o absolute_o bind_v to_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o every_o temporal_a mercy_n as_o we_o be_v for_o any_o spiritual_a answer_n and_o that_o it_o be_v mere_o for_o want_v of_o faith_n or_o trust_v in_o god_n if_o we_o have_v not_o all_o the_o temporal_a deliverance_n we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o if_o a_o man_n die_v of_o the_o plague_n they_o will_v say_v it_o be_v for_o want_v of_o faith_n in_o god_n but_o although_o no_o doubt_n the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v great_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o their_o diffidence_n and_o for_o want_v of_o trust_v in_o god_n they_o lose_v many_o outward_a mercy_n yet_o because_o temporal_a thing_n be_v not_o so_o absolute_o promise_v as_o spiritual_a therefore_o there_o can_v be_v such_o a_o absolute_a trust_n for_o they_o other_o they_o say_v that_o we_o be_v to_o trust_v in_o gon_n conditional_o to_o rest_v upon_o he_o for_o this_o and_o that_o mercy_n with_o this_o condition_n if_o god_n will_n but_o those_o that_o say_v we_o be_v absolute_o to_o pray_v for_o temporal_a thing_n these_o must_v also_o conclude_v that_o we_o be_v to_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o they_o absolute_o likewise_o and_o therefore_o such_o do_v not_o like_o that_o expression_n by_o way_n of_o condition_n when_o we_o pray_v for_o these_o outward_a mercy_n they_o like_v not_o this_o expression_n in_o prayer_n father_n if_o it_o be_v thy_o will_n recover_v such_o a_o one_o that_o be_v sick_a they_o think_v this_o be_v not_o a_o prayer_n because_o from_o a_o conditional_a supposition_n no_o certain_a thing_n be_v infer_v other_o therefore_o they_o conclude_v we_o be_v to_o pray_v absolute_o for_o temporal_a thing_n and_o by_o consequence_n we_o may_v also_o add_v to_o trust_v for_o they_o only_a there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o submission_n in_o our_o spirit_n that_o if_o god_n give_v we_o not_o our_o request_n we_o yield_v ourselves_o up_o to_o his_o holy_a and_o wise_a will_n thus_o with_o they_o though_o we_o may_v not_o pray_v with_o condition_n yet_o we_o ought_v with_o subordination_n and_o happy_o they_o that_o speak_v of_o this_o condition_n mean_v no_o more_o than_o subordination_n there_o be_v then_o a_o difference_n about_o trust_v in_o god_n concern_v spiritual_a and_o temporal_a thing_n eternal_a glory_n absolute_o and_o such_o a_o measure_n of_o grace_n as_o will_v bear_v we_o through_o all_o temptation_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o total_o and_o final_o be_v overcome_v by_o they_o temporal_a thing_n with_o subordination_n yet_o so_o far_o also_o absolute_o ab_fw-la out_o they_o that_o no_o good_a thing_n shall_v be_v withhold_v from_o we_o so_o that_o we_o may_v with_o paul_n rom._n 8._o in_o a_o holy_a triumph_n profess_v that_o neither_o life_n nor_o death_n neither_o thing_n present_a or_o thing_n to_o come_v shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n serm._n lxxviii_o of_o motive_n to_o trust_v in_o god_n and_o the_o opposite_n to_o it_o presumption_n and_o despair_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 10._o in_o who_o we_o trust_v he_o will_v yet_o deliver_v experience_n of_o god_n mercy_n that_o be_v past_a you_o hear_v may_v just_o excourage_v we_o to_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o the_o future_a now_o although_o much_o have_v be_v say_v concern_v this_o necessary_a grace_n of_o trust_v with_o the_o object_n in_o which_o and_o for_o which_o yet_o some_o particular_n be_v to_o be_v add_v for_o further_a explication_n as_o first_o there_o be_v some_o peculiar_a and_o proper_a motive_n to_o trust_v in_o god_n which_o believer_n be_v the_o personal_a privilege_n of_o some_o believer_n only_o and_o there_o be_v general_a common_a one_o which_o do_v belong_v to_o all_o the_o godly_a as_o for_o example_n when_o david_n in_o that_o place_n mention_v before_o argue_v that_o god_n who_o have_v deliver_v from_o the_o bear_n and_o lion_n will_v also_o from_o that_o uncircumcised_a philistim_o we_o may_v very_o well_o conclude_v that_o david_n in_o that_o
for_o they_o have_v not_o return_v to_o glorify_v i_o it_o be_v love_n to_o ourselves_o it_o be_v a_o self-seeking_a that_o make_v we_o pray_v but_o it_o will_v argue_v love_n to_o god_n and_o a_o honour_v of_o he_o when_o we_o return_v praise_n to_o he_o it_o be_v therefore_o the_o duty_n of_o minister_n to_o press_v you_o upon_o the_o duty_n of_o praise_v of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o of_o pray_v unto_o he_o many_o be_v horrible_o negligent_a in_o both_o some_o be_v more_o often_o in_o prayer_n than_o they_o be_v in_o thanksgiving_n whereas_o god_n be_v say_v to_o inhabit_v the_o praise_n of_o his_o people_n psalm_n 22._o 3._o as_o well_o as_o he_o be_v the_o god_n that_o hear_v prayer_n psalm_n 65._o 2._o god_n dwell_v in_o the_o praise_n of_o israel_n that_o be_v in_o or_o among_o israel_n continual_o praise_v of_o he_o or_o else_o it_o be_v to_o show_v that_o as_o a_o man_n dwell_v in_o his_o house_n constant_o reside_v there_o so_o god_n be_v daily_o administer_a matter_n of_o praise_n to_o his_o people_n imply_v thereby_o that_o there_o be_v no_o time_n no_o place_n no_o condition_n wherein_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o bless_v and_o praise_v god_n those_o many_o psalm_n which_o david_n make_v declare_v how_o necessary_a a_o duty_n it_o be_v and_o how_o much_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v to_o exercise_v themselves_o therein_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o david_n profess_v he_o will_v never_o intermit_v this_o duty_n as_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v without_o cease_v so_o to_o praise_n god_n without_o cease_v psalm_n 145._o 1_o 2._o i_o will_v bless_v thy_o name_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o i_o will_v bless_v thou_o every_o day_n see_v what_o a_o ardent_a affection_n david_n have_v to_o this_o for_o although_o the_o apostle_n james_n say_v be_v any_o man_n afflict_v let_v he_o pray_v be_v any_o man_n merry_a let_v he_o sing_v psalm_n james_n 5._o 13._o imply_v thereby_o that_o there_o be_v special_a time_n wherein_o one_o duty_n be_v to_o be_v exercise_v more_o than_o another_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o time_n wherein_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o give_v his_o people_n occasion_n to_o give_v thanks_o to_o he_o that_o your_o heart_n may_v be_v both_o right_o instruct_v in_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o duty_n and_o awe_v against_o all_o slothfullness_n therein_o take_v notice_n of_o these_o ensue_a particular_n 1._o what_o be_v require_v to_o this_o duty_n and_o 2._o the_o motive_n thereunto_o and_o first_o to_o praise_n god_n there_o be_v require_v a_o acknowledgement_n by_o faith_n that_o mercy_n god_n and_o god_n alone_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o the_o mercy_n both_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a that_o we_o do_v enjoy_v hence_o a_o atheist_n can_v never_o be_v thankful_a because_o he_o ow_v no_o god_n the_o giver_n of_o mercy_n and_o the_o practical_a atheist_n who_o live_v as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o god_n he_o like_v the_o swine_n eat_v indeed_o upon_o the_o fruit_n that_o he_o find_v upon_o the_o ground_n but_o never_o look_v up_o to_o the_o tree_n from_o whence_o it_o fall_v now_o this_o practical_a atheism_n do_v reign_v every_o where_o and_o that_o cause_v the_o universal_a ingratitude_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n man_n take_v these_o mercy_n as_o so_o many_o debt_n belong_v to_o they_o they_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o the_o thing_n of_o a_o natural_a course_n not_o as_o the_o dispensation_n of_o a_o free_a and_o voluntary_a agent_n even_o the_o great_a god_n who_o give_v they_o and_o deny_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n david_n therefore_o in_o his_o psalm_n do_v so_o often_o magnify_v god_n by_o many_o glorious_a title_n thereby_o profess_v that_o from_o god_n come_v every_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n hence_o also_o the_o apostle_n james_n cap._n 4._o 15._o make_v it_o the_o duty_n of_o every_o one_o in_o their_o daily_a resolution_n to_o buy_v and_o sell_v or_o to_o go_v to_o such_o a_o place_n to_o say_v if_o the_o lord_n will_v declare_v hereby_o that_o it_o be_v from_o god_n that_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o perform_v any_o natural_a or_o civil_a action_n i_o also_o add_v that_o it_o must_v be_v a_o acknowledgement_n of_o god_n alone_o because_o in_o spiritual_a mercy_n many_o corrupt_a teacher_n have_v divide_v the_o kingdom_n between_o god_n gracious_a power_n and_o man_n man_n freewill_n therefore_o the_o papist_n the_o socinian_o the_o arminian_n these_o do_v either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n destroy_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o spiritual_a mercy_n especial_o in_o that_o whereby_o one_o man_n differ_v from_o another_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n do_v so_o evident_o attribute_v to_o god_n only_o 1_o cor._n 4._o 7._o that_o they_o appropriate_v to_o themselves_o the_o good_a use_n of_o freewill_n or_o the_o improve_n of_o grace_n offer_v be_v make_v man_n work_n and_o then_o certain_o we_o be_v to_o glory_v more_o in_o ourselves_o then_o in_o god_n but_o if_o we_o be_v to_o give_v god_n thanks_n for_o every_o morsel_n of_o bread_n we_o eat_v shall_v we_o not_o much_o rather_o for_o every_o spiritual_a mercy_n to_o the_o soul_n it_o be_v tully_n observation_n that_o though_o their_o ancestor_n praise_v god_n for_o their_o prosperity_n and_o success_n yet_o they_o never_o do_v for_o their_o virtuous_a action_n think_v that_o absurd_a as_o if_o unless_o they_o be_v not_o do_v by_o their_o own_o power_n there_o be_v no_o commendation_n due_a to_o they_o and_o too_o much_o of_o this_o heathenish_a and_o philosophical_a leaven_n do_v still_o sour_a the_o mind_n of_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o church_n know_v then_o so_o much_o as_o thou_o set_v up_o a_o freewill_n beyond_o scripture_n bound_n so_o far_o thou_o take_v off_o from_o the_o duty_n of_o praise_v and_o bless_v of_o god_n beside_o we_o say_v god_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v in_o every_o mercy_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a thou_o that_o pray_v god_n will_v give_v thou_o thy_o daily_a bread_n will_v thou_o not_o praise_n god_n when_o he_o do_v it_o yet_o how_o sottish_a and_o brutish_a be_v many_o person_n and_o family_n when_o they_o go_v to_o meal_n and_o rise_v from_o meal_n and_o no_o thanks_n or_o praise_n be_v give_v to_o god_n shall_v not_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n move_v thou_o when_o he_o have_v but_o some_o loaf_n of_o barley_n and_o a_o little_a fish_n yet_o he_o bless_a god_n before_o he_o do_v eat_v thereof_o how_o then_o come_v it_o about_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o unthankful_a wretch_n that_o take_v their_o food_n and_o yet_o never_o thank_v god_n that_o give_v it_o thou_o will_v account_v that_o poor_a man_n a_o proud_a or_o unworthy_a person_n to_o who_o thou_o shall_v give_v some_o food_n in_o his_o necessity_n and_o he_o never_o so_o much_o as_o open_v his_o mouth_n to_o give_v one_o word_n of_o thankfulness_n to_o thou_o thou_o deal_v more_o froward_o and_o wicked_o with_o god_n and_o if_o for_o temporal_a mercy_n then_o much_o more_o for_o spiritual_a if_o thy_o meat_n thy_o drink_n thy_o raiment_n be_v god_n mercy_n much_o more_o be_v thy_o regeneration_n thy_o justification_n which_o do_v so_o far_o transcend_v the_o power_n of_o nature_n 2._o to_o this_o duty_n of_o praise_v god_n be_v not_o only_o require_v these_o general_a act_n faith_n of_o faith_n whereby_o we_o own_v he_o for_o the_o jehova_n and_o the_o creator_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n but_o also_o those_o particular_a act_n whereby_o we_o do_v apply_v and_o appropriate_v he_o as_o our_o god_n in_o particular_a for_o it_o be_v this_o particular_a apply_v act_n of_o faith_n that_o make_v the_o heart_n full_a of_o praise_n and_o thanksgivihg_n therefore_o you_o may_v observe_v david_n in_o his_o psalm_n not_o only_o call_v god_n a_o buckler_n a_o refuge_n a_o strong_a tower_n but_o his_o buckler_n his_o strong_a tower_n his_o god_n neither_o can_v we_o be_v thankful_a in_o spiritual_a mercy_n about_o pardon_n of_o sin_n support_v in_o temptation_n till_o with_o paul_n gal._n 2_o we_o say_v who_o love_v we_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o and_o this_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o we_o urge_v the_o people_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o diffidence_n not_o to_o give_v way_n to_o distrust_v and_o doubtful_a perplexity_n of_o soul_n because_o while_o these_o be_v predominant_a they_o can_v walk_v thankful_o and_o give_v the_o glory_n that_o be_v due_a to_o he_o 3._o love_n to_o god_n because_o he_o hear_v our_o prayer_n will_v raise_v up_o the_o heart_n exceed_o god_n to_o thanksgiving_n psal_n 116._o 1._o i_o will_v love_v the_o lord_n because_o he_o have_v hear_v my_o supplication_n that_o god_n shall_v hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o one_o so_o unworthy_a and_o pollute_a as_o thou_o be_v that_o god_n shall_v do_v thou_o good_a who_o be_v so_o evil_a this_o freeness_n
what_o be_v imply_v in_o god_n be_v our_o father_n 120_o what_o in_o the_o expression_n our_o father_n 121_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n 140_o what_o be_v employ_v in_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n 141_o 142_o 143_o 144_o fear_n of_o death_n vid._n death_n flesh_n faith_n and_o flesh_n pass_v different_a judgement_n upon_o affliction_n 274_o etc._n etc._n of_o the_o phrase_n walk_v according_o to_o the_o flesh_n 520_o walk_v by_o principle_n of_o flesh_n make_v man_n unconstant_a 521_o what_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o flesh_n 521_o 522_o 523_o form_n how_o the_o form_n of_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v a_o note_n or_o mark_v of_o it_o 61_o g_o glory_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o christian_n especial_o minister_n to_o lay_v out_o themselves_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 500_o 501_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 501_o 502_o 503_o what_o be_v require_v to_o enable_v we_o to_o do_v all_o thing_n for_o god_n glory_n 504_o glory_v vid._n rejoice_v god_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god_n 117_o god_n alone_o can_v give_v grace_n and_o peace_n to_o his_o people_n 118_o 119_o god_n a_o father_n especial_o to_o true_a believer_n 120_o what_o it_o imply_v ib._n he_o be_v a_o father_n to_o the_o weak_a as_o well_o as_o strong_a believer_n 121_o he_o be_v a_o true_a god_n 536_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n v_o i_o de_fw-fr father_n godly_a true_o godly_a though_o eminent_a yet_o humble_a 37_o godliness_n and_o a_o godly_a life_n be_v very_o convince_a and_o of_o great_a advantage_n 455_o 456_o why_o oft_o not_o convince_a 456_o 457_o grace_n four_o acception_n of_o the_o word_n grace_n 66_o grace_n to_o be_v desire_v before_o all_o other_o thing_n 100_o seven_o proposition_n discover_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 100_o 101_o 102_o what_o be_v the_o opposite_n of_o grace_n 102_o who_o be_v fit_a subject_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 103_o 104_o 105_o many_o err_v about_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o be_v extreme_o opposite_a one_o to_o another_o 105_o four_o scripture-character_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 106_o 107_o what_o be_v requisite_a to_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o our_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n 395_o 396_o what_o to_o a_o experimental_a discern_v of_o our_o grace_n 397_o 398_o the_o godly_a ascribe_v all_o to_o grace_n 433_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 433_o 434_o what_o be_v that_o grace_n which_o the_o apostle_n exalt_v above_o fleshly_a wisdom_n 434_o 435_o 436_o what_o be_v the_o grace_n which_o the_o apostle_n acknowledge_v in_o his_o ministay_n 434_o 435_o 436_o 437_o etc._n etc._n grace_n the_o earnest_n of_o glory_n vid._n earnest_n grow_v in_o what_o thing_n believer_n be_v to_o be_v always_o grow_v 497_o 498_o h_n hope_n of_o paul_n hope_n concern_v the_o corinthian_n 245_o hope_v divine_a and_o moral_a 246_o it_o be_v great_a encouragement_n in_o a_o minister_n to_o see_v good_a ground_n of_o hope_n in_o his_o people_n ibid._n what_o thing_n be_v they_o which_o make_v paul_n have_v such_o a_o hope_n of_o the_o corinthian_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o their_o people_n 247_o 248_o 249_o humility_n humility_n in_o the_o godly_a though_o eminent_a 37_o wherein_o it_o discover_v itself_o 38_o 39_o what_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o it_o 39_o 40_o i_o jesus_n of_o the_o name_n jesus_n 24_o how_o christ_n be_v a_o jesus_n a_o saviour_n 25_o 565_o what_o kind_n of_o saviour_n he_o be_v 26_o he_o be_v a_o lord_n 122_o four_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 123_o 124_o 125_o what_o be_v employ_v in_o his_o be_v a_o saviour_n 565_o 566_o 567_o to_o who_o he_o be_v a_o saviour_n 567_o 568_o inconstancy_n inconstancy_n a_o great_a sin_n in_o all_o especial_o in_o minister_n 510_o 546_o 547_o 548_o etc._n etc._n of_o its_o sinfulness_n in_o civil_a respect_n 511_o 512_o its_o aggravation_n 513_o 514_o its_o sinfulesse_a in_o spiritual_a respect_n 515_o 516_o motive_n against_o it_o 517_o 518_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o 553_o joy_n a_o twofold_a joy_n direct_v or_o reflex_n 175._o it_o be_v either_o spiritual_a or_o corporeal_a 176_o judgement-day_n vid._n day_n k_o knowledge_n certain_a knowledge_n vid._n assurance_n l_o learning_n learn_v a_o excellent_a qualification_n 7_o sometime_o through_o the_o corruption_n of_o man_n it_o be_v make_v use_n of_o for_o the_o promote_a the_o devil_n kingdom_n ibid._n it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o learning_n 8_o learning_n not_o sufficient_a without_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n ib_a lord_n christ_n our_o lord_n vid._n christ_n lie_v lie_v not_o consistent_a with_o godliness_n 530_o proposition_n concern_v the_o nature_n and_o kind_n of_o lie_v 531_o 532_o 533_o mean_n against_o it_o 534_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o 534_o 535_o m_o means_n mean_v to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o notwithstanding_o our_o trust_n in_o god_n 355_o two_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 355_o 356_o how_o we_o shall_v make_v use_n of_o mean_n and_o yet_o rely_v whole_o upon_o christ_n 356_o 357_o 358_o meditation_n meditation_n upon_o god_n mercy_n very_o useful_a 133_o mercy_n of_o the_o variety_n of_o god_n mercy_n 144_o 145_o 146_o the_o property_n of_o god_n mercy_n 146_o who_o be_v the_o fit_a object_n of_o god_n mercy_n 147_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o conceive_v of_o god_n mercy_n without_o scripture-light_n 155_o mercy_n acknowledge_v by_o believer_n not_o only_o in_o general_n but_o with_o all_o their_o aggravation_n 330_o 331_o wherein_o they_o use_v to_o aggravate_v their_o mercy_n 331_o 332_o 333_o 334_o mercy_n not_o only_o positive_a but_o privative_a and_o prevent_v to_o be_v account_v of_o 335_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 335_o 336_o etc._n etc._n rule_v to_o affect_v our_o heart_n concern_v prevent_a mercy_n 337_o 338_o 339_o mercy_n be_v not_o only_o bestow_v but_o continue_v by_o god_n 340_o reason_n of_o it_o 342_o 343_o all_o mercy_n come_v from_o god_n 369_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n vid._n father_n minister_n it_o be_v a_o minister_n duty_n by_o all_o lawful_a mean_n to_o promote_v the_o church_n he_o be_v relate_v to_o 81_o minister_n meet_v with_o much_o opposition_n from_o worldly_a professor_n 260_o 261_o mercy_n vouchsafe_v to_o minister_n be_v to_o be_v account_v as_o church-mercy_n 378_o minister_n ought_v not_o to_o use_v fleshly_a wisdom_n 423_o godliness_n in_o a_o minister_n especial_o advantageous_a 454_o 455_o 456_o it_o be_v a_o happy_a thing_n for_o minister_n and_o people_n to_o rejoice_v in_o one_o another_o 468_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 469_o 470_o how_o a_o people_n ought_v to_o rejoice_v in_o their_o minister_n 470_o 471_o wherein_o a_o minister_n have_v cause_n to_o rejoice_v over_o his_o people_n 473_o 474_o 475_o etc._n etc._n where_o a_o minister_n have_v hope_n of_o do_v good_a he_o be_v encourage_v to_o abide_v 490_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 490_o 491_o 492_o a_o minister_n hope_v of_o do_v good_a shall_v be_v matter_n of_o joy_n to_o he_o 493_o minister_n especial_o aught_o to_o lay_v out_o themselves_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 501_o 502_o 503_o a_o minister_n changeablenesse_n make_v his_o ministry_n useless_a 546_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 546_o 547_o 548_o etc._n etc._n where_o there_o be_v any_o fault_n in_o one_o minister_n the_o people_n be_v apt_a to_o lay_v it_o upon_o all_o 572_o it_o be_v a_o happy_a thing_n when_o all_o minister_n agree_v to_o advance_v christ_n 273_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o agreement_n 573_o 574_o the_o true_a minister_n of_o god_n truth_n always_o the_o same_o 575_o minister_n have_v no_o dominion_n over_o their_o people_n faith_n 684_o what_o be_v not_o imply_v in_o that_o truth_n 684_o 685_o what_o be_v 686_o 687_o minister_n ought_v to_o comfort_v their_o people_n 689_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 689_o 690_o reason_n of_o it_o 691_o it_o be_v of_o great_a consequence_n that_o the_o young_a minister_n shall_v have_v the_o guidance_n of_o the_o more_o experience_a 49_o ministry_n what_o be_v the_o grace_n the_o apostle_n acknowledge_v in_o his_o ministry_n 435_o 436_o 437_o 438_o etc._n etc._n god_n presence_n with_o the_o ministry_n render_v the_o people_n inexcusable_a 448_o 449_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 450_o 451_o wherein_o the_o success_n of_o a_o faithful_a ministry_n be_v see_v 451_o 452_o a_o constant_a ministry_n necessary_a for_o every_o church_n 495_o for_o what_o end_v 495_o 496_o 497_o where_o the_o ministry_n have_v wrought_v spiritual_o it_o be_v esteem_v high_o 509_o the_o fail_n of_o minister_n be_v oft_o cast_v upon_o the_o ministry_n 541_o proposition_n illustrate_v it_o 541_o 542_o 543_o where_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v great_a the_o help_n of_o other_o be_v require_v 571_o ministerial_a power_n be_v to_o be_v manage_v with_o much_o prudence_n 678_o the_o ministerial_a
for_o christ_n serm._n xlvii_o what_o qualification_n they_o must_v be_v endow_v with_o who_o suffer_v in_o a_o right_a manner_n for_o christ_n serm._n xlviii_o how_o many_o way_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v christ_n comfortteh_o those_o who_o suffer_v for_o he_o serm._n xlix_o how_o and_o why_o god_n always_o proportion_v a_o saint_n comfort_n to_o his_o suffering_n and_o often_o make_v they_o to_o overflow_v and_o why_o he_o often_o deny_v comfort_n to_o his_o people_n in_o their_o trouble_n serm._n l._n 2_o cor._n 1._o 6._o and_o whether_o we_o be_v afflict_v it_o be_v for_o your_o consolation_n and_o salvation_n which_o be_v effectual_a in_o the_o endure_a the_o same_o suffering_n which_o we_o also_o suffer_v or_o whether_o we_o be_v comfort_v it_o be_v for_o your_o consolation_n and_o salvation_n the_o saint_n suffering_n be_v for_o the_o church_n good_a serm._n li._n the_o affliction_n which_o other_o suffer_v for_o christ_n make_v much_o for_o our_o comfort_n and_o salvation_n serm._n lii_o how_o salvation_n be_v promote_v and_o advance_v by_o our_o suffering_n for_o christ_n serm._n liii_o affliction_n not_o in_o themselves_o but_o as_o improve_v by_o patience_n conduce_v to_o our_o salvation_n what_o go_v to_o the_o produce_v of_o patience_n serm._n liv._o motive_n exciting_a we_o to_o a_o patient_a submission_n unto_o god_n under_o all_o the_o affliction_n he_o lay_v upon_o we_o serm._n lv._o all_o the_o dispensation_n of_o god_n carry_v on_o and_o further_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n serm._n lvi_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 7._o and_o our_o hope_n of_o you_o be_v steadfast_a know_v that_o as_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o suffering_n so_o shall_v you_o be_v also_o of_o the_o consolation_n of_o paul_n hope_n and_o persuasion_n of_o the_o corinthian_n with_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o it_o serm._n lvii_o of_o our_o partake_n with_o other_o in_o their_o suffering_n for_o christ_n and_o how_o this_o be_v a_o way_n to_o interest_n ourselves_o in_o the_o joy_n and_o glory_n which_o such_o sufferer_n enjoy_v serm._n lviii_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 8._o for_o we_o will_v not_o brethren_z have_v you_o ignorant_a of_o our_o trouble_n which_o come_v to_o we_o in_o asia_n that_o we_o be_v press_v out_o of_o measure_n above_o strength_n insomuch_o that_o we_o despair_v even_o of_o life_n how_o useful_a it_o be_v to_o the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o know_v the_o affliction_n which_o the_o saint_n suffer_v for_o christ_n sake_n and_o why_o the_o preach_a concern_v the_o saint_n affliction_n even_o from_o heathen_n be_v necessary_a to_o christian_n though_o for_o the_o present_a they_o be_v in_o peace_n and_o quietness_n serm._n lix_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n find_v much_o opposition_n from_o the_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a professor_n who_o be_v these_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a professor_n serm._n lx._n a_o further_a discovery_n of_o such_o who_o take_v up_o religion_n mere_o from_o carnal_a motive_n and_o worldly_a respect_n serm._n lxi_o of_o the_o different_a judgement_n that_o faith_n and_o flesh_n pass_v upon_o affliction_n serm._n lxii_o how_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o flesh_n differ_v in_o affliction_n and_o why_o it_o be_v necessary_a a_o man_n shall_v know_v they_o asunder_o serm._n lxiii_o what_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o paul_n be_v press_v above_o measure_n as_o likewise_o how_o neither_o natural_a nor_o moral_a strength_n can_v carry_v we_o through_o trouble_n in_o a_o gration_n manner_n serm._n lxiv_o the_o natural_a fear_n of_o death_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o grace_n what_o be_v the_o use_v of_o it_o serm._n lxv_o of_o the_o natural_a and_o sinful_a fear_n of_o death_n how_o to_o discern_v between_o they_o and_o from_o whence_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o that_o fear_n proceed_v serm._n lxvi_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 9_o but_o we_o have_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n in_o ourselves_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o trust_v in_o ourselves_o but_o in_o god_n which_o raise_v the_o dead_a the_o true_o godly_a may_v sometime_o pass_v false_a sentence_n upon_o their_o own_o person_n and_o action_n and_o god_n dispensation_n towards_o they_o serm._n lxvii_o the_o people_n of_o god_n often_o pass_v false_a judgement_n upon_o the_o dispensation_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o the_o reason_n from_o whence_o the_o false_a judgement_n proceed_v with_o rule_n to_o prevent_v it_o serm._n lxviii_o of_o humane_a and_o divine_a trust_n and_o of_o the_o true_a and_o proper_a object_n of_o our_o confidence_n serm._n lxix_o what_o be_v those_o secret_a and_o inward_a object_n that_o man_n be_v apt_a to_o place_v their_o confidence_n in_o and_o wherein_o even_o the_o saint_n themselves_o may_v be_v guilty_a of_o that_o sin_n serm._n lxx_o whether_o paul_n speak_v these_o word_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o wherein_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o self-confidence_n appear_v serm._n lxxi_o of_o the_o nature_n object_n and_o matter_n of_o our_o divine_a trust_n or_o dependence_n upon_o god_n serm._n lxxii_o what_o be_v require_v in_o our_o trust_n in_o god_n ex_fw-la parte_fw-la subjecti_fw-la and_o of_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o grace_n serm._n lxxiii_o of_o the_o expression_n god_n who_o raise_v the_o dead_a how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o what_o it_o imply_v serm._n lxxiv_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 10._o who_o deliver_v we_o from_o so_o great_a a_o death_n and_o do_v deliver_v in_o who_o we_o trust_v that_o he_o will_v yet_o deliver_v we_o we_o be_v not_o to_o consider_v god_n mercy_n in_o general_a only_o but_o their_o several_a aggravation_n also_o serm._n lxxv_o privative_a and_o prevent_a mercy_n be_v to_o be_v account_v of_o as_o positive_a serm._n lxxvi_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o god_n continue_v his_o mercy_n to_o we_o as_o well_o as_o his_o confer_v mercy_n upon_o we_o serm._n lxxvii_o former_a experience_n shall_v be_v a_o sufficient_a argument_n for_o future_a confidence_n serm._n lxxviii_o of_o motive_n to_o trust_v in_o god_n and_o the_o opposite_n to_o it_o presumption_n and_o despair_n serm._n lxxix_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 11._o you_o also_o help_v together_o by_o prayer_n for_o we_o that_o for_o the_o gift_n bestow_v upon_o we_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o many_o person_n thanks_o may_v be_v give_v by_o many_o on_o our_o behalf_n how_o we_o be_v to_o rely_v upon_o god_n and_o yet_o make_v use_n of_o requisite_a mean_n too_o serm._n lxxx_o the_o high_a in_o gift_n and_o grace_n shall_v desire_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o mean_a and_o people_n ought_v to_o pray_v for_o their_o minister_n as_o well_o as_o minister_n for_o their_o people_n serm._n lxxxi_o how_o and_o why_o we_o shall_v praise_v god_n for_o all_o his_o mercy_n vouchsafe_v to_o we_o serm._n lxxxii_o god_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o our_o mercy_n they_o be_v his_o gift_n and_o why_o serm._n lxxxiii_o of_o the_o necessity_n and_o usefulness_n of_o public_a ordinance_n and_o of_o the_o church_n interest_n in_o its_o minister_n mercy_n serm._n lxxxiv_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 12._o for_o our_o rejoice_v be_v this_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n that_o in_o simplicity_n and_o godly_a sincerity_n not_o with_o fleshly_a wisdom_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o have_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o the_o world_n and_o more_o abundant_o to_o youward_n serm._n lxxxv_o what_o be_v require_v to_o a_o good_a and_o well-ordered_a conscience_n serm._n lxxxvi_o further_a discovery_n of_o what_o be_v require_v to_o a_o well-regulated_n conscience_n with_o distinction_n concern_v it_o serm._n lxxxvii_o a_o believer_n may_v be_v assure_v of_o the_o uprightness_n of_o his_o heart_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o duty_n what_o be_v require_v to_o such_o a_o assurance_n serm._n lxxxviii_o of_o the_o impediment_n which_o keep_v we_o from_o assurance_n command_n for_o it_o and_o caution_n about_o it_o serm._n lxxxix_o of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o godly_a simplicity_n and_o singleness_n of_o heart_n serm._n xc_o a_o further_a discovery_n of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o godly_a simplicity_n both_o towards_o god_n and_o man_n serm._n xci_o of_o the_o true_a nature_n of_o godly_a sincerity_n serm._n xcii_o a_o further_a discovery_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o effect_n of_o godly_a sincerity_n serm._n xciii_o of_o fleshly_a wisdom_n with_o some_o principle_n of_o it_o serm._n xciv_o principle_n of_o fleshly_a wisdom_n use_v in_o the_o propagation_n of_o the_o gospel_n serm._n xcv_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o paul_n exalt_v above_o fleshly_a wisdom_n and_o ascribe_v all_o unto_o serm._n xcvi_o wherein_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n appear_v towards_o paul_n in_o his_o ministerial_a labour_n serm._n xcvii_o of_o a_o good_a and_o godly_a conversation_n in_o the_o world_n serm._n xcviii_o of_o god_n presence_n with_o the_o ministry_n how_o it_o render_v the_o people_n inexcusable_a serm._n xcix_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 13._o for_o we_o write_v no_o other_o thing_n
also_o in_o church-administrations_a 2._o paul_n be_v a_o apostle_n not_o by_o god_n just_a and_o angry_a will_n raise_v he_o up_o for_o the_o will_n sin_n and_o punishment_n of_o a_o people_n but_o it_o be_v from_o god_n good_a pleasure_n and_o this_o consideration_n be_v very_o terrible_a god_n have_v not_o only_o a_o permissive_a will_n but_o a_o just_a ordain_v will_n of_o evil_n and_o ungodly_a officer_n at_o some_o time_n to_o some_o people_n for_o wise_a and_o holy_a end_n god_n in_o great_a anger_n do_v will_n such_o officer_n and_o minister_n to_o people_n a_o people_n that_o shall_v be_v blind_a guide_n that_o shall_v be_v thief_n and_o robber_n that_o shall_v be_v raven_a wolf_n and_o shall_v lead_v many_o to_o hell_n with_o themselves_o sad_n and_o fearful_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o such_o a_o people_n see_v a_o notable_a place_n for_o this_o 1_o king_n 22._o 22_o 23._o where_o god_n be_v describe_v as_o a_o just_a judge_n sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n and_o a_o host_n ready_a to_o wait_v on_o he_o now_o there_o be_v wicked_a ahab_n who_o desire_v such_o prophet_n that_o will_v speak_v no_o evil_a to_o he_o that_o will_v flatter_v he_o and_o thereupon_o see_v what_o god_n say_v to_o the_o lie_a spirit_n he_o bid_v he_o go_v and_o be_v a_o lie_a spirit_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o the_o prophet_n and_o he_o shall_v persuade_v and_o prevail_v thus_o the_o lord_n still_o do_v there_o be_v many_o people_n love_v not_o a_o minister_n that_o will_v reprove_v sin_n that_o will_v promote_v godliness_n and_o holiness_n but_o let_v they_o have_v a_o man_n that_o will_v let_v they_o be_v at_o ease_n in_o their_o sin_n and_o formality_n now_o god_n in_o his_o just_a anger_n and_o by_o his_o provoke_v will_n bring_v such_o a_o minister_n to_o such_o a_o people_n you_o will_v have_v such_o and_o god_n will_v have_v you_o have_v such_o and_o they_o shall_v persuade_v and_o prevail_v to_o this_o purpose_n also_o jer._n 5._o 30_o 31._o now_o this_o will_n of_o god_n in_o order_v such_o officer_n be_v sometime_o to_o increase_v the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o officer_n himself_o and_o to_o draw_v out_o his_o sin_n more_o they_o be_v officer_n in_o the_o church_n through_o the_o anger_n of_o god_n to_o themselves_o they_o will_v gnash_v their_o tooth_n that_o ever_o they_o be_v entrust_v with_o such_o power_n for_o thereby_o they_o become_v more_o wicked_a have_v not_o judas_n better_a have_v be_v the_o poor_a wretch_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n than_o such_o a_o eminent_a officer_n it_o be_v sometime_o also_o for_o the_o wickedness_n and_o ungodliness_n of_o a_o people_n and_o therefore_o even_o those_o that_o be_v godly_a who_o live_v under_o such_o providential_a minister_n i_o call_v they_o providential_a minister_n because_o they_o be_v so_o by_o his_o providence_n in_o anger_n not_o by_o his_o approve_v will_n they_o be_v to_o consider_v two_o thing_n 1._o to_o bless_v and_o praise_n god_n that_o the_o lie_a spirit_n in_o the_o minister_n have_v not_o prevail_v on_o thou_o that_o he_o have_v not_o lead_v thou_o into_o the_o ditch_n that_o his_o poison_n have_v not_o fall_v on_o thou_o oh_o admire_v god_n goodness_n herein_o and_o withal_o in_o the_o second_o place_n humble_v thyself_o under_o god_n hand_n it_o be_v his_o will_n it_o shall_v be_v so_o as_o yet_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n do_v manifest_v he_o offend_v with_o such_o a_o people_n 3._o the_o will_n of_o god_n do_v imply_v that_o paul_n be_v not_o a_o apostle_n by_o chance_n or_o mere_a hap_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o direct_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o it_o and_o certain_o such_o a_o consideration_n chance_n will_v much_o embolden_v paul_n for_o as_o he_o be_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n make_v a_o apostle_n so_o by_o the_o same_o will_v he_o shall_v continue_v and_o be_v preserve_v in_o the_o same_o notwithstanding_o all_o opposition_n whatsoever_o and_o thus_o all_o the_o godly_a minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n find_v the_o good_a will_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o that_o they_o be_v at_o first_o set_v apart_o for_o that_o function_n or_o by_o some_o providence_n of_o god_n bring_v to_o desire_v it_o they_o may_v find_v many_o time_n a_o peculiar_a will_n of_o god_n that_o sometime_o when_o their_o friend_n will_v have_v it_o otherwise_o yet_o god_n will_v have_v they_o minister_n and_o thus_o also_o for_o their_o designation_n to_o such_o a_o people_n how_o many_o time_n be_v great_a discovery_n of_o god_n will_v that_o where_o there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n yet_o god_n will_v have_v he_o pastor_n to_o such_o a_o people_n it_o be_v of_o great_a use_n both_o for_o minister_n and_o people_n to_o observe_v the_o special_a will_n of_o god_n for_o as_o in_o civil_a relation_n of_o husband_n and_o wife_n there_o god_n many_o time_n discover_v a_o peculiar_a will_n of_o his_o bring_v they_o together_o which_o make_v the_o wiseman_n say_v riches_n be_v a_o inheritance_n but_o a_o wife_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n riches_n and_o a_o inheritance_n be_v also_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n but_o those_o relation_n be_v in_o a_o more_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o he_o and_o it_o be_v good_a for_o those_o that_o be_v in_o such_o relation_n to_o quicken_v themselves_o by_o meditation_n on_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o bring_v such_o thing_n about_o beyond_o all_o expectation_n or_o humane_a providence_n thus_o also_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o spiritual_a relation_n oh_o it_o be_v good_a to_o lay_v to_o heart_n how_o the_o will_n of_o god_n have_v be_v that_o thou_o shall_v live_v under_o a_o powerful_a ministry_n it_o may_v be_v all_o thy_o life_n time_n and_o it_o have_v be_v deny_v to_o other_o who_o often_o have_v seek_v to_o god_n for_o such_o a_o mercy_n act._n 16._o 6._o you_o may_v there_o read_v that_o paul_n while_n in_o his_o travail_n preach_v the_o word_n every_o where_o where_o he_o come_v yet_o be_v forbid_v to_o preach_v in_o asia_n yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n at_o the_o six_o verse_n there_o stand_v a_o man_n and_o cry_v come_v over_o into_o macedonia_n and_o help_v we_o see_v how_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n like_o the_o wind_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v command_v paul_n to_o one_o place_n and_o forbid_v he_o another_o 4._o it_o imply_v that_o it_o be_v no_o merit_n or_o desert_n in_o paul_n which_o advance_v he_o to_o office_n this_o office_n for_o as_o believer_n john_n 13._o be_v say_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n or_o of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n but_o of_o god_n which_o take_v all_o from_o man_n and_o give_v all_o to_o god_n so_o it_o be_v in_o this_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n it_o be_v not_o because_o man_n have_v part_n or_o learning_n or_o holiness_n that_o god_n set_v they_o apart_o for_o such_o a_o office_n but_o god_n himself_o god_n tell_v jeremiah_n chap._n 1._o 5._o that_o he_o have_v sanctify_v he_o from_o the_o womb_n that_o be_v set_v he_o apart_o to_o be_v his_o prophet_n and_o this_o be_v before_o any_o good_a at_o all_o can_v be_v in_o he_o and_o this_o also_o paul_n himself_o acknowledge_v gal._n 1._o 15._o where_o he_o say_v he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o womb_n and_o observe_v how_o both_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n and_o his_o apostleship_n come_v together_o and_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o be_v make_v god_n pleasure_n when_o it_o please_v god_n to_o call_v i_o thus_o you_o see_v that_o those_o who_o be_v raise_v up_o to_o be_v serviceable_a in_o the_o church_n have_v all_o from_o god_n both_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d potentia_n and_o potestas_fw-la as_o they_o be_v sometime_o distinguish_v hence_o it_o be_v that_o this_o will_n of_o god_n do_v not_o reach_v only_o to_o the_o appoint_v of_o he_o to_o his_o office_n but_o the_o inward_a prepare_v and_o fit_v of_o he_o for_o that_o work_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o a_o good_a minister_n be_v comprehend_v in_o this_o that_o he_o be_v so_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o you_o may_v say_v what_o if_o a_o minister_n shall_v at_o first_o enter_v into_o this_o office_n motive_n mere_o by_o the_o instigation_n of_o a_o corrupt_a will_n nothing_o at_o first_o make_v he_o intend_v the_o ministry_n but_o hope_n of_o preferment_n and_o get_v a_o livelihood_n in_o the_o world_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v indeed_o a_o most_o bless_a thing_n when_o it_o be_v with_o a_o minister_n as_o with_o paul_n he_o be_v make_v a_o apostle_n at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o god_n do_v also_o inward_o reveal_v his_o grace_n to_o he_o when_o from_o the_o youth_n the_o work_n of_o sanctification_n and_o zeal_n to_o convert_v soul_n have_v put_v they_o upon_o the_o ministry_n but_o
in_o christ_n and_o submission_n unto_o his_o will_n for_o a_o church_n be_v a_o visible_a society_n there_o must_v be_v some_o external_a and_o visible_a sign_n whereby_o we_o may_v demonstrate_v ourselves_o to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n hence_o rom._n 10._o it_o be_v say_v that_o with_o the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v to_o salvation_n there_o may_v be_v many_o secret_a and_o hide_a atheist_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o because_o they_o do_v external_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a state_n of_o it_o thus_o simon_n magus_n and_o other_o while_o they_o do_v profess_v their_o faith_n in_o christ_n they_o be_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n and_o believer_n and_o so_o of_o saint_n 4._o there_o be_v yet_o a_o further_a degree_n in_o this_o church-saintship_a and_o that_o be_v when_o beside_o this_o sacramental_a and_o external_a holiness_n there_o be_v some_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n upon_o their_o soul_n so_o that_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v some_o kind_n of_o influence_n upon_o they_o they_o be_v not_o only_o titular_a saint_n but_o they_o have_v some_o kind_n of_o inchoate_n and_o imperfect_a work_n of_o god_n spirit_n upon_o their_o soul_n which_o have_v a_o tendency_n to_o godliness_n or_o at_o least_o a_o resemblance_n and_o show_v of_o it_o so_o that_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o other_o and_o many_o time_n in_o their_o own_o persuasion_n likewise_o they_o be_v true_a saint_n now_o these_o may_v well_o enough_o be_v style_v saint_n because_o the_o scripture_n attribute_n to_o they_o such_o act_n as_o have_v the_o name_n of_o holiness_n so_o mat._n 13._o the_o temporary_a believer_n liken_v to_o the_o thorny_a ground_n be_v say_v to_o have_v faith_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o word_n with_o joy_n some_o be_v say_v in_o 2_o pet._n 2._o to_o escape_v the_o pollution_n of_o the_o world_n yea_o heb._n 6._o some_o be_v say_v to_o be_v enlighten_v to_o have_v taste_v the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n to_o partake_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o such_o be_v never_o true_a saint_n for_o such_o that_o be_v so_o can_v no_o more_o final_o apostatise_v than_o true_a star_n can_v fall_v from_o the_o heaven_n comet_n and_o blaze_a star_n may_v have_v a_o great_a lustre_n for_o a_o while_n but_o be_v compose_v of_o terrestrial_a exhalation_n at_o last_o they_o fall_v into_o the_o womb_n of_o that_o earth_n from_o whence_o they_o spring_v thus_o those_o who_o have_v only_o some_o imperfect_a common_a work_n of_o god_n spirit_n abound_v in_o gift_n and_o many_o admirable_a ability_n these_o may_v seem_v in_o saintship_n to_o exceed_v many_o that_o be_v true_o so_o but_o because_o there_o be_v never_o true_a and_o deep_a root_n when_o the_o storm_n and_o tempest_n shall_v arise_v this_o glorious_a building_n will_v not_o have_v so_o much_o as_o a_o stone_n leave_v upon_o a_o stone_n those_o uncomfortable_a teacher_n injurious_a to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o do_v so_o peremptory_o dogmatise_v the_o apostasy_n of_o the_o saint_n do_v yet_o never_o bring_v such_o text_n of_o scripture_n or_o instance_n that_o do_v necessary_o prove_v those_o to_o be_v true_a saint_n that_o be_v speak_v of_o saul_n be_v never_o a_o true_a saint_n judas_n be_v never_o a_o true_a saint_n and_o so_o no_o wonder_n of_o hopeful_a beginning_n degenerate_v into_o such_o tragical_a and_o horrid_a beginning_n now_o whereas_o the_o former_a mention_v viz._n those_o that_o be_v only_o baptize_v that_o give_v a_o external_a submission_n to_o christ_n law_n especial_o if_o as_o too_o many_o do_v wallow_v in_o all_o the_o way_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o carnal_a excess_n if_o these_o i_o say_v may_v by_o all_o be_v proclaim_v to_o be_v no_o real_a but_o nominal_a saint_n all_o the_o world_n see_v they_o be_v christian_n in_o name_n but_o beast_n and_o devil_n in_o respect_n of_o real_a saintship_n yet_o the_o great_a difficulty_n and_o the_o constant_a wisdom_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v exercise_v about_o the_o discern_a this_o late_a holiness_n from_o that_o which_o be_v true_a to_o know_v when_o i_o be_o go_v further_o than_o any_o hypocrite_n or_o reprobate_n can_v attain_v unto_o this_o as_o we_o be_v great_o to_o study_v and_o examine_v ourselves_o in_o so_o we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v deceive_v in_o any_o worldly_a matter_n than_o in_o this_o last_o the_o ultimate_a and_o most_o complete_a step_n of_o church-saintship_a in_o this_o life_n be_v when_o we_o go_v beyond_o all_o the_o former_a and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o powerful_a renovation_n of_o we_o so_o that_o from_o that_o holy_a and_o new_a creature_n within_o we_o our_o life_n and_o action_n be_v make_v real_o and_o solid_o holy_a and_o this_o be_v indeed_o the_o true_a and_o proper_a saintship_n to_o which_o only_o the_o promise_n of_o justification_n and_o glorification_n be_v make_v so_o that_o if_o thou_o do_v enjoy_v the_o great_a church-priviledge_n yea_o and_o the_o most_o admirable_a gift_n therein_o yet_o if_o destitute_a of_o this_o saintship_n thou_o be_v but_o a_o tinkle_a cymbal_n and_o the_o hot_a place_n in_o hell_n will_v be_v fill_v with_o such_o seem_a saint_n serm_n xx._n external_n holiness_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o heaven_n without_o the_o inward_a renovation_n of_o the_o heart_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 1._o with_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v in_o all_o achaia_n we_o have_v hear_v what_o be_v the_o last_o and_o ultimate_a step_n in_o church-saintship_a without_o which_o all_o the_o former_a though_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o great_a mercy_n yet_o because_o we_o take_v they_o in_o vain_a do_v become_v in_o some_o respect_n in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o god_n will_v not_o hold_v guiltless_a they_o be_v i_o say_v man_n in_o themselves_o great_a mercy_n for_o when_o we_o be_v thus_o call_v by_o god_n unto_o the_o external_a mean_n of_o holiness_n there_o be_v some_o hope_n and_o a_o possible_a way_n for_o salvation_n whereas_o without_o this_o there_o be_v necessary_a destruction_n it_o be_v here_o as_o in_o blind_a bartimeus_n his_o case_n mark_v 10._o 49._o for_o when_o christ_n command_v he_o to_o be_v call_v to_o he_o present_o some_o say_v to_o the_o blind_a man_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n he_o call_v thou_o that_o be_v a_o good_a encouragement_n christ_n call_v he_o so_o whereas_o there_o be_v many_o thousand_o in_o the_o world_n that_o be_v leave_v alone_o in_o their_o state_n of_o darkness_n but_o he_o vouchsafe_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n to_o thou_o we_o may_v say_v be_v of_o good_a comfort_n there_o be_v some_o hope_n christ_n call_v thou_o yet_o because_o many_o be_v call_v and_o of_o those_o many_o call_v few_o be_v choose_v therefore_o this_o external_a holiness_n and_o saintship_n be_v not_o enough_o unless_o there_o be_v the_o inward_a renovation_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n unless_o thou_o be_v holy_a inward_o as_o well_o as_o outward_o this_o will_v make_v to_o thy_o great_a condemnation_n that_o therefore_o which_o be_v the_o essential_a form_n and_o give_v a_o constrtutive_a be_v to_o church-saintship_a be_v regeneration_n or_o the_o work_n of_o grace_n upon_o a_o man_n heart_n indeed_o to_o a_o external_a state_n and_o visible_a condition_n of_o church-holiness_n a_o profession_n of_o faith_n with_o submission_n unto_o christ_n way_n be_v enough_o but_o that_o which_o make_v we_o indeed_o member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o invest_v we_o with_o right_a to_o all_o save_a benefit_n that_o be_v only_o this_o inward_a real_a saintship_n and_o to_o clear_v this_o more_o you_o must_v take_v notice_n first_o that_o even_o in_o real_a saintship_n there_o be_v a_o great_a latitude_n and_o difference_n saintship_n all_o be_v not_o saint_n alike_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o babe_n of_o young_a man_n of_o old_a man_n it_o speak_v of_o some_o that_o be_v spiritual_a and_o perfect_a other_o be_v imperfect_a and_o even_o carnal_a 1_o cor._n 3._o comparative_o so_o that_o we_o must_v always_o distinguish_v between_o the_o truth_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o degree_n of_o it_o a_o saint_n be_v a_o saint_n though_o but_o a_o bruise_a reed_n and_o a_o smoke_a flax_n this_o be_v good_a to_o be_v observe_v that_o we_o may_v not_o judge_v of_o saintship_n by_o such_o degree_n and_o high_a attainment_n but_o by_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n no_o there_o will_v be_v always_o difference_n both_o in_o illumination_n and_o sanctification_n and_o that_o among_o the_o saint_n themselves_o and_o this_o shall_v teach_v a_o mutual_a bear_n and_o forbear_v of_o one_o another_o let_v not_o he_o that_o be_v strong_a who_o do_v far_o surpass_v other_o though_o
least_o cranny_n in_o his_o soul_n wherein_o the_o least_o glimpse_n of_o god_n favour_n can_v approach_v unto_o he_o three_o such_o be_v capable_a subject_n of_o god_n grace_n that_o be_v affect_v thankful_o with_o the_o least_o discovery_n and_o manifestation_n of_o it_o to_o the_o soul_n the_o sun_n be_v not_o more_o welcome_a to_o the_o world_n than_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o a_o break_a contrite_a heart_n if_o then_o the_o soul_n come_v to_o taste_v of_o the_o sweetness_n of_o it_o both_o heart_n and_o mouth_n will_v overflow_v in_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o this_o grace_n and_o indeed_o therefore_o do_v the_o lord_n do_v all_o out_o of_o grace_n to_o we_o that_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o may_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n ephes_n 1._o 6._o and_o that_o we_o shall_v show_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o he_o who_o have_v call_v we_o out_o of_o darkness_n into_o his_o marvellous_a light_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 9_o so_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o so_o comely_a and_o beautiful_a for_o a_o soul_n partake_v of_o this_o grace_n as_o to_o be_v call_v upon_o his_o soul_n and_o all_o within_o he_o to_o praise_n god_n yea_o because_o he_o can_v do_v it_o enough_o to_o call_v upon_o all_o other_o creature_n angel_n and_o saint_n that_o they_o will_v join_v with_o he_o in_o this_o work_n and_o certain_o the_o dullness_n and_o negligence_n of_o the_o godly_a be_v much_o to_o be_v lament_v in_o this_o very_a particular_a david_n discover_v this_o when_o psal_n 103._o he_o call_v upon_o his_o soul_n to_o bless_v god_n and_o in_o other_o place_n psal_n 18._o 2._o awake_v psaltery_a and_o harp_n i_o myself_o will_v awake_v early_o why_o then_o be_v it_o thus_o with_o thou_o that_o in_o temporal_a mercy_n and_o deliverance_n thou_o be_v so_o cordial_o sensible_a of_o they_o if_o god_n of_o weak_a and_o sick_a make_v thou_o healthful_a if_o he_o recover_v thou_o from_o the_o gate_n of_o death_n if_o he_o bless_v thy_o outward_a estate_n so_o that_o thou_o be_v free_v from_o the_o former_a straits_n and_o perplexity_n thou_o be_v in_o if_o i_o say_v god_n do_v thus_o for_o thou_o thou_o love_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o thou_o can_v with_o tear_n and_o joy_n speak_v of_o god_n goodness_n to_o thou_o herein_o but_o for_o those_o great_a and_o unspeakable_a riches_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o call_v of_o thou_o and_o justify_v of_o thou_o in_o beginning_n of_o grace_n in_o thy_o heart_n these_o thing_n thou_o do_v not_o meditate_v of_o so_o affectionate_o as_o thou_o ough_a to_o do_v how_o far_o otheawise_o be_v it_o with_o paul_n who_o heart_n be_v like_o a_o fountain_n never_o dry_a but_o do_v always_o stream_n forth_o abundant_o in_o blessing_n of_o god_n for_o those_o spiritual_a mercy_n certain_o be_v this_o grace_n of_o god_n right_o consider_v by_o we_o it_o will_v put_v we_o into_o holy_a ravishment_n it_o will_v take_v we_o off_o from_o all_o worldly_a comfort_n or_o discontent_n the_o soul_n possess_v with_o thankful_a thought_n about_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n will_v be_v even_o in_o heaven_n itself_o indeed_o we_o shall_v account_v this_o our_o meat_n and_o drink_n and_o our_o only_a blessedness_n oh_o then_o abhor_v thyself_o for_o not_o be_v ravish_v more_o with_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o say_v lord_n what_o a_o stone_n what_o frost_n and_o ice_n be_o i_o yea_o worse_o than_o they_o for_o david_n call_v upon_o they_o to_o glorify_v and_o praise_n god_n and_o they_o do_v it_o in_o their_o kind_n but_o i_o be_o forgetful_a and_o dull_a in_o this_o bless_a work_n which_o be_v the_o only_a duty_n to_o be_v do_v to_o all_o eternity_n it_o may_v be_v then_o thou_o feel_v no_o more_o of_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n because_o thou_o be_v no_o more_o thankful_a for_o the_o present_a enjoyment_n of_o it_o and_o it_o argue_v thy_o heart_n not_o only_o too_o dull_a and_o sluggish_a but_o too_o earthly_a and_o worldly_a that_o thou_o do_v not_o bless_v god_n in_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a place_n for_o the_o work_n of_o his_o grace_n towards_o thou_o last_o such_o only_o be_v capable_a of_o the_o benefit_n of_o this_o grace_n who_o do_v not_o abuse_v it_o or_o turn_v it_o into_o occasion_n of_o sin_n the_o apostle_n judas_n 4._o complain_v of_o some_o who_o do_v turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n rom._n 6._o 1._o speak_v of_o some_o who_o encourage_v themselves_o to_o sin_n because_o of_o god_n grace_n oh_o take_v heed_n of_o fall_v into_o this_o libertinism_n and_o licentiousness_n as_o the_o swee●_n and_o comfortable_a shower_n of_o april_n breed_v frog_n and_o other_o vermin_n as_o well_o as_o pleasant_a flower_n thus_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n when_o fall_v into_o a_o break_a humble_a soul_n make_v he_o more_o godly_a and_o holy_a but_o drop_v on_o the_o wicked_a and_o carnal_a heart_n it_o pamper_v he_o and_o nourish_v he_o the_o more_o in_o his_o sin_n how_o many_o spider_n get_v poison_v out_o of_o these_o sweet_a flower_n how_o many_o do_v encourage_v themselves_o in_o their_o profaneness_n and_o go_v bold_o on_o in_o their_o manifest_a impiety_n harden_v themselves_o with_o the_o thought_n of_o god_n grace_n thus_o whereas_o bitter_a pill_n the_o judgement_n of_o god_n will_v have_v consume_v their_o lust_n those_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a thing_n of_o god_n grace_n do_v more_o confirm_v they_o in_o their_o impiety_n oh_o take_v heed_n of_o be_v wicked_a because_o god_n be_v gracious_a for_o thou_o will_v find_v though_o he_o be_v infinite_o gracious_a and_o that_o to_o great_a sinner_n when_o repent_v and_o humble_v themselves_o yet_o to_o such_o as_o abuse_v and_o turn_v his_o grace_n into_o a_o occasion_n of_o sin_n the_o hot_a flame_n of_o his_o anger_n will_v fall_v upon_o such_o in_o the_o next_o place_n consider_v some_o rule_n how_o right_o to_o understand_v and_o judge_v god_n of_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o first_o you_o must_v know_v that_o there_o be_v those_o who_o extreme_o err_v about_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o one_o another_o the_o pelagian_a the_o papist_n arminian_n and_o secinian_n all_o these_o do_v more_o or_o less_o diminish_v and_o nullify_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o howsoever_o they_o have_v many_o plausible_a and_o specious_a distinction_n by_o which_o they_o will_v evade_v to_o be_v think_v enemy_n to_o god_n grace_n yet_o unless_o we_o give_v all_o to_o grace_n we_o make_v it_o no_o grace_n at_o all_o augustine_n know_v assertion_n be_v very_o true_a gratia_n non_fw-la est_fw-la gratia_fw-la ullo_fw-la modo_fw-la nisi_fw-la sit_fw-la gratuita_fw-la omni_fw-la modo_fw-la the_o pelagian_n of_o old_a do_v deceive_v the_o eastern_a church_n by_o grant_v that_o all_o those_o be_v to_o be_v anathematise_v who_o do_v not_o hold_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n necessary_a to_o every_o good_a work_n and_o the_o papist_n with_o the_o arminian_n do_v carry_v it_o so_o specious_o as_o if_o they_o indeed_o do_v set_v up_o grace_n more_o than_o their_o adversary_n let_v not_o therefore_o every_o one_o that_o speak_v of_o grace_n be_v present_o account_v orthodox_n and_o to_o endure_v the_o scripture-proof_n and_o trial_n again_o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v antinomian_o who_o do_v err_v grievous_o though_o they_o only_o will_v be_v think_v to_o admire_v free_a grace_n condemn_v all_o as_o legal_a preacher_n and_o of_o a_o old_a testament_n spirit_n that_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o grace_n as_o they_o do_v now_o god_n be_v so_o gracious_a these_o tell_v we_o to_o his_o people_n that_o he_o see_v no_o sin_n in_o they_o that_o he_o do_v not_o afflict_v for_o sin_n they_o tell_v we_o of_o such_o a_o grace_n that_o god_n look_v upon_o we_o as_o if_o we_o be_v christ_n himself_o and_o that_o he_o do_v this_o from_o all_o eternity_n that_o paul_n before_o his_o conversion_n while_o a_o persecuter_n and_o blasphemer_n be_v as_o much_o in_o the_o love_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o after_o his_o conversion_n that_o the_o vile_a and_o most_o wicked_a of_o man_n even_o while_o they_o be_v so_o be_v to_o receive_v christ_n as_o a_o saviour_n that_o neither_o sin_n or_o good_a work_n do_v at_o all_o mar_v or_o make_v our_o peace_n that_o faith_n justify_v only_o declarative_o by_o manifest_v unto_o we_o that_o god_n do_v from_o all_o eternity_n justify_v we_o these_o and_o such_o like_a poisonous_a tenant_n they_o affirm_v and_o this_o they_o say_v be_v to_o preach_v free_a grace_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v oppose_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o on_o the_o left_a therefore_o in_o the_o second_o place_n take_v this_o rule_n that_o we_o must_v not_o exalt_v grace_n according_a to_o our_o own_o
the_o grace_n of_o adoption_n yet_o the_o apostle_n confirm_v that_o speech_n because_o we_o be_v all_o his_o creature_n but_o the_o good_a angel_n and_o good_a man_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o a_o more_o endear_a respect_n we_o shall_v not_o insist_v long_o neither_o upon_o this_o though_o the_o scripture_n make_v it_o the_o treasury_n of_o all_o our_o consolation_n only_o we_o may_v brief_o consider_v what_o it_o be_v father_n to_o be_v our_o father_n and_o first_o it_o imply_v his_o spiritual_a beget_v we_o by_o the_o word_n for_o before_o conversion_n the_o devil_n be_v our_o father_n we_o may_v say_v our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o hell_n if_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v to_o he_o as_o our_o saviour_n tell_v the_o pharisee_n not_o abraham_n but_o the_o devil_n be_v their_o father_n and_o all_o because_o we_o have_v his_o likeness_n upon_o we_o and_o his_o work_n we_o do_v but_o when_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n do_v change_v we_o and_o make_v we_o to_o partake_v of_o his_o divine_a nature_n than_o we_o be_v son_n son_n by_o adoption_n and_o son_n by_o regeneration_n it_o be_v not_o then_o every_o one_o that_o god_n be_v thus_o a_o father_n to_o he_o must_v have_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o his_o likeness_n therefore_o though_o many_o call_v he_o father_n yet_o he_o be_v a_o judge_n and_o a_o enemy_n to_o they_o because_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o he_o in_o nature_n and_o action_n second_o as_o god_n be_v thus_o a_o father_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o metaphorical_a generation_n so_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o all_o his_o paternal_a love_n and_o care_n to_o those_o that_o be_v he_o no_o bowel_n of_o father_n or_o mother_n be_v comparable_a to_o he_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n make_v his_o love_n to_o transcend_v the_o mother_n love_n and_o that_o to_o her_o suck_a infant_n isa_n 49._o 50._o insomuch_o that_o all_o our_o doubt_n and_o fear_n may_v present_o be_v subdue_v if_o we_o consider_v he_o be_v a_o father_n why_o be_v thou_o so_o disquiet_v as_o if_o like_a melchizedech_n thou_o be_v without_o father_n and_o mother_n thou_o be_v afraid_a of_o hell_n and_o condemnation_n but_o will_v a_o father_n do_v thus_o again_o thou_o doubte_v about_o many_o earthly_a and_o sensible_a comfort_n what_o thou_o shall_v eat_v or_o drink_v and_o do_v not_o our_o saviour_n say_v matth._n 6._o 8._o your_o father_n know_v what_o you_o have_v need_n of_o improve_v then_o the_o relation_n of_o a_o father_n think_v what_o care_n love_n and_o bowel_n god_n have_v put_v into_o thy_o heart_n who_o be_v a_o father_n to_o thy_o child_n thou_o never_o doubte_v of_o thy_o affection_n to_o they_o but_o many_o time_n of_o their_o affection_n and_o dutifulness_n to_o thou_o and_o be_v not_o this_o fatherly_a affection_n much_o more_o in_o god_n three_o he_o be_v not_o only_o our_o father_n but_o he_o send_v his_o spirit_n into_o our_o heart_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o this_o and_o to_o be_v more_o affect_v with_o it_o rom._n 8._o 15._o gal._n 4._o 6._o for_o whereas_o in_o nature_n there_o the_o child_n by_o a_o natural_a instinct_n be_v carry_v out_o to_o his_o father_n and_o to_o call_v upon_o he_o it_o be_v not_o thus_o in_o grace_n for_o when_o god_n be_v become_v our_o father_n than_o we_o need_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o this_o to_o make_v we_o believe_v it_o of_o ourselves_o we_o shall_v rather_o conclude_v he_o be_v our_o enemy_n and_o our_o judge_n but_o this_o spirit_n of_o god_n put_v a_o filial_a confidence_n into_o we_o again_o it_o do_v not_o only_o assure_v we_o but_o enable_v we_o against_o all_o those_o doubt_n and_o jealousy_n we_o have_v to_o the_o contrary_a to_o cry_v father_n that_o denote_v the_o soul_n be_v in_o a_o very_a great_a agony_n many_o objection_n and_o opposition_n it_o have_v but_o yet_o we_o be_v enable_v against_o our_o heart_n and_o against_o the_o devil_n temptation_n thus_o to_o do_v last_o he_o be_v a_o father_n and_o therefore_o do_v afflict_v we_o and_o chastise_v we_o for_o our_o good_a insomuch_o that_o it_o be_v from_o his_o fatherly_a love_n to_o afflict_v we_o as_o well_o as_o to_o give_v we_o of_o his_o mercy_n and_o if_o as_o the_o apostle_n urge_v heb._n 12._o 9_o we_o reverence_v our_o father_n after_o the_o flesh_n when_o they_o chastise_v we_o how_o much_o rather_o our_o father_n after_o the_o spirit_n which_o can_v miscarry_v or_o err_v in_o his_o affliction_n upon_o we_o to_o this_o doctrine_n let_v we_o add_v the_o extension_n of_o it_o our_o father_n paul_n say_v not_o my_o father_n or_o the_o father_n of_o abraham_n and_o such_o eminent_a saint_n but_o our_o father_n observe_v god_n be_v a_o father_n to_o the_o mean_a and_o weak_a believer_n as_o well_o as_o the_o strong_a strong_a hence_o our_o saviour_n teach_v all_o the_o godly_a to_o say_v our_o father_n in_o this_o expression_n be_v imply_v first_o appropriation_n and_o application_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o acknowledge_v god_n a_o father_n but_o we_o must_v bring_v this_o relation_n home_o to_o our_o heart_n our_o father_n my_o father_n and_o thy_o father_n second_o it_o imply_v that_o god_n be_v so_o the_o father_n of_o one_o believer_n that_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n earthly_a parent_n have_v sometime_o so_o many_o child_n that_o they_o can_v provide_v for_o all_o at_o least_o so_o liberal_o but_o god_n can_v do_v as_o much_o for_o any_o one_o child_n of_o he_o as_o if_o he_o have_v no_o more_o his_o riches_n and_o inheritance_n be_v give_v to_o every_o one_o all_o his_o child_n be_v heir_n and_o have_v as_o much_o as_o if_o there_o have_v be_v but_o one_o child_n three_o there_o be_v imply_v the_o unity_n and_o agreement_n of_o all_o believer_n amongstthemselves_fw-mi they_o have_v one_o father_n why_o then_o shall_v there_o be_v such_o division_n among_o they_o the_o apostle_n ephes_n 4._o 6._o urge_v this_o one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o one_o lord_n one_o spirit_n one_o god_n and_o father_n these_o be_v bring_v as_o argument_n of_o unity_n not_o mere_o because_o they_o be_v one_o but_o one_o ●o_o believer_n all_o believer_n have_v but_o one_o lord_n one_o spirit_n one_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o manifest_v this_o unity_n use_v from_o both_o the_o doctrine_n join_v together_o of_o direction_n with_o what_o evangelical_n quiet_a and_o joyful_a spirit_n we_o shall_v live_v upon_o this_o divine_a truth_n god_n be_v our_o father_n shall_v be_v the_o gospel_n harp_n to_o drive_v out_o every_o unbelieving_a and_o troublesome_a thought_n 1_o john_n 1._o 3._o true_o our_o fellowship_n be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o with_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n our_o fellowship_n it_o shall_v be_v no_o new_a or_o strange_a thing_n to_o we_o serm_n xxviii_o of_o the_o dominion_n and_o lordship_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 2._o and_o from_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o be_v arrive_v now_o to_o the_o last_o particular_a in_o this_o verse_n and_o that_o be_v the_o second_o principle_n or_o cause_n of_o this_o grace_n and_o peace_n pray_v for_o which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n so_o that_o the_o lord_n christ_n be_v here_o conjoin_v with_o god_n the_o father_n in_o bestow_v of_o these_o spiritual_a mercy_n in_o the_o word_n therefore_o we_o have_v the_o description_n of_o christ_n peace_n 1._o by_o his_o name_n jesus_n 2._o by_o his_o office_n christ_n both_o which_o we_o have_v already_o consider_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n there_o remain_v therefore_o the_o relation_n by_o which_o he_o be_v represent_v to_o we_o and_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d lord_n paul_n here_o pray_v for_o grace_n and_o peace_n from_o christ_n our_o lord_n as_o well_o as_o from_o the_o father_n which_o be_v a_o sure_a and_o strong_a argument_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v god_n alone_o that_o can_v give_v these_o spiritual_a mercy_n if_o christ_n be_v not_o true_o god_n he_o can_v not_o give_v these_o divine_a privilege_n and_o hence_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o pray_v to_o christ_n see_v he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o such_o mercy_n the_o blasphemous_a heretic_n of_o late_a have_v differ_v among_o themselves_o socinus_n and_o franciscus_n davidis_n about_o pray_v to_o christ_n the_o late_a deny_v it_o lawful_a to_o call_v upon_o christ_n in_o prayer_n the_o other_o grant_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n example_n of_o it_o as_o when_o stephen_n say_v lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a but_o yet_o he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o precept_n to_o command_v it_o but_o no_o wonder_n at_o this_o see_v he_o hold_v that_o prayer_n in_o the_o general_n be_v never_o a_o duty_n
shell_n in_o comparison_n of_o that_o manna_n that_o spiritual_a favour_n i_o be_o make_v partaker_n of_o as_o therefore_o the_o spiritual_a man_n when_o in_o outward_a misery_n and_o straits_n be_v not_o so_o much_o grieve_v under_o those_o outward_a calamity_n as_o because_o he_o have_v sin_v and_o god_n be_v offend_v so_o neither_o in_o outward_a mercy_n be_v the_o same_o gracious_a soul_n so_o much_o affect_v with_o the_o comfort_v it_o enjoy_v as_o that_o the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n do_v shine_v upon_o he_o that_o he_o have_v a_o evidence_n of_o propriety_n and_o interest_n in_o christ_n this_o he_o will_v not_o lose_v for_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n let_v we_o press_v this_o the_o more_o because_o even_o the_o most_o holy_a be_v apt_a to_o be_v affect_v more_o with_o sensible_a mercy_n than_o spiritual_a nature_n teach_v they_o the_o one_o but_o grace_v the_o other_o for_o as_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o desire_v temporal_a thing_n above_o spiritual_a so_o also_o to_o be_v affect_v with_o and_o bless_v god_n for_o one_o more_o than_o another_o but_o take_v these_o few_o motive_n to_o provoke_v thou_o to_o bless_v god_n for_o spiritual_a mercy_n temporal_a which_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n external_n as_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o the_o ordinance_n or_o internal_a the_o inward_a sanctification_n and_o justification_n of_o our_o person_n as_o 1._o that_o if_o thou_o have_v more_o mercy_n than_o solomon_n if_o thou_o have_v all_o thy_o soul_n can_v desire_v in_o these_o outward_a thing_n yet_o if_o without_o spiritual_a mercy_n thou_o judge_v thy_o condition_n be_v curse_v and_o to_o be_v lament_v therefore_o psal_n 4._o when_o the_o natural_a person_n of_o the_o world_n cry_v out_o who_o will_v show_v we_o any_o good_a david_n as_o know_v a_o better_a and_o more_o solid_a good_a pray_v god_n will_v lift_v up_o the_o light_n of_o his_o countenance_n upon_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o that_o have_v the_o least_o drop_n of_o grace_n be_v more_o bind_v to_o bless_v god_n than_o he_o that_o may_v have_v all_o the_o glory_n and_o plenty_n in_o the_o world_n oh_o then_o why_o be_v thou_o not_o more_o solicitous_a say_v what_o be_v this_o wealth_n without_o god_n favour_n what_o be_v it_o to_o say_v this_o house_n be_v i_o this_o estate_n be_v i_o but_o be_o not_o able_a to_o say_v god_n be_v i_o but_o if_o god_n do_v evidence_n himself_o to_o thou_o then_o overlook_a all_o thy_o outward_a comfort_n put_v the_o ecce_fw-la the_o selah_n upon_o what_o be_v spiritual_a this_o be_v like_o the_o sun_n which_o be_v far_o above_o all_o the_o star_n it_o be_v this_o that_o make_v all_o outward_a mercy_n mercy_n they_o be_v no_o way_n good_a to_o thou_o but_o snare_n and_o temptation_n to_o draw_v out_o thy_o sin_n so_o that_o thy_o condemnation_n in_o hell_n will_v be_v the_o hot_a if_o thou_o do_v not_o enjoy_v spiritual_a mercy_n with_o they_o 2._o be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n affect_v with_o spiritual_a mercy_n because_o christ_n show_v his_o love_n to_o thou_o most_o in_o these_o it_o be_v for_o these_o he_o die_v the_o scripture_n do_v exceed_o commend_v to_o we_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o death_n now_o what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o christ_n death_n be_v they_o chief_o to_o make_v we_o rich_a great_a or_o honour_v in_o this_o world_n no_o it_o be_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v for_o holiness_n and_o power_n over_o the_o devil_n certain_o if_o christ_n die_v to_o purchase_v these_o for_o thou_o thou_o be_v very_o unthankful_a if_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o most_o enlarge_a to_o bless_v god_n for_o they_o 3._o spiritual_a mercy_n be_v the_o chief_a object_n of_o our_o praise_n because_o these_o only_a can_v true_o satisfy_v the_o soul_n these_o only_o be_v a_o sound_a cause_n of_o rejoice_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o man_n be_v never_o satisfy_v with_o temporal_a mercy_n but_o the_o more_o he_o drink_v of_o they_o the_o more_o thirsty_a still_o he_o be_v when_o solomon_n have_v make_v a_o experience_n of_o all_o his_o motto_n be_v that_o they_o be_v vexation_n of_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o vanity_n whereas_o the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n work_v in_o we_o these_o afford_v uninterrupted_a cause_n of_o joy_n 4._o the_o soul-mercy_n will_v abide_v for_o ever_o thou_o can_v not_o lose_v thy_o title_n and_o interest_n in_o they_o but_o all_o these_o earthly_a comfort_n be_v as_o the_o flower_n which_o present_o wither_v thou_o have_v they_o to_o day_n and_o they_o may_v be_v remove_v to_o morrow_n be_v sure_a then_o that_o thy_o blessing_n of_o god_n keep_v that_o method_n which_o the_o nature_n of_o mercy_n do_v require_v above_o all_o thing_n let_v thy_o soul_n melt_v with_o joy_n in_o blessing_n of_o god_n for_o what_o he_o have_v do_v to_o thy_o soul_n last_o consideration_n remember_v and_o fix_a meditation_n upon_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v that_o which_o will_v great_o inflame_v the_o soul_n to_o give_v all_o glory_n and_o honour_n to_o he_o the_o heart_n be_v not_o easy_o and_o quick_o put_v into_o a_o blessing_n frame_n there_o must_v be_v polish_n and_o fashion_v of_o it_o and_o there_o be_v no_o such_o way_n for_o this_o as_o true_a consideration_n when_o david_n call_v upon_o himself_o so_o much_o to_o glorify_v god_n this_o imply_v that_o he_o find_v his_o soul_n dull_a heavy_a and_o unfit_a for_o that_o duty_n the_o heart_n will_v not_o boil_v over_o in_o meditation_n unless_o it_o be_v long_o upon_o this_o fire_n psal_n 45._o 1._o david_n there_o call_v his_o indite_v the_o boil_a or_o bubble_v of_o his_o heart_n we_o be_v apt_a to_o forget_v god_n mercy_n or_o when_o we_o do_v think_v of_o they_o they_o be_v but_o transistory_n and_o ambulatory_a it_o be_v god_n goodness_n or_o i_o bless_v god_n and_o there_o be_v all_o whereas_o when_o we_o bless_v god_n our_o soul_n shall_v be_v raise_v up_o into_o divine_a inflammation_n we_o shall_v be_v as_o elijah_n who_o be_v carry_v up_o to_o heaven_n in_o a_o chariot_n of_o fire_n whereas_o the_o soul_n be_v at_o other_o time_n abridge_v or_o epitomise_v but_o in_o short_a character_n in_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v voluminous_a as_o you_o see_v david_n in_o psalm_n 103_o 104_o 105_o 106_o and_o 107._o very_a large_a in_o the_o enumeration_n of_o all_o god_n benefit_n which_o intimate_v that_o the_o soul_n ought_v to_o be_v extend_v in_o all_o its_o dimension_n while_o it_o set_v upon_o this_o work_n and_o certain_o meditation_n be_v like_o the_o bird_n sit_v on_o the_o egg_n not_o leave_v it_o till_o it_o have_v produce_v a_o live_v young_a one_o this_o will_v so_o often_o work_v upon_o the_o soul_n that_o at_o last_o there_o will_v be_v heavenly_a and_o supernatural_a life_n for_o several_a aggravation_n will_v the_o meditate_a heart_n find_v in_o every_o blessing_n it_o do_v possess_v as_o 1._o it_o will_v admire_v the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o god_n in_o every_o mercy_n especial_o in_o soul-mercy_n that_o god_n shall_v change_v such_o a_o stubborn_a heart_n as_o thou_o be_v that_o god_n shall_v give_v thou_o eye_n to_o see_v that_o have_v be_v blind_a so_o long_o that_o god_n shall_v give_v thou_o life_n who_o waste_v dead_a and_o putrify_v in_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n this_o will_v make_v thou_o wonder_v at_o the_o glorious_a power_n of_o god_n again_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n if_o that_o be_v consider_v in_o every_o mercy_n this_o will_v also_o great_o enlarge_v to_o thankfulness_n god_n mercy_n be_v not_o only_a mercy_n in_o themselves_o but_o they_o come_v in_o such_o fit_a season_n they_o be_v at_o such_o time_n and_o opportunity_n that_o this_o make_v they_o double_a mercy_n and_o so_o some_o have_v observe_v this_o difference_n between_o blessing_n and_o praise_v of_o god_n blessing_n of_o god_n be_v because_o of_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o mercy_n praising_n be_v for_o the_o wisdom_n and_o curious_a workmanship_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v in_o that_o mercy_n as_o if_o a_o friend_n who_o also_o be_v himself_o the_o maker_n of_o a_o curious_a watch_n shall_v bestow_v it_o upon_o you_o as_o a_o gift_n you_o will_v not_o only_o thank_v he_o for_o his_o love_n but_o praise_v his_o skill_n and_o art_n likewise_o thus_o we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o consider_v the_o mercy_n god_n give_v we_o but_o the_o wisdom_n that_o god_n demonstrate_v at_o that_o very_a time_n make_v every_o mercy_n to_o be_v with_o a_o aggravation_n again_o meditation_n will_v inflame_v by_o apprehend_v of_o god_n freeness_n in_o every_o mercy_n and_o our_o unworthiness_n we_o can_v do_v nothing_o that_o may_v provoke_v god_n especial_o this_o we_o be_v to_o aggravate_v in_o our_o spiritual_a mercy_n as_o paul_n do_v often_o exclude_v
our_o work_n and_o give_v all_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n who_o work_v according_a to_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o will_n oh_o what_o coal_n of_o fire_n will_v this_o be_v in_o thy_o bosom_n to_o think_v why_o do_v god_n do_v this_o to_o i_o what_o move_v he_o be_v god_n necessitate_v to_o it_o can_v he_o not_o do_v otherwise_o will_v he_o be_v unjust_a if_o he_o do_v it_o not_o and_o this_o further_a will_v be_v aggravate_v when_o we_o consider_v the_o mercy_n comparative_o with_o other_o that_o want_v such_o if_o for_o spiritual_a mercy_n we_o compare_v they_o with_o the_o damn_a angel_n that_o be_v utter_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o least_o crumb_n of_o any_o spiritual_a mercy_n though_o so_o noble_a and_o excellent_a creature_n may_v not_o this_o astonish_v thou_o and_o if_o thou_o say_v these_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o thou_o how_o many_o be_v there_o of_o the_o same_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o same_o vicinity_n where_o thou_o live_v of_o the_o fame_n call_v and_o profession_n yea_o of_o the_o same_o parentage_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v forsake_v by_o god_n and_o leave_v to_o their_o natural_a desert_n whereas_o he_o have_v pitch_v his_o favour_n upon_o thou_o to_o justify_v sanctify_v and_o at_o last_o to_o glorify_v thou_o certain_o thou_o be_v a_o stock_n and_o a_o stone_n if_o such_o discriminate_a mercy_n as_o this_o do_v not_o affectionate_o possess_v thou_o in_o the_o last_o place_n the_o universality_n of_o the_o mercy_n thou_o enjoy_v will_v much_o heighten_v in_o the_o consideration_n of_o they_o all_o that_o thou_o see_v thou_o hear_v thou_o eat_v thou_o feel_v yea_o thou_o think_v and_o apprehend_v be_v a_o mercy_n there_o be_v nothing_o within_o thou_o without_o thou_o or_o about_o thou_o but_o it_o be_v a_o mercy_n to_o hear_v be_v a_o mercy_n to_o see_v be_v a_o mercy_n to_o think_v without_o madness_n and_o distraction_n be_v a_o mercy_n every_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o hell_n be_v a_o mercy_n to_o thou_o all_o the_o creature_n as_o psal_n 8._o the_o sun_n the_o stir_v the_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n be_v whole_o mercy_n if_o then_o a_o man_n set_v himself_o to_o meditation_n after_o this_o manner_n will_v he_o not_o find_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n like_o ezekiel_n water_n to_o ascend_v high_a and_o high_o till_o they_o come_v over_o his_o head_n but_o to_o finish_v at_o last_o this_o subject_a take_v notice_n of_o the_o encouragement_n to_o this_o duty_n of_o a_o thankful_a blessing_n and_o praise_v soul_n that_o so_o if_o thy_o heart_n at_o last_o be_v thorough_o raise_v up_o to_o this_o duty_n thou_o may_v praise_v god_n for_o this_o truth_n that_o provoke_v thou_o to_o praise_v he_o and_o first_o the_o more_o thou_o bless_v god_n the_o more_o will_v thou_o have_v cause_n to_o bless_v he_o mercy_n for_o to_o the_o thankful_a heart_n god_n multiply_v his_o mercy_n as_o many_o time_n because_o thou_o do_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o goodness_n to_o thou_o or_o look_v upon_o his_o mercy_n as_o a_o debt_n to_o thou_o or_o thou_o take_v the_o mercy_n god_n have_v give_v thou_o and_o use_v they_o as_o weapon_n against_o he_o therefore_o he_o take_v away_o thy_o mercy_n from_o thou_o to_o make_v thou_o prize_v they_o the_o more_o whereas_o to_o the_o soul_n that_o take_v every_o mercy_n as_o the_o hen_n every_o drop_n of_o water_n and_o immediate_o look_v up_o to_o heaven_n that_o will_v take_v up_o every_o fragment_n that_o nothing_o be_v lose_v as_o thou_o bless_v god_n declarative_o god_n will_v bless_v thou_o real_o christ_n will_v bless_v thou_o as_o he_o do_v those_o few_o loaf_n by_o multiply_v of_o they_o second_o consider_v this_o be_v all_o thou_o can_v do_v to_o god_n for_o all_o his_o several_a mercy_n what_o do_v god_n require_v of_o thou_o after_o all_o that_o he_o have_v do_v for_o thy_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v it_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o to_o magnify_v his_o name_n to_o give_v he_o the_o glory_n of_o it_o and_o this_o do_v not_o at_o all_o add_v unto_o the_o greatness_n of_o god_n he_o be_v not_o make_v the_o more_o perfect_a and_o bless_a in_o himself_o by_o all_o the_o glory_n thou_o give_v to_o he_o so_o that_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o great_a glory_n that_o thou_o be_v capable_a of_o that_o god_n will_v accept_v of_o blessing_n from_o thou_o that_o he_o will_v own_o praise_n out_o of_o thy_o mouth_n that_o he_o do_v not_o rebuke_v thou_o as_o christ_n do_v the_o devil_n when_o they_o confess_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n three_o this_o blessing_n and_o praise_v of_o god_n will_v keep_v thou_o in_o a_o joyful_a active_a and_o fruitful_a way_n those_o that_o sing_v at_o their_o work_n dispatch_v it_o with_o great_a facility_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n fill_v with_o cordial_a thankfulness_n to_o god_n do_v more_o for_o god_n than_o many_o other_o who_o be_v clog_v with_o deject_v and_o discourage_v thought_n see_v whether_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o thy_o heaviness_n yea_o the_o prevail_a of_o lust_n and_o passion_n upon_o thou_o be_v not_o want_v of_o cheerful_a blessing_n of_o god_n the_o joy_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o strength_n last_o consider_v the_o example_n of_o david_n how_o unwearied_a he_o be_v in_o this_o work_n never_o think_v that_o his_o soul_n do_v enough_o herein_o and_o therefore_o because_o he_o can_v discharge_v this_o duty_n to_o his_o desire_n he_o call_v upon_o all_o the_o creature_n of_o the_o world_n almost_o to_o help_v he_o therein_o yea_o the_o very_a ice_n and_o snow_n and_o such_o inanimate_a creature_n how_o much_o more_o angel_n and_o man_n must_v join_v with_o he_o to_o praise_v god_n in_o augustine_n time_n some_o be_v name_v deo_fw-la gratias_fw-la certain_o we_o shall_v so_o abound_v in_o this_o duty_n that_o it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v unto_o god_n as_o psal_n 22._o thou_o inhabite_v the_o praise_n of_o israel_n serm._n xxxi_o how_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o how_o the_o consideration_n thereof_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o a_o christian_n comfort_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 3_o bless_a be_v god_n even_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o duty_n of_o blessing_n with_o the_o object_n of_o it_o be_v dispatch_v let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o that_o amplification_n and_o illustration_n which_o the_o apostle_n uf_v in_o describe_v of_o it_o and_o the_o first_o be_v from_o a_o personal_a and_o relative_a respect_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n even_o the_o father_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o particle_n be_v by_o way_n of_o interpretation_n and_o explication_n what_o he_o mean_v by_o god_n viz._n that_o he_o do_v not_o take_v the_o word_n as_o it_o be_v often_o absolute_o for_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o common_a to_o the_o three_o person_n but_o relative_o and_o in_o the_o distinct_a personality_n of_o the_o first_o person_n and_o therefore_o say_v to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o stephanus_n observe_v may_v be_v render_v by_o et_fw-la sed_fw-la tunc_fw-la etiam_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o the_o subject_a matter_n require_v the_o apostle_n do_v in_o other_o place_n delight_v to_o use_v this_o expression_n rom._n 15._o 6._o 2_o cor._n 11._o 31._o ephes_n 3._o 14._o in_o which_o place_n the_o apostle_n seem_v with_o much_o affection_n and_o cordial_a enlargement_n to_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o relative_a title_n in_o god_n the_o father_n for_o this_o be_v the_o treasure_n of_o our_o comfort_n herein_o be_v all_o our_o mercy_n contain_v that_o we_o and_o christ_n have_v the_o same_o father_n he_o by_o nature_n and_o we_o by_o grace_n so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o consider_v of_o god_n paternal_a relation_n to_o christ_n as_o a_o speculative_a doctrinal_a truth_n but_o as_o practical_a and_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o consolation_n to_o we_o hence_o john_n 20._o 17._o christ_n by_o way_n of_o comfort_n tell_v they_o he_o ascends_z to_o his_o father_n and_o their_o father_n and_o indeed_o without_o christ_n we_o can_v behold_v he_o as_o a_o father_n but_o as_o a_o severe_a and_o dreadful_a judge_n only_o when_o we_o say_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n relation_n to_o christ_n a_o son_n be_v so_o full_a of_o comfort_n you_o must_v not_o understand_v it_o absolute_o and_o naked_o as_o the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n but_o as_o assume_v the_o humane_a nature_n into_o a_o personal_a subsistency_n therefore_o he_o say_v the_o father_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o description_n of_o his_o person_n in_o both_o his_o nature_n so_o that_o we_o must_v not_o look_v upon_o the_o son_n as_o the_o second_o person_n alone_o in_o
they_o second_o in_o this_o expression_n of_o father_n of_o mercy_n be_v not_o only_o comprehend_v mercy_n the_o multitude_n of_o they_o but_o the_o diversity_n also_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o all_o kind_n of_o mercy_n god_n have_v a_o unexhausted_a treasure_n of_o mercy_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n call_v god_n rich_a in_o mercy_n ephes_n 2._o 4._o though_o god_n be_v rich_a in_o wisdom_n in_o power_n yet_o the_o scripture_n call_v he_o only_o rich_a in_o mercy_n as_o if_o herein_o he_o do_v most_o excel_v now_o from_o this_o treasury_n arise_v all_o kind_n of_o mercy_n do_v not_o say_v god_n may_v by_o his_o mercy_n help_v i_o in_o this_o particular_a and_o in_o that_o respect_n he_o can_v give_v i_o bodily_a mercy_n but_o can_v he_o give_v soul_n mercy_n he_o can_v give_v private_a mercy_n but_o can_v he_o give_v public_a mercy_n yes_o we_o have_v too_o low_a and_o narrow_a thought_n of_o god_n if_o we_o limit_v he_o to_o any_o kind_n of_o mercy_n he_o can_v do_v the_o great_a as_o well_o as_o the_o least_o let_v we_o instance_n in_o some_o kind_n of_o mercy_n as_o 1._o there_o be_v common_a mercy_n and_o there_o be_v special_a mercy_n common_a mercy_n be_v those_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v full_a of_o he_o make_v the_o sun_n to_o shine_v upon_o the_o good_a and_o the_o bad_a therefore_o our_o saviour_n press_v we_o to_o love_v our_o enemy_n because_o god_n be_v thus_o merciful_a even_o to_o his_o enemy_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a earth_n every_o village_n every_o town_n full_a of_o the_o common_a mercy_n of_o god_n how_o come_v so_o many_o to_o live_v to_o subsist_v upon_o his_o cost_n and_o charge_n whence_o be_v it_o that_o all_o the_o people_n in_o the_o world_n be_v provide_v for_o be_v it_o not_o from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n lam._n 3._o 22._o it_o be_v the_o lord_n mercy_n that_o we_o be_v not_o consume_v that_o famine_n war_n plague_n and_o other_o judgement_n do_v not_o sweep_v away_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n do_v not_o fall_v into_o ruin_n this_o be_v from_o god_n mere_a mercy_n that_o all_o be_v not_o roar_v in_o hell_n it_o be_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n now_o this_o common_a mercy_n be_v the_o more_o admirable_a if_o you_o consider_v what_o kind_n of_o person_n they_o be_v to_o who_o he_o be_v thus_o merciful_a even_o to_o his_o very_a enemy_n that_o hate_n god_n and_o if_o it_o lay_v in_o their_o power_n will_v destroy_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v a_o be_v oh_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o be_v continue_v to_o many_o a_o profane_a beast_n and_o many_o a_o malicious_a devil_n to_o what_o be_v good_a why_o be_v it_o that_o every_o liar_n be_v not_o strike_v dead_a with_o ananias_n why_o be_v it_o that_o every_o drunkard_n quaff_v in_o his_o pot_n do_v not_o see_v a_o terrible_a hand-writing_n in_o the_o wall_n against_o he_o why_o be_v it_o that_o the_o earth_n do_v not_o open_a to_o swallow_v thou_o up_o while_o thy_o mouth_n be_v full_a of_o curse_v and_o swear_v be_v not_o all_o this_o from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n oh_o how_o little_a do_v this_o mercy_n of_o god_n lead_v you_o to_o repentance_n whereas_o it_o be_v vouchsafe_v to_o you_o for_o that_o end_n let_v it_o not_o be_v despise_v because_o it_o be_v common_a for_o though_o god_n be_v thus_o often_o merciful_a yet_o sometime_o his_o judgement_n be_v terrible_a to_o profane_a man_n they_o be_v sudden_o destroy_v while_o they_o be_v in_o their_o drunken_a fit_n and_o it_o be_v god_n mercy_n that_o what_o have_v befall_v other_o do_v not_o also_o come_v upon_o thou_o but_o after_o thy_o impenitent_a heart_n thou_o treasure_v up_o wrath_n against_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n now_o be_v the_o day_n of_o mercy_n but_o then_o will_v be_v a_o day_n of_o wrath_n there_o be_v special_a mercy_n such_o as_o the_o godly_a be_v only_a partaker_n of_o to_o be_v call_v to_o be_v justify_v to_o be_v sanctify_v etc._n etc._n oh_o what_o heart_n or_o tongue_n can_v express_v the_o happiness_n of_o those_o who_o have_v these_o mercy_n how_o sacrilegious_a be_v those_o doctrine_n that_o do_v not_o make_v god_n whole_o and_o sole_o the_o father_n of_o these_o mercy_n but_o they_o make_v themselves_o and_o their_o own_o freewill_n to_o be_v yoynt-fathers_n with_o god_n in_o these_o mercy_n but_o as_o austin_n of_o old_a urge_v if_o i_o can_v make_v myself_o a_o man_n which_o be_v the_o lesser_a can_v i_o make_v myself_o a_o holy_a man_n which_o be_v the_o great_a if_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o temporal_a mercy_n that_o thou_o can_v procure_v by_o thy_o own_o power_n not_o a_o morsel_n of_o bread_n not_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n can_v thou_o by_o thy_o own_o strength_n obtain_v the_o great_a of_o all_o though_o it_o be_v say_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o of_o gideon_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v say_v the_o vocation_n the_o justification_n by_o paul_n and_o by_o christ_n but_o christ_n alone_o do_v these_o thing_n in_o we_o and_o for_o we_o though_o by_o his_o grace_n we_o be_v also_o sanctify_v and_o enable_v to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v holy_a again_o there_o be_v soul-mercy_n and_o there_o be_v bodily-mercy_n there_o be_v spiritual_a and_o there_o be_v temporal_a mercy_n now_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o both_o we_o may_v sin_v by_o unthankfulness_n for_o either_o of_o they_o if_o thou_o take_v thy_o bodily-mercy_n as_o due_a thy_o health_n thy_o sleep_n thy_o preservation_n from_o daily_a danger_n in_o this_o thou_o wrong_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n for_o if_o he_o take_v away_o his_o hand_n but_o for_o a_o moment_n thou_o can_v not_o subsist_v and_o as_o for_o soul-mercy_n whether_o the_o natural_a one_o of_o it_o as_o thy_o wit_n thy_o understanding_n thy_o fancy_n thy_o sense_n god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o they_o or_o the_o spiritual_a one_o there_o he_o be_v much_o more_o if_o thou_o have_v repentance_n faith_n assurance_n a_o gracious_a content_a heart_n in_o every_o condition_n these_o be_v mercy_n of_o mercy_n but_o god_n alone_o be_v the_o father_n of_o they_o furthermore_o there_o be_v prevent_v or_o privative_a mercy_n and_o there_o be_v positive_a mercy_n now_o the_o rule_n be_v plures_fw-la sunt_fw-la gratiae_fw-la privativae_fw-la quam_fw-la positivae_fw-la more_o privative_a favour_n than_o positive_a do_v not_o god_n prevent_v what_o innumerable_a evil_n may_v arise_v every_o day_n to_o destroy_v thou_o when_o we_o pray_v for_o daily_a bread_n in_o that_o we_o comprehend_v all_o kind_n of_o outward_a bodily_a mercy_n so_o that_o if_o the_o lord_n hand_n be_v not_o always_o give_v we_o can_v not_o abide_v a_o day_n now_o see_v that_o by_o sin_n we_o be_v make_v obnoxious_a to_o all_o the_o curse_n in_o the_o law_n to_o be_v curse_v at_o home_n and_o curse_a abroad_o how_o manifold_a be_v god_n prevent_v mercy_n to_o we_o what_o evil_a may_v every_o day_n bring_v forth_o to_o thou_o what_o a_o sad_a night_n may_v every_o night_n be_v to_o thou_o if_o god_n prevent_v mercy_n do_v not_o compass_v thou_o about_o last_o we_o may_v instance_n in_o private_a mercy_n and_o public_a mercy_n but_o what_o have_v already_o be_v speak_v may_v abundant_o confirm_v we_o that_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o property_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o mercy_n 1._o he_o be_v infinite_a in_o mercy_n as_o well_o as_o in_o other_o attribute_n so_o that_o this_o fountain_n can_v never_o be_v draw_v dry_a he_o have_v mercy_n enough_o for_o thou_o and_o i_o and_o for_o all_o the_o humble_a sinner_n in_o the_o world_n if_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v but_o as_o a_o drop_n to_o he_o so_o neither_o be_v all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n but_o as_o a_o drop_n to_o his_o mercy_n no_o sin_n be_v too_o many_o or_o too_o great_a for_o god_n mercy_n and_o true_o this_o consideration_n alone_o be_v that_o which_o do_v revive_v and_o establish_v the_o droop_a soul_n for_o if_o it_o be_v but_o the_o mercy_n of_o a_o creature_n if_o it_o be_v finite_a mercy_n that_o thou_o have_v to_o do_v with_o woe_n and_o again_o woe_n will_v be_v unto_o thou_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n speak_v full_o to_o this_o chap._n 55._o 7_o 8_o 9_o where_o there_o be_v a_o encouragement_n give_v to_o the_o wicked_a to_o forsake_v his_o evil_a way_n because_o god_n will_v have_v mercy_n yea_o he_o will_v abundant_o pardon_v or_o multiply_v to_o pardon_v and_o whereas_o the_o sinner_n may_v think_v sure_o god_n will_v never_o do_v so_o to_o such_o a_o heinous_a and_o wretched_a sinner_n as_o i_o be_o the_o prophet_n tell_v we_o god_n thought_n be_v not_o as_o our_o thought_n but_o as_o the_o heaven_n be_v high_a
than_o the_o earth_n so_o be_v his_o way_n viz._n of_o mercy_n to_o our_o way_n as_o then_o the_o earth_n be_v but_o like_o a_o pin_n head_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o vast_a dimension_n of_o the_o heaven_n so_o be_v all_o our_o sin_n comparative_o to_o god_n mercy_n if_o then_o thou_o have_v great_a thought_n about_o thy_o sin_n say_v they_o be_v great_a than_o thou_o can_v bear_v yet_o have_v as_o great_a thought_n of_o god_n mercy_n and_o know_v they_o be_v not_o great_a than_o mercy_n can_v take_v away_o 2._o as_o it_o be_v infinite_a mercy_n so_o they_o be_v tender_a mercy_n bowel_n of_o mercy_n psal_n 40._o 11._o david_n pray_v god_n will_v not_o take_v away_o his_o tender_a mercy_n from_o he_o hence_o he_o be_v compare_v both_o to_o a_o father_n and_o a_o mother_n oh_o take_v heed_n then_o of_o dishonour_v god_n by_o hard_a distrustful_a and_o unbelieving_a thought_n about_o he_o think_v not_o of_o he_o as_o a_o austee_a judge_n who_o reap_v where_o he_o do_v not_o sow_v the_o devil_n and_o our_o guilty_a conscience_n be_v apt_a to_o represent_v god_n otherwise_o than_o he_o be_v indeed_o while_o thou_o be_v secure_a and_o stupid_a in_o thy_o sin_n thou_o think_v of_o god_n as_o a_o idol-god_n have_v no_o eye_n to_o see_v or_o thou_o present_v he_o only_o a_o merciful_a god_n to_o thyself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v not_o also_o holy_a and_o just_a but_o when_o once_o sin_n burn_v in_o thy_o heart_n like_o fire_n when_o god_n make_v thou_o a_o terror_n to_o thyself_o because_o of_o thy_o wickedness_n than_o all_o be_v turn_v thou_o think_v of_o the_o justice_n and_o vengeance_n of_o god_n only_o as_o if_o he_o have_v no_o mercy_n but_o when_o thy_o sin_n be_v a_o burden_n to_o thou_o and_o thou_o do_v in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o thy_o heart_n forsake_v they_o then_o think_v of_o god_n only_o as_o the_o scripture_n represent_v he_o then_o harken_v what_o mercy_n comfort_n and_o peace_n he_o speak_v to_o such_o a_o contrite_a soul_n as_o thou_o be_v 3._o they_o be_v sure_a mercy_n to_o all_o the_o godly_a isa_n 55._o 3._o they_o be_v call_v the_o sure_a mercy_n of_o david_n for_o all_o necessary_a mercy_n either_o for_o soul_n or_o body_n they_o be_v bind_v up_o in_o god_n promise_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v well_o be_v call_v sure_a mercy_n even_o those_o thou_o have_v not_o yet_o be_v as_o sure_a mercy_n as_o if_o thou_o be_v already_o possess_v of_o they_o glorification_n and_o salvation_n be_v the_o sure_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o though_o for_o the_o present_a thou_o be_v in_o a_o valley_n of_o tear_n sigh_v under_o thy_o misery_n 4._o they_o be_v free_a mercy_n such_o as_o god_n do_v only_o for_o his_o name_n sake_n when_o we_o have_v nothing_o but_o sin_n in_o we_o that_o may_v just_o provoke_v god_n to_o turn_v his_o mercy_n into_o judgement_n yet_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n he_o will_v be_v merciful_a though_o we_o have_v lose_v our_o grace_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o that_o attribute_n of_o mercy_n thus_o psal_n 6._o 4._o psal_n 31._o 16._o david_n still_o pray_v save_v i_o for_o thy_o mercy_n sake_n so_o that_o this_o may_v great_o encourage_v thou_o when_o thou_o think_v oh_o what_o a_o barren_a and_o dry_a wilderness_n be_o i_o oh_o what_o matter_n do_v i_o find_v in_o i_o to_o displease_v god_n for_o ever_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o these_o thought_n remember_v god_n mercy_n be_v free_a they_o have_v no_o other_o original_n or_o rise_v but_o from_o himself_o think_v though_o i_o have_v degenerate_v from_o my_o holiness_n yet_o god_n can_v never_o lay_v aside_o his_o mercy_n but_o you_o will_v say_v be_v this_o truth_n to_o be_v indifferent_o publish_v to_o all_o may_v we_o tell_v every_o one_o that_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n to_o he_o will_v not_o this_o be_v to_o make_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o wicked_a glad_a who_o yet_o god_n will_v have_v make_v sad_a to_o answer_v it_o therefore_o first_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n be_v very_o merciful_a even_o to_o wicked_a man_n and_o that_o while_o they_o continue_v in_o their_o obstinacy_n do_v not_o experience_n confirm_v this_o and_o this_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v not_o only_o see_v in_o temporal_a thing_n he_o give_v they_o health_n life_n and_o wealth_n so_o that_o they_o can_v never_o plead_v against_o god_n but_o also_o he_o be_v merciful_a to_o many_o ungodly_a wretch_n and_o that_o in_o spiritual_a mercy_n he_o give_v they_o the_o kingdom_n of_o grace_n he_o give_v they_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o allow_v they_o the_o day_n of_o grace_n whenas_o they_o may_v have_v be_v always_o keep_v up_o in_o darkness_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v so_o often_o complain_v of_o the_o unprofitableness_n of_o the_o unthankfulness_n and_o forgetfulness_n towards_o he_o even_o worse_o than_o of_o the_o bruit_n creature_n but_o in_o the_o next_o place_n there_o be_v the_o most_o special_a mercy_n of_o his_o complacency_n and_o delight_n and_o these_o be_v vouchsafe_v only_o to_o true_a believer_n so_o that_o we_o can_v proper_o say_v god_n be_v a_o father_n of_o mercy_n to_o any_o but_o to_o the_o upright_a in_o heart_n for_o though_o wicked_a man_n do_v taste_v of_o many_o mercy_n from_o god_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o a_o reconcile_a father_n to_o they_o they_o come_v not_o from_o he_o as_o a_o father_n in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o though_o in_o themselves_o they_o may_v be_v call_v mercy_n yet_o if_o you_o consider_v the_o event_n of_o they_o how_o the_o wicked_a abuse_n all_o mercy_n and_o increase_v their_o sin_n by_o they_o it_o will_v be_v at_o last_o confess_v they_o be_v not_o mercy_n but_o judgement_n to_o they_o the_o mercy_n then_o which_o arise_v from_o god_n favour_n none_o have_v but_o those_o that_o be_v godly_a and_o we_o may_v in_o brief_a take_v these_o character_n of_o such_o who_o be_v object_n of_o his_o mercy_n first_o such_o as_o be_v of_o a_o break_a contrite_a heart_n for_o sin_n such_o who_o forsake_v and_o cast_v mercy_n it_o away_o in_o their_o life_n to_o these_o only_a god_n be_v a_o father_n of_o mercy_n for_o as_o for_o the_o wicked_a it_o be_v say_v god_n be_v angry_a with_o the_o wicked_a every_o day_n to_o who_o do_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n belong_v but_o to_o those_o that_o be_v thus_o guilty_a of_o sin_n the_o doubt_n than_o be_v not_o whether_o god_n be_v merciful_a but_o whether_o thou_o be_v the_o fit_a subject_n of_o mercy_n whether_o thou_o be_v the_o man_n god_n will_v honour_v second_o such_o only_o be_v the_o object_n of_o his_o mercy_n that_o have_v faith_n in_o he_o that_o hope_v in_o his_o mercy_n hence_o david_n do_v so_o often_o profess_v his_o trust_n in_o god_n mercy_n for_o there_o be_v either_o a_o pharisaical_a self-righteousness_n in_o we_o whereby_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o trust_v in_o our_o righteousness_n and_o in_o the_o work_v we_o do_v we_o see_v by_o the_o jew_n of_o old_a and_o most_o christian_n at_o this_o day_n that_o they_o be_v so_o full_a of_o themselves_o that_o they_o never_o trust_v alone_o in_o god_n mercy_n or_o else_o if_o sin_n be_v set_v home_o upon_o the_o conscience_n than_o many_o prove_v cain_n and_o judasses_n they_o fly_v from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o damn_v themselves_o for_o fear_n of_o damnation_n so_o that_o presumption_n make_v most_o and_o despair_v some_o few_o the_o unfit_a object_n of_o god_n mercy_n misery_n alone_o do_v not_o prepare_v thou_o for_o mercy_n the_o devil_n and_o damn_a in_o hell_n be_v miserable_a enough_o yet_o can_v obtain_v one_o drop_n of_o mercy_n but_o there_o must_v be_v a_o debase_v of_o thyself_o because_o of_o sin_n and_o then_o raise_v up_o of_o thyself_o to_o catch_v hold_n on_o mercy_n serm._n xxxiv_o how_o god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o comfort_n yea_o of_o all_o comfort_n and_o consolation_n to_o all_o those_o that_o be_v he_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 3_o and_o the_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n the_o next_o ground_n why_o god_n be_v to_o be_v bless_v be_v because_o he_o be_v a_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n now_o although_o this_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o former_a when_o he_o be_v style_v the_o father_n of_o mercy_n yet_o we_o may_v make_v that_o distinction_n which_o aquinas_n upon_o the_o place_n give_v viz._n that_o he_o be_v a_o father_n of_o mercy_n because_o he_o do_v either_o prevent_v or_o remove_v those_o misery_n that_o our_o sin_n do_v deserve_v but_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o conselation_n in_o that_o though_o our_o affliction_n and_o tribulation_n be_v not_o take_v away_o yet_o while_o we_o be_v in_o they_o he_o do_v give_v many_o consolation_n and_o
soul_n have_v be_v at_o the_o very_a border_n of_o hell_n and_o have_v be_v ready_a to_o be_v swallow_v up_o with_o overmuch_a grief_n that_o then_o even_o than_o god_n have_v cause_v joy_n to_o arise_v in_o the_o soul_n so_o that_o all_o his_o doubt_n all_o his_o darkness_n they_o be_v dispel_v and_o as_o the_o church_n say_v when_o their_o captivity_n be_v turn_v as_o the_o stream_n in_o the_o south_n they_o be_v like_o man_n in_o a_o dream_n thus_o be_v they_o even_o astonish_v to_o see_v what_o a_o wonderful_a alteration_n god_n have_v make_v upon_o they_o turn_v a_o barren_a wilderness_n into_o a_o pleasant_a pool_n thus_o god_n comfort_n as_o he_o teach_v none_o teach_v like_o he_o for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o reveal_v the_o object_n to_o be_v know_v but_o prepare_v and_o fit_v the_o subject_n to_o understand_v whereas_o man_n teach_v only_o by_o propound_v truth_n but_o can_v give_v a_o mind_n to_o understand_v thus_o god_n also_o comfort_v as_o no_o friend_n can_v no_o minister_n can_v because_o god_n do_v persuade_v the_o heart_n he_o can_v take_v away_o the_o fear_n and_o the_o doubt_n and_o so_o make_v all_o comfort_n to_o have_v a_o immediate_a illapse_n into_o the_o soul_n whereas_o even_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n though_o they_o bring_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o peace_n though_o they_o have_v the_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a to_o speak_v a_o word_n in_o season_n to_o the_o afflict_a soul_n yet_o they_o can_v bring_v this_o no_o further_o than_o into_o the_o ear_n they_o can_v make_v it_o at_o all_o descend_v into_o the_o heart_n insomuch_o that_o minister_n comfort_n in_o vain_a and_o the_o sacrament_n they_o seal_v comfort_n in_o vain_a till_o god_n do_v alter_v and_o change_v the_o heart_n and_o thus_o much_o be_v considerable_a because_o it_o be_v say_v the_o god_n of_o consolation_n second_o what_o be_v imply_v in_o the_o word_n consolation_n and_o 1._o we_o be_v to_o know_v this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o sweet_a mercy_n in_o all_o god_n store-house_n comfort_n consolation_n and_o consolation_n and_o that_o in_o this_o valley_n of_o tear_n where_o we_o meet_v with_o so_o much_o discomfort_n where_o there_o be_v so_o many_o grieve_v and_o torment_v passage_n this_o make_v the_o mercy_n to_o be_v of_o great_a moment_n for_o what_o if_o a_o man_n have_v the_o abundance_n his_o heart_n can_v desire_v yet_o if_o he_o have_v no_o comfort_n in_o any_o thing_n a_o dead_a man_n yea_o a_o dead_a dog_n be_v better_a than_o such_o a_o one_o insomuch_o that_o a_o man_n whole_a life_n be_v almost_o for_o nothing_o but_o a_o comfortable_a life_n comfort_n and_o delight_n be_v so_o great_a a_o matter_n that_o some_o philosopher_n place_v utmost_a happiness_n therein_o look_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o you_o will_v see_v not_o every_o man_n that_o be_v most_o wise_a or_o most_o great_a not_o every_o one_o that_o live_v in_o most_o abundance_n and_o most_o honour_n but_o he_o that_o live_v most_o comfortable_o live_v the_o life_n most_o to_o be_v desire_v yea_o many_o time_n a_o crown_n of_o gold_n be_v a_o crown_n of_o thorn_n and_o a_o cottage_n have_v more_o comfort_n than_o a_o palace_n so_o that_o the_o mercy_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o salt_n that_o season_v all_o condition_n without_o this_o a_o man_n be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o cain_n or_o a_o judas_n without_o this_o every_o house_n and_o field_n be_v a_o hell_n when_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v the_o god_n of_o comfort_n here_o be_v insinuate_v the_o most_o desirable_a thing_n that_o can_v be_v yea_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n to_o hear_v that_o if_o a_o man_n have_v wealth_n and_o honour_n but_o without_o comfort_n that_o his_o life_n be_v a_o torment_n for_o although_o a_o man_n have_v true_a grace_n and_o be_v a_o eminent_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o will_v be_v certain_o bless_v hereafter_o yet_o because_o he_o have_v no_o comfort_n in_o his_o soul_n his_o condition_n be_v very_o terrible_a and_o sad_a as_o you_o see_v it_o be_v with_o job_n yea_o with_o christ_n himself_o though_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n yet_o because_o without_o comfort_n when_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o be_v full_a of_o grace_n and_o holiness_n what_o grief_n and_o agony_n do_v he_o conflict_n with_o so_o that_o your_o comfort_n be_v like_a oil_n it_o be_v call_v the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n for_o it_o will_v be_v always_o uppermost_a in_o the_o soul_n 2._o comfort_n be_v such_o a_o rare_a mercy_n that_o unless_o god_n give_v it_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o man_n for_o how_o can_v comfort_v and_o sin_n be_v together_o every_o man_n have_v by_o nature_n forfeit_v all_o his_o comfort_n there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o drop_n of_o comfort_n but_o every_o man_n have_v out_v himself_o of_o it_o so_o that_o man_n and_o the_o devil_n be_v all_o alike_o in_o respect_n of_o desert_n as_o the_o devil_n can_v any_o where_o gather_v up_o so_o much_o as_o a_o crumb_n of_o a_o comfort_n so_o neither_o may_v any_o man_n live_v the_o whole_a world_n may_v just_o become_v a_o hell_n and_o not_o one_o drop_n of_o comfort_n to_o be_v find_v in_o it_o therefore_o that_o god_n be_v a_o god_n of_o comfort_n to_o a_o believer_n it_o be_v a_o unspeakable_a mercy_n for_o of_o himself_o can_v come_v any_o comfort_n nothing_o but_o brier_n and_o thorn_n nothing_o but_o hellish_a torment_n and_o despair_n will_v natural_o arise_v in_o our_o heart_n so_o that_o comfort_n be_v the_o more_o to_o be_v prize_v because_o we_o have_v lose_v all_o and_o may_v just_o be_v as_o full_a of_o horror_n and_o fear_n as_o we_o be_v of_o sin_n as_o sin_n have_v abound_v so_o not_o grace_n but_o vengeance_n may_v abound_v much_o more_o hence_o in_o the_o three_o place_n therefore_o be_v god_n a_o god_n of_o consolation_n because_o christ_n have_v make_v a_o full_a atonement_n for_o we_o by_o his_o blood_n such_o a_o glorious_a expression_n as_o this_o can_v not_o have_v be_v true_a in_o the_o world_n but_o for_o christ_n if_o no_o christ_n than_o no_o comfort_n hence_o in_o the_o text_n it_o be_v say_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o then_o follow_v the_o god_n of_o comfort_n so_o that_o as_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n so_o we_o be_v also_o in_o his_o name_n to_o offer_v up_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n it_o be_v then_o through_o christ_n alone_o that_o he_o be_v a_o god_n of_o comfort_n and_o indeed_o without_o christ_n he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o wrath_n and_o vengeance_n of_o all_o anger_n and_o judgement_n his_o holiness_n and_o justice_n be_v such_o that_o be_v it_o not_o through_o he_o he_o will_v be_v a_o consume_a fire_n and_o the_o most_o holy_a man_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o stand_v in_o his_o sight_n so_o that_o it_o cost_v christ_n dear_a to_o make_v a_o way_n and_o passage_n of_o comfort_n for_o we_o last_o god_n through_o christ_n be_v thus_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o consolation_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o he_o do_v most_o genuine_o and_o proper_o of_o himself_o show_v mercy_n and_o vouchsafe_v comfort_n even_o as_o the_o bee_n of_o itself_o make_v honey_n but_o never_o sting_v except_o when_o provoke_v thus_o if_o we_o walk_v not_o always_o comfortable_o if_o we_o live_v not_o in_o holy_a joy_n and_o gladness_n of_o heart_n this_o arise_v from_o ourselves_o the_o vapour_n that_o turn_v into_o storm_n and_o thunder_n come_v from_o our_o own_o bowel_n otherwise_o god_n will_v always_o be_v communicate_v consolation_n to_o we_o we_o shut_v out_o the_o light_n from_o we_o we_o turn_v sweetness_n into_o bitterness_n thus_o the_o psalmist_n say_v that_o god_n do_v not_o afflict_v willing_o the_o work_n of_o justice_n be_v common_o call_v alienum_fw-la opus_fw-la but_o god_n work_n of_o justice_n be_v his_o proper_a work_n as_o well_o as_o of_o mercy_n only_o our_o sin_n stir_v he_o up_o and_o provoke_v he_o to_o the_o one_o but_o his_o mere_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n incline_v to_o the_o other_o so_o that_o now_o god_n will_v always_o fill_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o child_n with_o rejoice_v do_v not_o they_o obstruct_v it_o themselves_o in_o the_o three_o and_o last_o place_n he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o consolation_n there_o be_v consolation_n the_o extent_n of_o it_o all_o consolation_n which_o imply_v 1._o that_o there_o be_v no_o consolation_n but_o come_v from_o he_o no_o true_a and_o solid_a comfort_n but_o god_n bestow_v it_o as_o for_o that_o profane_a and_o wicked_a mirth_n which_o the_o devil_n stir_v up_o ungodly_a man_n unto_o that_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o name_n of_o joy_n it_o be_v a_o madness_n for_o they_o descend_v quick_a as_o it_o be_v
practical_o as_o in_o the_o first_o place_n what_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o some_o have_v embrace_v that_o old_a and_o unsavoury_a doctrine_n of_o origen_n that_o all_o both_o man_n and_o devil_n after_o so_o many_o year_n in_o hell_n shall_v be_v release_v from_o those_o torment_n why_o be_v this_o but_o because_o these_o misericordist_n conceive_v of_o god_n mercy_n without_o scripture-ground_n they_o think_v it_o do_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o pity_n and_o compassion_n of_o god_n to_o let_v so_o many_o thousand_o of_o his_o creature_n lie_v roar_v in_o hell_n and_o he_o never_o deliver_v they_o but_o be_v not_o this_o against_o scripture_n which_o call_v it_o everlasting_a fire_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v never_o be_v any_o come_n out_o of_o that_o prison_n that_o of_o their_o torment_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n again_o in_o the_o second_o place_n there_o be_v those_o that_o do_v with_o open_a mouth_n cry_v god_n down_o the_o calvinist_n as_o blasphemous_a against_o god_n mercy_n and_o make_v god_n to_o be_v more_o unmerciful_a and_o cruel_a than_o any_o tyrant_n that_o ever_o live_v because_o say_v they_o such_o do_v hold_v god_n do_v by_o absolute_a and_o irrespective_a fatal_a decree_n appoint_v the_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n to_o sin_n and_o then_o for_o their_o sin_n to_o damn_v they_o as_o tiberius_n desiroe_n to_o put_v a_o vestal_a virgin_n to_o death_n cause_v she_o violent_o to_o be_v deflower_v and_o then_o because_o she_o be_v deflower_v he_o put_v she_o to_o death_n but_o first_o here_o be_v a_o false_a and_o a_o odious_a representation_n of_o the_o calvinist_n doctrine_n and_o if_o their_o opinion_n as_o they_o true_o state_n it_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n be_v think_v to_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n mercy_n it_o be_v because_o they_o do_v not_o consider_v god_n supreme_a dominion_n his_o justice_n and_o holiness_n as_o well_o as_o his_o mercy_n but_o that_o the_o calvinist_n do_v not_o any_o way_n diminish_v the_o gracious_a and_o merciful_a nature_n of_o god_n by_o their_o opinion_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o election_n efficacious_a conversion_n etc._n etc._n will_v easy_o appear_v to_o those_o that_o be_v candid_a and_o ingenuous_a i_o suppose_v election_n to_o be_v a_o act_n of_o mercy_n relate_v to_o our_o misery_n in_o adam_n fall_n though_o the_o learned_a doctor_n twiss_n dispute_v much_o against_o it_o lib._n 1._o contra_fw-la armin._n digr_n 9_o for_o 1._o they_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v no_o man_n be_v damn_v but_o for_o his_o sin_n their_o destruction_n be_v of_o themselves_o neither_o do_v they_o say_v that_o god_n by_o any_o decree_n compel_v adam_n to_o sin_n at_o first_o but_o adam_n sin_v as_o voluntary_o and_o as_o free_o as_o if_o god_n have_v make_v no_o permissive_a decree_n about_o his_o fall_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o we_o say_v that_o god_n have_v predetermine_v decree_n efficacious_a about_o what_o be_v good_a permissive_a about_o what_o be_v evil_a but_o yet_o we_o say_v these_o decree_n do_v not_o alter_v the_o nature_n of_o second_o cause_n but_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o they_o so_o be_v god_n providence_n attemper_v thereunto_o therefore_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o of_o augustine_n malevola_fw-la est_fw-la illa_fw-la misericordia_fw-la quae_fw-la facit_fw-la esse_fw-la miserum_fw-la ut_fw-la misereatur_fw-la that_o be_v cruel_a mercy_n which_o make_v miserable_a that_o it_o may_v show_v mercy_n adam_n do_v voluntary_o sin_n so_o that_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v blame_v neither_o do_v we_o call_v those_o decree_n of_o god_n absolute_a and_o irrespective_a as_o if_o hereby_o all_o mean_n be_v exclude_v from_o accomplish_v the_o end_n we_o be_v elect_v to_o when_o god_n elect_v a_o man_n to_o salvation_n we_o say_v in_o this_o election_n be_v comprehend_v holiness_n as_o the_o way_n to_o happiness_n and_o therefore_o to_o impose_v such_o a_o irrespective_a decree_n upon_o the_o calvinist_n as_o if_o their_o meaning_n be_v god_n have_v decree_v to_o save_v some_o man_n whether_o wicked_a or_o not_o wicked_a that_o it_o be_v all_o one_o whether_o profane_a or_o godly_a this_o be_v a_o horrible_a calumny_n it_o be_v true_a we_o say_v it_o be_v absolute_a because_o god_n do_v not_o look_v to_o any_o thing_n in_o we_o as_o a_o cause_n or_o a_o merit_n antecedent_o to_o his_o election_n yet_o we_o say_v god_n elect_v to_o faith_n and_o holiness_n as_o well_o as_o to_o salvation_n therefore_o we_o do_v not_o injure_v the_o merciful_a nature_n of_o god_n but_o they_o do_v his_o holy_a just_a and_o wise_a nature_n yea_o they_o diminish_v his_o grace_n and_o mercy_n in_o our_o election_n and_o attribute_v too_o much_o to_o man_n for_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 9_o it_o be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o will_v or_o run_v but_o of_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n they_o will_v make_v it_o to_o be_v as_o well_o of_o he_o that_o run_v as_o of_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n and_o though_o in_o word_n they_o seem_v to_o give_v the_o priority_n to_o god_n grace_n and_o mercy_n yet_o in_o reality_n they_o do_v not_o if_o then_o that_o of_o austin_n be_v true_a gratia_n non_fw-la est_fw-la gratia_fw-la ullo_fw-la modo_fw-la nisi_fw-la sit_fw-la gratuita_fw-la omni_fw-la modo_fw-la than_o all_o those_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n who_o take_v in_o the_o least_o measure_n from_o it_o 3._o we_o do_v not_o enervate_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o hold_v the_o election_n of_o some_o only_a to_o eternal_a life_n because_o god_n may_v just_o if_o he_o have_v please_v damn_a all_o and_o none_o can_v have_v accuse_v he_o for_o want_v of_o mercy_n for_o have_v not_o god_n bind_v up_o in_o chain_n of_o darkness_n all_o the_o apostate_n angel_n be_v not_o every_o one_o of_o they_o condemn_v to_o eternal_a torment_n yet_o they_o be_v more_o noble_a and_o excellent_a creature_n than_o man_n be_v oh_o than_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o any_o be_v save_v see_v that_o all_o may_v just_o be_v damn_v last_o not_o to_o enlarge_v on_o this_o god_n be_v merciful_a in_o this_o absolute_a election_n due_o explain_v because_o hereby_o a_o very_a great_a number_n be_v sure_a to_o be_v save_v god_n by_o this_o decree_n of_o he_o will_v so_o work_v in_o time_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v justify_v and_o at_o last_o glorify_v for_o election_n will_v obtain_v now_o do_v not_o this_o doctrine_n more_o commend_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n than_o the_o arminian_n conditional_a decree_n notwithstanding_o which_o no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n may_v be_v save_v for_o notwithstanding_o god_n decree_n and_o will_v to_o save_v all_o man_n notwithstanding_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o man_n yet_o they_o acknowledge_v it_o possible_a not_o any_o one_o man_n be_v save_v for_o god_n they_o say_v leave_v a_o man_n to_o the_o good_a use_n of_o his_o freewill_n he_o do_v not_o alter_v or_o change_v by_o his_o efficacious_a and_o wonderful_a grace_n any_o man_n heart_n and_o if_o god_n do_v no_o more_o who_o then_o can_v be_v save_v they_o can_v instance_n in_o one_o heathen_a that_o ever_o yet_o use_v his_o natural_n well_o thereby_o to_o partake_v of_o supernatural_n so_o that_o if_o all_o be_v leave_v to_o man_n and_o god_n shall_v not_o show_v mercy_n no_o one_o man_n will_v be_v save_v therefore_o our_o doctrine_n be_v a_o merciful_a one_o and_o they_o be_v cruel_a in_o the_o three_o general_a place_n the_o socinian_o they_o blame_v all_o the_o orthodox_n as_o evacuate_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n because_o we_o say_v that_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n be_v satisfy_v through_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o ransom_n we_o thereby_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n now_o they_o say_v how_o absurd_a and_o contradictory_n be_v this_o god_n be_v satisfy_v by_o a_o just_a payment_n to_o pardon_v sin_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v the_o mere_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o forgive_v it_o but_o to_o this_o we_o answer_v that_o though_o the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n be_v of_o justice_n to_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v whole_o of_o mercy_n to_o we_o it_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n we_o can_v do_v that_o may_v procure_v pardon_n if_o we_o can_v merit_v or_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n by_o the_o work_v we_o do_v then_o indeed_o it_o will_v not_o be_v of_o grace_n and_o mercy_n to_o we_o but_o this_o justice_n be_v only_o between_o christ_n and_o the_o father_n so_o that_o it_o be_v whole_o of_o mercy_n to_o we_o both_o in_o respect_n that_o he_o have_v find_v out_o a_o saviour_n for_o we_o as_o also_o in_o apply_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o though_o christ_n become_v into_o the_o world_n yet_o how_o many_o eternal_o perish_v it_o be_v therefore_o unspeakable_a mercy_n to_o thou_o that_o thy_o sin_n be_v pardon_v that_o thou_o be_v convert_v and_o so_o many_o
thousand_o abide_v under_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n and_o sin_n therefore_o when_o god_n mercy_n be_v speak_v of_o in_o pardon_v of_o sin_n it_o be_v perpetual_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o not_o of_o christ_n thus_o you_o see_v judge_v of_o god_n mercy_n without_o scripture-light_n into_o how_o many_o doctrinal_a error_n it_o may_v plunge_v we_o 4._o for_o want_v of_o scripture-direction_n the_o papist_n and_o antinomian_n oppose_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n but_o in_o extreme_a contrary_a way_n though_o god_n be_v merciful_a yet_o he_o have_v so_o ordain_v that_o none_o shall_v partake_v of_o his_o mercy_n in_o time_n but_o those_o who_o by_o his_o grace_n be_v enable_v to_o believe_v and_o repent_v as_o the_o way_n to_o salvation_n now_o the_o papist_n injure_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n for_o he_o will_v have_v his_o faith_n repentance_n with_o other_o holy_a work_n the_o merit_n and_o cause_n of_o his_o salvation_n disdain_v to_o have_v eternal_a life_n as_o mere_a alm_n from_o god_n but_o the_o antinomian_a to_o avoid_v this_o scylla_n fall_v into_o charybdis_n he_o affirm_v a_o mercy_n and_o that_o of_o justification_n even_o while_o we_o be_v sinner_n before_o we_o do_v either_o believe_v or_o repent_v but_o the_o scripture-mercy_n lie_v between_o both_o in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v we_o consider_v what_o practical_a danger_n we_o be_v in_o by_o conceive_v of_o god_n as_o a_o merciful_a god_n without_o scripture-information_n and_o first_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o flatter_v ourselves_o with_o god_n mercy_n though_o we_o allow_v ourselves_o in_o our_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n speak_v not_o a_o drop_n of_o mercy_n to_o such_o have_v you_o not_o many_o dreadful_a example_n of_o god_n anger_n and_o terror_n as_o well_o as_o mercy_n what_o be_v the_o cast_n of_o all_o the_o angel_n into_o eternal_a blackness_n for_o one_o sinful_a thought_n and_o that_o the_o first_o which_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o give_v they_o no_o space_n to_o repent_v no_o day_n of_o grace_n afford_v no_o mean_n for_o their_o recovery_n be_v not_o this_o a_o instance_n of_o god_n severity_n but_o you_o will_v say_v this_o be_v to_o angel_n he_o be_v more_o merciful_a to_o man_n but_o consider_v that_o example_n of_o god_n justice_n in_o drown_v the_o whole_a world_n save_o eight_o person_n do_v not_o that_o proclaim_v god_n be_v just_a and_o angry_a against_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o merciful_a not_o to_o spare_v the_o whole_a world_n because_o it_o have_v corrupt_v its_o way_n but_o to_o drown_v such_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o man_n woman_n and_o child_n yea_o to_o destroy_v the_o whole_a earth_n as_o it_o be_v oh_o who_o can_v stand_v before_o the_o anger_n of_o god_n have_v we_o not_o also_o a_o formidable_a demonstration_n of_o god_n anger_n against_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n when_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n be_v rain_v from_o heaven_n to_o destroy_v those_o city_n and_o all_o that_o do_v belong_v to_o they_o what_o have_v the_o little_a child_n do_v they_o can_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o those_o unclean_a vice_n but_o god_n cut_v off_o all_o many_o other_o instance_n of_o god_n wrath_n we_o have_v in_o scripture_n especial_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v be_v a_o dreadful_a manifestation_n of_o it_o to_o the_o wicked_a and_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n will_v inform_v we_o in_o that_o as_o well_o as_o of_o god_n mercy_n a_o second_o practical_a error_n i_o shall_v conclude_v with_o that_o necessary_o deny_v the_o thought_n of_o god_n mercy_n without_o scripture-direction_n be_v to_o encourage_v a_o man_n self_n in_o his_o sin_n because_o god_n be_v merciful_a every_o wicked_a person_n turn_v this_o honey_n into_o gall_n paul_n speak_v of_o some_o who_o make_v those_o wretched_a inference_n let_v we_o sin_n that_o grace_n may_v abound_v take_v heed_n then_o of_o have_v any_o such_o wicked_a thought_n arise_v in_o thy_o heart_n god_n be_v merciful_a therefore_o i_o will_v go_v to_o my_o lust_n again_o oh_o no_o the_o scripture_n represent_v god_n mercy_n for_o another_o end_n to_o repent_v and_o be_v convert_v from_o thy_o evil_a way_n rom._n 2_o know_v thou_o not_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n will_v lead_v thou_o to_o repentance_n oh_o then_o do_v not_o abuse_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n for_o there_o be_v a_o time_n come_v when_o there_o will_v be_v no_o more_o mercy_n it_o be_v call_v the_o day_n of_o wrath_n thou_o shall_v meet_v with_o nothing_o but_o terror_n ezek._n 8._o 18._o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n and_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n and_o there_o be_v no_o great_a sign_n of_o a_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n one_o fit_v and_o prepare_v for_o destruction_n then_o to_o grow_v wanton_a by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o be_v evil_a because_o he_o be_v good_a so_o much_o mercy_n abuse_v will_n one_o day_n be_v turn_v into_o so_o much_o vengeance_n serm._n xxxvi_o that_o god_n not_o only_o can_v but_o do_v actual_o comfort_v his_o people_n and_o how_o he_o do_v it_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 4._o who_o comfort_v we_o in_o all_o our_o tribulation_n that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comfort_v they_o which_o be_v in_o any_o trouble_n by_o the_o comfort_n wherewith_o we_o ourselves_o be_v comfort_v of_o god_n in_o the_o former_a verse_n we_o have_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o blessing_n of_o god_n set_v down_o by_o the_o description_n of_o that_o glorious_a attribute_n of_o he_o the_o father_n of_o mercy_n etc._n etc._n in_o this_o verse_n the_o apostle_n do_v further_a amplify_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o duty_n of_o thanksgiving_n viz._n from_o the_o effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o this_o property_n of_o he_o he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o god_n of_o consolation_n habitual_o and_o potential_o as_o it_o be_v he_o be_v not_o a_o fountain_n seal_v up_o but_o this_o sun_n do_v always_o irradiate_a its_o beam_n as_o he_o be_v a_o god_n of_o consolation_n so_o he_o do_v comfort_n so_o that_o in_o the_o word_n we_o have_v the_o effect_n or_o causality_n attribute_v to_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v comfort_v that_o do_v never_o cease_v to_o do_v it_o that_o never_o withdraw_v his_o consolation_n it_o be_v his_o nature_n to_o be_v always_o comfort_v as_o the_o devil_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o he_o be_v always_o tempt_a the_o word_n in_o humane_a author_n be_v use_v frequent_o of_o he_o who_o call_v another_o to_o he_o but_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n either_o of_o he_o that_o intreat_v and_o pray_v or_o of_o he_o that_o exhort_v or_o as_o in_o the_o text_n of_o he_o that_o comfort_v 2._o the_o subject_a of_o this_o consolation_n we_o that_o be_v either_o general_o all_o believer_n or_o we_o apostle_n and_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o apostle_n may_v speak_v this_o to_o obviate_v that_o scandal_n which_o many_o be_v ready_a to_o take_v at_o the_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o if_o they_o be_v hate_v of_o god_n and_o be_v nothing_o but_o impostor_n therefore_o some_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n be_v a_o narrative_a of_o his_o pressure_n and_o apologetical_a in_o declare_v the_o great_a goodness_n of_o god_n thereby_o to_o the_o church_n 3._o the_o particular_a wherein_o in_o tribulation_n light_n can_v come_v into_o this_o dark_a dungeon_n 4._o the_o extent_n of_o this_o all_z our_o tribulation_n god_n can_v turn_v the_o hard_a stone_n into_o bread_n all_o either_o of_o mind_n or_o body_n 5._o the_o consequent_a effect_n of_o this_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comfort_v they_o etc._n etc._n god_n many_o time_n do_v in_o a_o exemplary_a manner_n exercise_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o they_o may_v experimental_o be_v able_a to_o instruct_v such_o who_o be_v tempt_v we_o begin_v with_o that_o efficiency_n give_v to_o god_n who_o comfort_v be_v comfort_v and_o observe_v that_o as_o god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n so_o he_o do_v actual_o put_v forth_o this_o comfort_n child_n to_o those_o that_o be_v he_o god_n attribute_n may_v be_v true_o affirm_v of_o he_o though_o they_o never_o be_v put_v forth_o into_o act_n god_n will_v have_v be_v omnipotent_a merciful_a wise_a though_o he_o have_v not_o create_v the_o world_n only_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n do_v demonstrate_v those_o attribute_n thus_o god_n may_v be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o comfort_n or_o a_o merciful_a father_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o nature_n and_o inclination_n though_o actual_o he_o do_v not_o comfort_v any_o but_o god_n be_v a_o fountain_n communicate_v himself_o into_o stream_n of_o comfort_n he_o will_v make_v his_o people_n taste_v and_o feel_v what_o he_o be_v by_o nature_n now_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n comfort_v you_o must_v understand_v this_o both_o in_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a comfort_n
that_o spiritual_a comfort_n come_v alone_o from_o god_n be_v plain_a because_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v call_v the_o comforter_n we_o can_v have_v one_o drop_n of_o heavenly_a consolation_n till_o god_n spirit_n infuse_v it_o into_o we_o if_o the_o child_n of_o god_n can_v have_v comfort_n when_o they_o will_v will_v they_o walk_v so_o disconsolate_o and_o cry_v out_o of_o their_o dark_a trouble_a soul_n as_o they_o do_v but_o then_o even_o earthly_a comfort_n to_o take_v delight_n in_o the_o lawful_a contentment_n god_n do_v allow_v we_o to_o take_v delight_n and_o joy_n in_o these_o corporal_a mercy_n this_o be_v also_o from_o god_n eccles_n 2._o 24_o 26._o eccles_n 3._o 13._o eccles_n 5._o 18._o you_o see_v the_o wiseman_n affirm_v it_o often_o that_o a_o man_n can_v take_v any_o joy_n or_o delight_v even_o in_o those_o lawful_a thing_n unless_o it_o be_v give_v he_o of_o god_n all_o comfort_n then_o of_o all_o sort_n arise_v from_o he_o but_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o way_n or_o manner_n of_o god_n comfort_v for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o great_a people_n and_o profitable_a question_n to_o examine_v how_o god_n do_v convert_v and_o sanctify_v so_o also_o how_o he_o do_v comfort_n and_o first_o you_o must_v lay_v this_o foundation_n that_o god_n do_v comfort_n two_o way_n either_o immediate_o when_o he_o do_v by_o himself_o work_v upon_o the_o soul_n or_o mediate_o when_o he_o comfort_v by_o such_o mean_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v thereunto_o let_v we_o then_o in_o the_o next_o place_n consider_v what_o be_v those_o immediate_a work_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o soul_n whereby_o he_o make_v the_o heart_n joyful_a for_o david_n psal_n 4._o say_v god_n have_v put_v more_o joy_n into_o his_o heart_n than_o any_o man_n can_v have_v in_o the_o abundance_n of_o all_o temporal_a mercy_n and_o first_o therefore_o god_n do_v comfort_n by_o illuminate_v and_o open_v the_o understanding_n and_o open_v the_o understanding_n to_o know_v and_o see_v the_o ground_n and_o reason_n of_o comfort_n and_o certain_o this_o be_v of_o great_a conducement_n to_o have_v the_o heart_n comfort_v when_o the_o understanding_n be_v right_o convince_v of_o the_o ground_n of_o comfort_n for_o as_o the_o dark_a night_n be_v apt_a to_o beget_v fear_n and_o terror_n so_o darkness_n in_o the_o understanding_n be_v a_o great_a cause_n of_o all_o that_o terror_n and_o disconsolateness_n which_o god_n own_o child_n may_v many_o time_n lie_v under_o so_o that_o as_o god_n in_o conversion_n and_o humiliation_n for_o sin_n begin_v with_o conviction_n upon_o the_o heart_n so_o also_o in_o consolation_n and_o comfort_n the_o great_a impediment_n to_o a_o godly_a man_n comfort_n be_v want_n of_o spiritual_a knowledge_n and_o conviction_n about_o the_o cause_n of_o comfort_n as_o it_o be_v with_o hagar_n in_o the_o wilderness_n she_o sit_v weep_v for_o her_o child_n and_o give_v over_o all_o as_o desperate_a till_o god_n open_v her_o eye_n and_o make_v she_o see_v a_o fountain_n thus_o the_o break_a heart_n judge_v itself_o in_o a_o wilderness_n destitute_a of_o all_o comfort_n see_v nothing_o but_o matter_n of_o despair_n and_o damnation_n till_o god_n enlighten_v the_o understanding_n about_o comfortground_n in_o the_o gospel_n as_o for_o example_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n enlighten_v we_o to_o receive_v comfort_n it_o give_v we_o the_o eye_n salve_n 1._o to_o look_v upon_o christ_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n as_o the_o full_a cause_n and_o ground_n of_o all_o our_o comfort_n as_o well_o as_o on_o sin_n general_o the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o the_o first_o work_n of_o the_o soul_n look_v upon_o nothing_o but_o their_o sin_n behold_v nothing_o but_o sin_n but_o god_n will_v not_o let_v they_o alone_o in_o this_o agony_n he_o enlighten_v they_o further_o that_o they_o shall_v see_v christ_n as_o well_o as_o sin_n the_o gospel_n as_o well_o as_o the_o law_n he_o give_v they_o eye_n to_o behold_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n when_o sting_v hence_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n john_n 16._o 9_o 10._o do_v not_o only_o convince_v of_o sin_n but_o of_o righteousness_n also_o the_o devil_n he_o indeed_o move_v in_o those_o trouble_a water_n of_o thy_o soul_n and_o will_v keep_v thou_o off_o from_o christ_n as_o the_o disciple_n do_v the_o blind_a man_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n will_v not_o leave_v the_o soul_n in_o these_o wound_n in_o these_o strait_n but_o do_v carry_v he_o up_o from_o the_o mount_n of_o curse_v to_o the_o mount_n of_o blessing_n and_o certain_o the_o wise_a man_n can_v not_o more_o rejoice_v to_o see_v the_o star_n than_o the_o godly_a heart_n do_v to_o behold_v christ_n after_o the_o storm_n and_o tempest_n in_o his_o soul_n hence_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 1._o call_v it_o the_o reveal_n of_o the_o son_n in_o he_o this_o than_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o do_v by_o god_n not_o only_o to_o know_v sin_n in_o the_o terror_n and_o sting_n of_o it_o but_o also_o christ_n in_o his_o fullness_n and_o excellency_n how_o be_v paul_n affect_v with_o this_o 2_o cor._n 2._o 1._o i_o desire_v to_o know_v nothing_o but_o christ_n crucify_v this_o therefore_o be_v a_o special_a work_n of_o god_n to_o make_v we_o look_v with_o both_o eye_n to_o make_v thou_o see_v sin_n as_o well_o as_o christ_n and_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o sin_n 2._o as_o god_n do_v convince_v the_o soul_n of_o christ_n what_o a_o full_a and_o glorious_a saviour_n he_o be_v so_o also_o in_o the_o second_o place_n of_o our_o duty_n to_o receive_v he_o and_o to_o lay_v hold_n on_o he_o and_o this_o be_v a_o further_a step_n to_o comfort_n when_o god_n do_v so_o far_o open_v the_o eye_n as_o to_o see_v not_o only_o a_o full_a and_o sufficient_a christ_n but_o also_o that_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n in_o particular_a to_o apply_v this_o christ_n and_o to_o rest_v upon_o he_o for_o comfort_n and_o salvation_n this_o be_v a_o further_a discovery_n still_o paul_n say_v gal._n 2._o who_o give_v himself_o for_o i_o and_o love_v i_o and_o thomas_n say_v my_o god_n and_o my_o lord_n it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o bless_a truth_n discover_v in_o the_o reformation_n out_o of_o popery_n that_o it_o be_v not_o our_o duty_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o general_a only_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o saviour_n but_o to_o rest_v on_o he_o also_o for_o the_o pardon_n of_o my_o sin_n that_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o justify_v that_o this_o be_v most_o acceptable_a and_o precious_a unto_o god_n that_o unbelief_n not_o only_o in_o the_o general_n but_o as_o it_o fail_v in_o this_o particular_a in_o not_o apply_v in_o not_o appropriate_v christ_n to_o the_o soul_n be_v that_o which_o will_v damn_v a_o man_n oh_o than_o what_o bless_v and_o comfortable_a light_n be_v that_o which_o god_n bring_v into_o the_o soul_n when_o he_o shall_v make_v thou_o see_v that_o though_o a_o sinner_n though_o burden_v though_o unworthy_a yet_o it_o be_v thy_o duty_n to_o go_v to_o christ_n to_o be_v ease_v that_o he_o command_v thou_o with_o that_o woman_n not_o only_o to_o touch_v the_o hem_n of_o his_o garment_n but_o to_o lay_v hold_n on_o christ_n himself_o this_o particular_a faith_n be_v that_o which_o the_o soul_n be_v hardly_o convince_v of_o though_o other_o may_v draw_v nigh_o to_o christ_n yet_o may_v i_o but_o he_o come_v at_o last_o to_o be_v persuade_v of_o this_o truth_n 3._o god_n comfort_v by_o enlighten_v the_o mind_n that_o a_o comfortable_a joyful_a life_n arise_v from_o peace_n with_o god_n be_v a_o most_o acceptable_a thing_n to_o god_n that_o it_o bring_v honour_n and_o glory_n to_o god_n and_o that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n to_o walk_v heavy_o and_o in_o a_o deject_a manner_n be_v to_o dishonour_n and_o reproach_n god_n that_o god_n do_v not_o only_o look_v to_o our_o gracious_a walk_n but_o also_o to_o our_o comfortable_a walk_n and_o that_o we_o demonstrate_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o be_v begin_v in_o we_o in_o joy_n as_o well_o as_o in_o mortification_n rom._n 14._o 17._o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v righteousness_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n you_o see_v joy_n as_o well_o as_o righteousness_n the_o child_n of_o god_n they_o be_v not_o quick_o persuade_v of_o this_o they_o think_v such_o as_o they_o be_v may_v not_o walk_v comfortable_o it_o be_v not_o for_o they_o to_o rejoice_v but_o at_o last_o they_o come_v to_o see_v that_o they_o be_v sinful_o keep_v up_o by_o slavish_a fear_n and_o servile_a dejection_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n require_v consolation_n as_o well_o as_o sanctification_n thus_o you_o see_v the_o first_o general_a way_n how_o god_n comfort_v viz._n by_o enlighten_v the_o mind_n second_o and_o principal_o god_n comfort_v by_o prepare_v and_o fashion_v the_o heart_n by_o make_v it_o
evil_n he_o will_v not_o do_v that_o he_o do_v as_o these_o impetuous_a lust_n be_v a_o burden_n so_o the_o deadness_n barrenness_n and_o hardness_n of_o his_o heart_n oh_o often_o do_v he_o cry_v out_o of_o his_o soul_n as_o like_o the_o mountain_n of_o gilboa_n on_o who_o no_o dew_n do_v fall_v like_o a_o parch_a and_o dry_a wilderness_n and_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o come_v out_o of_o it_o yet_o even_o in_o these_o sad_a perplex_a thought_n god_n come_v in_o with_o comfort_n when_o his_o heart_n afford_v none_o when_o all_o within_o rise_v up_o against_o he_o yet_o as_o it_o be_v with_o paul_n his_o complaint_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o praise_n i_o thank_v god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n a_o three_o soul-tribulation_n may_v be_v from_o satan_n temptation_n he_o be_v call_v the_o tempter_n he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v his_o fiery_a dart_n he_o have_v his_o buffet_n we_o see_v how_o fierce_o he_o assault_v christ_n himself_o and_o as_o for_o the_o incestuous_a person_n by_o satan_n device_n he_o be_v almost_o swallow_v up_o with_o sorrow_n and_o indeed_o what_o horrid_a suggestion_n of_o blasphemy_n self-murder_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v most_o terrible_a and_o amaze_a will_v not_o he_o assault_v the_o godly_a soul_n with_o if_o god_n bind_v he_o not_o up_o well_o do_v the_o scripture_n compare_v he_o to_o a_o a_o roar_a lion_n what_o can_v a_o poor_a lamb_n do_v if_o he_o fall_v upon_o it_o and_o true_o no_o more_o can_v the_o poor_a humble_a sinner_n stand_v before_o all_o the_o temptation_n and_o opposition_n of_o satan_n if_o god_n grace_n do_v not_o interpose_v yet_o even_o in_o this_o hellish_a darkness_n when_o the_o soul_n be_v apt_a to_o judge_v its_o condition_n like_o those_o that_o be_v damn_v in_o hell_n when_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o conclude_v god_n have_v forsake_v he_o for_o ever_o that_o the_o express_a sign_n and_o character_n of_o a_o castaway_n be_v upon_o he_o as_o he_o think_v yet_o of_o this_o whales-bel_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o hell_n god_n do_v raise_v he_o and_o give_v he_o comfort_v yea_o many_o time_n those_o have_v the_o great_a comfort_n that_o have_v the_o great_a exercise_n of_o this_o kind_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n do_v leave_v they_o in_o this_o black_a night_n that_o the_o day_n may_v be_v the_o sweet_a and_o more_o welcome_a last_o the_o souls-trouble_a may_v arise_v from_o the_o breach_n it_o have_v make_v by_o apostasy_n and_o fall_v into_o great_a sin_n after_o it_o have_v know_v god_n and_o these_o common_o do_v give_v a_o mortal_a blow_n to_o all_o our_o former_a comfort_n you_o see_v it_o in_o david_n psal_n 51._o when_o he_o complain_v of_o his_o break_a bone_n pray_v to_o have_v joy_n restore_v to_o he_o some_o have_v think_v that_o david_n never_o have_v such_o comfort_n again_o as_o former_o certain_o the_o godly_a in_o such_o fall_v sin_n heinous_o because_o of_o the_o experience_n they_o have_v of_o god_n favour_n and_o the_o bitterness_n of_o sin_n therefore_o for_o they_o to_o revolt_v from_o god_n be_v a_o high_a aggravation_n as_o if_o the_o prodigal_a son_n after_o he_o have_v be_v entertain_v in_o his_o father_n house_n and_o feast_v with_o the_o fat_a calf_n shall_v have_v go_v to_o his_o husk_n again_o how_o intolerable_a will_v that_o have_v be_v well_o but_o for_o all_o this_o this_o sad_a condition_n of_o a_o gradual_a apostate_n and_o revolter_v be_v not_o without_o ground_n of_o comfort_n when_o true_o humble_v and_o debase_v before_o god_n do_v not_o god_n speak_v gracious_o jer._n 3._o 22._o return_v you_o backslide_v child_n and_o i_o will_v heal_v your_o backslide_n and_o see_v how_o this_o merciful_a offer_n be_v embrace_v behold_v we_o come_v unto_o thou_o for_o thou_o be_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n she_o plead_v her_o interest_n and_o right_a to_o god_n howsoever_o thus_o also_o god_n promise_v hos_fw-la 14._o 4._o i_o will_v heal_v their_o backslide_n so_o that_o although_o when_o the_o conscience_n have_v be_v the_o second_o time_n bruise_v when_o thou_o have_v be_v twice_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o new_a birth_n thou_o must_v look_v for_o great_a pain_n and_o agony_n yet_o god_n can_v and_o do_v comfort_v such_o also_o peter_n speak_v of_o joy_n unspeakable_a and_o full_a of_o glory_n which_o the_o people_n of_o god_n have_v though_o he_o have_v great_o revolt_v from_o christ_n his_o master_n so_o that_o manna_n may_v be_v have_v in_o this_o wilderness_n also_o the_o second_o kind_n of_o trouble_n be_v outward_a and_o these_o be_v also_o innumerable_a act._n 14._o 22._o we_o must_v through_o much_o tribulation_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o tribulation_n must_v expect_v like_o christ_n to_o be_v man_n of_o sorrow_n for_o we_o be_v to_o suffer_v with_o he_o if_o we_o will_v reign_v with_o he_o now_o two_o sort_n of_o trouble_n there_o be_v in_o which_o god_n will_v give_v comfort_n and_o in_o they_o all_o trouble_n be_v comprehend_v 1._o there_o be_v trouble_n such_o as_o we_o bring_v upon_o ourselves_o by_o our_o own_o folly_n and_o sin_n we_o have_v provoke_v god_n to_o be_v angry_a and_o to_o take_v away_o many_o outward_a mercy_n from_o we_o now_o because_o our_o sin_n and_o our_o iniquity_n have_v do_v all_o this_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o we_o may_v just_o expect_v that_o god_n will_v deny_v all_o comfort_n we_o may_v think_v it_o be_v true_a when_o we_o suffer_v for_o god_n sake_n when_o we_o be_v persecute_v for_o righteousness_n sake_n than_o christ_n will_v take_v we_o into_o his_o wine-cellar_n and_o bid_v we_o drink_v abundant_o but_o it_o be_v my_o vile_a heart_n my_o proud_a heart_n my_o loose_a and_o negligent_a walk_v that_o have_v bring_v all_o this_o evil_a upon_o i_o and_o what_o comfort_n then_o can_v i_o expect_v from_o god_n but_o even_o in_o this_o condition_n such_o be_v the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o although_o our_o sin_n have_v bring_v evil_a upon_o we_o yet_o if_o humble_v under_o they_o and_o bewail_v of_o they_o we_o shall_v find_v god_n for_o to_o comfort_v we_o when_o david_n psal_n 4._o have_v that_o overflow_a joy_n which_o he_o say_v god_n put_v into_o his_o heart_n more_o than_o all_o harvest_n joy_n yet_o he_o be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o very_o sad_a exigency_n pursue_v by_o his_o son_n and_o drive_v out_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o this_o god_n threaten_v as_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o sin_n but_o behold_v all_o this_o god_n give_v he_o comfort_v and_o the_o truth_n be_v when_o humble_v for_o our_o sin_n than_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o affliction_n be_v alter_v they_o become_v paternal_a and_o medicinal_a chastisement_n they_o be_v argument_n of_o god_n love_n to_o we_o we_o may_v rejoice_v in_o they_o as_o testimony_n thereof_o for_o so_o heb._n 12._o and_o rev._n 3._o it_o be_v say_v who_o god_n love_v he_o chasten_v god_n make_v as_o the_o physician_n a_o excellent_a antidote_n of_o that_o which_o be_v poison_n and_o so_o the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o sin_n become_v great_a matter_n of_o thankfulness_n as_o david_n acknowledge_v when_o he_o say_v out_o of_o very_a thankfulness_n thou_o have_v afflict_v i_o and_o as_o for_o the_o second_o kind_n of_o affliction_n which_o be_v only_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o grace_n when_o we_o be_v persecute_v not_o for_o the_o evil_a in_o we_o but_o the_o good_a appear_v as_o the_o case_n of_o the_o martyr_n be_v then_o god_n give_v we_o comfort_v with_o full_a measure_n press_v down_o and_o yet_o flow_v over_o witness_v the_o apostle_n who_o go_v away_o rejoice_v because_o they_o be_v account_v worthy_a to_o suffer_v all_o thing_n for_o christ_n sake_n the_o martyr_n also_o have_v more_o joy_n in_o their_o trouble_n then_o ever_o they_o have_v in_o their_o prosperity_n and_o it_o be_v of_o those_o tribulation_n the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o indeed_o some_o philosopher_n have_v assay_v upon_o such_o a_o comfort_n as_o epicurus_n say_v if_o a_o wise_a man_n be_v burn_v in_o phalaris_n his_o bull_n he_o will_v say_v dulce_fw-la est_fw-la &_o add_v i_o nihil_fw-la pertinet_fw-la this_o be_v a_o sweet_a thing_n and_o do_v not_o at_o all_o hurt_n i_o but_o these_o be_v book_n say_n no_o philosopher_n ever_o endure_v misery_n for_o their_o sect_n as_o christian_n have_v do_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n but_o you_o may_v say_v what_o be_v that_o by_o which_o god_n comfort_v his_o people_n in_o all_o their_o tribulation_n have_v the_o scripture_n any_o high_a ground_n than_o philosophy_n philosophy_n be_v call_v animi_fw-la medicina_fw-la and_o as_o there_o be_v several_a sect_n of_o they_o so_o they_o have_v different_a principle_n to_o comfort_n for_o there_o be_v no_o theme_n treat_v on_o more_o by_o they_o than_o this_o only_o some_o principle_n be_v contrary_a to_o other_o for_o some_o
then_o he_o only_o that_o have_v the_o experimental_n either_o of_o the_o bitterness_n of_o sin_n or_o the_o sweetness_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v only_o able_a with_o a_o tender_a heart_n and_o hand_n to_o cure_v a_o wound_a soul_n and_o certain_o if_o the_o apostle_n make_v this_o a_o argument_n gal._n 6._o 1._o to_o rejoynt_v as_o it_o be_v one_o that_o be_v overtake_v in_o a_o fault_n because_o the_o most_o spiritual_a may_v be_v tempt_v how_o much_o rather_o when_o thou_o have_v be_v tempt_v so_o that_o this_o experimental_a way_n in_o holy_a thing_n work_v much_o commiseration_n and_o sympathize_v with_o those_o who_o groan_n under_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o when_o judas_n be_v in_o that_o perplex_a agony_n cry_v out_o i_o have_v sin_v in_o betray_v the_o innocent_a blood_n with_o what_o stony_a and_o sear_a heart_n do_v the_o pharisee_n reject_v he_o say_v what_o be_v that_o to_o we_o look_v thou_o to_o that_o it_o be_v a_o mercy_n for_o brokenhearted_a sinner_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o tender_a experience_a believer_n who_o have_v feel_v what_o they_o feel_v and_o so_o be_v able_a to_o conceive_v of_o their_o sad_a estate_n and_o indeed_o even_o as_o for_o instruction_n of_o the_o ignorant_a there_o need_v much_o patience_n so_o there_o do_v also_o pity_n which_o will_v put_v thou_o upon_o unwearied_a diligence_n to_o comfort_v the_o deject_a for_o it_o be_v not_o a_o work_n soon_o do_v they_o must_v bear_v with_o many_o infirmity_n they_o be_v full_a of_o subtle_a objection_n and_o when_o they_o be_v for_o a_o while_n comfort_v they_o lose_v all_o present_o again_o insomuch_o that_o he_o must_v have_v tender_a bowel_n who_o be_v not_o weary_v out_o with_o their_o weakness_n three_o such_o experience_a one_o be_v only_o able_a to_o deal_v with_o tempt_v soul_n earnest_n to_o instruct_v and_o comfort_v they_o because_o the_o afflict_a find_v such_o only_a real_a such_o be_v in_o earnest_n he_o that_o have_v experimental_o feel_v the_o bitterness_n of_o sin_n make_v it_o manifest_a to_o other_o that_o it_o be_v not_o mere_a oratory_n or_o eloquence_n that_o set_v he_o against_o sin_n but_o something_o within_o that_o he_o feel_v burn_v like_o fire_n within_o the_o very_a heathen_a can_v say_v si_fw-mi vis_fw-la i_o flere_fw-la dolendum_fw-la est_fw-la primo_fw-la tibi_fw-la a_o man_n that_o have_v not_o inward_o feel_v the_o power_n of_o truth_n upon_o his_o heart_n he_o be_v so_o cold_a so_o formal_a so_o lazy_a that_o you_o can_v tell_v whether_o he_o believe_v the_o thing_n he_o preach_v to_o be_v true_a or_o no._n and_o so_o also_o for_o comfort_n must_v it_o not_o much_o satisfy_v the_o deject_a soul_n to_o meet_v with_o one_o under_o the_o same_o temptation_n under_o the_o same_o fear_n and_o yet_o now_o pray_v with_o joy_n hear_v with_o joy_n thou_o can_v find_v all_o thy_o heart_n as_o it_o be_v in_o he_o and_o yet_o he_o be_v deliver_v he_o be_v comfort_v who_o think_v it_o as_o impossible_a as_o i_o do_v whereas_o if_o a_o man_n be_v a_o stranger_n to_o these_o work_n of_o god_n the_o tempt_a soul_n fly_v off_o say_v he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o judge_v of_o these_o thing_n i_o can_v give_v no_o credit_n to_o he_o four_o such_o be_v only_o able_a because_o they_o alone_o be_v faithful_a they_o dare_v not_o flatter_v they_o they_o dare_v not_o soothe_v they_o they_o will_v give_v they_o no_o comfort_n faithful_a if_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n for_o it_o now_o the_o true_o break_a soul_n love_v this_o faithful_a deal_n better_a than_o flattery_n there_o be_v a_o woe_n to_o those_o that_o make_v the_o heart_n of_o those_o merry_a who_o god_n will_v have_v make_v sad_a and_o there_o be_v many_o in_o the_o ministerial_a office_n that_o be_v unworthy_a and_o flatter_v in_o this_o case_n comfort_v every_o one_o that_o lie_v a_o die_a though_o never_o so_o profane_a now_o he_o that_o be_v true_o humble_v care_v not_o for_o such_o a_o man_n comfort_n he_o know_v he_o will_v not_o deal_v faithful_o he_o will_v send_v i_o to_o hell_n with_o comfort_n and_o whereas_o it_o be_v one_o rule_n that_o experience_a divine_n give_v to_o tempt_v soul_n that_o under_o their_o fear_n and_o doubt_n they_o must_v believe_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n about_o their_o condition_n rather_o than_o themselves_o this_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o sound_n faithful_a and_o experience_a minister_n otherwise_o it_o be_v a_o most_o dreadful_a thing_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o fawn_a flatter_a minister_n who_o will_v encourage_v they_o and_o send_v they_o to_o heaven_n when_o they_o themselves_o know_v not_o either_o what_o true_a sorrow_n for_o sin_n or_o true_a evangelical_n comfort_n mean_v use_v 1_o of_o exhortation_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n not_o to_o think_v learning_n study_n read_v of_o book_n enough_o to_o qualify_v thou_o for_o a_o ministerial_a employment_n but_o implore_v much_o the_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n herein_o a_o good_a heart_n a_o gracious_a heart_n will_v help_v as_o well_o as_o good_a book_n do_v not_o rest_v only_o upon_o study_a and_o acquire_v gift_n but_o pray_v also_o for_o infuse_a and_o inspire_v use_v 2._o of_o instruction_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n how_o useful_a it_o be_v to_o communicate_v their_o gracious_a experience_n one_o to_o another_o much_o edification_n much_o consolation_n may_v come_v hereby_o who_o sadness_n have_v thou_o comfort_v who_o deadness_n have_v thou_o quicken_v it_o may_v be_v thou_o have_v learn_v a_o precious_a receipt_n how_o to_o cure_v such_o a_o sin_n such_o a_o temptation_n and_o why_o do_v thou_o not_o help_v other_o serm._n xliii_o it_o be_v a_o special_a duty_n incumbent_a upon_o every_o one_o both_o minister_n and_o christian_n to_o apply_v comfort_n to_o the_o afflict_a in_o a_o right_a manner_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 4._o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o comfort_v they_o which_o be_v in_o any_o trouble_n in_o this_o final_a cause_n we_o consider_v the_o subject_a who_o be_v fit_a for_o this_o comfort_n and_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v such_o who_o be_v in_o any_o trouble_n those_o that_o abound_v in_o mercy_n need_v no_o comfort_n we_o be_v not_o to_o give_v honey_n to_o such_o full_a stomach_n but_o the_o trouble_a the_o afflict_a these_o be_v they_o who_o condition_n we_o be_v to_o commiserate_v from_o whence_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o special_a duty_n in_o a_o right_a manner_n to_o comfort_v those_o that_o be_v in_o afflict_a trouble_n we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o seek_v the_o conversion_n of_o such_o who_o go_v astray_o but_o also_o to_o regard_v the_o consolation_n of_o those_o that_o lack_v it_o hence_o lam._n 1._o the_o church_n complain_v that_o she_o have_v none_o to_o comfort_v she_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o this_o duty_n often_o 1_o thess_n 4._o 18._o comfort_n one_o another_o with_o these_o thing_n 1_o thess_n 5._o 11_o 14._o comfort_v the_o feeble_a mind_v you_o see_v by_o this_o press_v this_o duty_n so_o often_o that_o we_o be_v serious_o and_o diligent_o to_o practice_v it_o lest_o as_o god_n will_v judge_v for_o neglect_n of_o corporal_a alm_n to_o fit_a object_n of_o charity_n so_o also_o he_o will_v call_v to_o account_v for_o the_o not_o dispence_v of_o these_o spiritual_a alm_n thou_o have_v not_o visit_v those_o who_o be_v spiritual_o imprison_v by_o the_o guilt_n of_o their_o sin_n neither_o feed_v those_o with_o the_o bread_n from_o heaven_n who_o be_v hungry_a hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v concern_v the_o incestuous_a person_n who_o be_v now_o deep_o humble_v for_o his_o sin_n 2_o cor._n 2._o 7._o exhort_v they_o to_o comfort_v he_o lest_o he_o be_v swallow_v up_o with_o too_o much_o sorrow_n we_o have_v a_o notable_a instance_n for_o this_o in_o job_n friend_n job_n 2._o 11._o who_o when_o they_o hear_v of_o all_o the_o evil_a that_o be_v come_v upon_o he_o they_o make_v a_o appointment_n together_o to_o come_v and_o mourn_v with_o he_o and_o to_o comfort_v he_o thus_o you_o see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o special_a duty_n we_o be_v careful_o to_o discharge_v to_o refresh_v the_o soul_n of_o other_o who_o be_v cast_v down_o that_o as_o the_o custom_n be_v among_o the_o jew_n and_o solomon_n he_o give_v a_o precept_n about_o it_o prov._n 31._o 6_o 7._o give_v wine_n unto_o those_o that_o be_v of_o a_o heavy_a heart_n that_o he_o may_v drink_v and_o remember_v his_o misery_n no_o more_o so_o we_o be_v in_o a_o spiritual_a consideration_n to_o give_v the_o wine_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o such_o as_o mourn_v for_o inward_a their_o sin_n to_o discover_v this_o truth_n consider_v first_o the_o trouble_a as_o you_o hear_v former_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n those_o who_o be_v afflict_v in_o soul_n as_o the_o
mercy_n his_o comfort_n be_v great_a comfort_n though_o thou_o be_v not_o worthy_a to_o have_v such_o yet_o it_o beseem_v god_n glory_n and_o greatness_n to_o give_v such_o wonder_v not_o then_o at_o the_o support_v and_o comfort_n which_o god_n people_n may_v have_v even_o in_o the_o whale_n belly_n where_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o hope_n for_o consider_v who_o it_o be_v that_o give_v they_o from_o what_o fountain_n they_o flow_v even_o the_o lord_n christ_n the_o fountain_n of_o all_o fullness_n for_o his_o people_n and_o than_o you_o will_v say_v our_o cruse_n be_v too_o little_a to_o receive_v all_o the_o oil_n he_o can_v create_v for_o we_o so_o that_o the_o afflict_a soul_n have_v this_o encouragement_n in_o prayer_n lord_n i_o ask_v no_o more_o than_o a_o great_a god_n be_v able_a to_o give_v though_o i_o be_o unworthy_a to_o receive_v it_o yet_o thou_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v exalt_v as_o the_o great_a god_n who_o can_v as_o easy_o give_v great_a comfort_n as_o little_a comfort_n god_n can_v as_o easy_o give_v a_o ocean_n as_o a_o drop_n second_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n in_o his_o promise_n to_o make_v comfort_n abound_v where_o suffering_n for_o by_o what_o reason_n god_n out_o of_o his_o faithfulness_n promise_n will_v give_v any_o support_n at_o all_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n he_o will_v double_v and_o treble_a his_o consolation_n as_o need_n require_v it_o be_v a_o rule_n among_o the_o school_n sicutse_fw-la habet_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la ita_fw-la magis_fw-la ad_fw-la magis_fw-la &_o maximum_fw-la ad_fw-la maximum_fw-la now_o then_o as_o god_n have_v promise_v and_o engage_v to_o support_v under_o suffering_n so_o also_o as_o these_o do_v abound_v his_o comfort_n must_v abound_v otherwise_o his_o people_n will_v be_v overcome_v by_o their_o temptation_n which_o be_v against_o his_o promise_n for_o as_o such_o a_o degree_n of_o heat_n will_v not_o warm_v cold_a water_n unless_o it_o be_v make_v more_o intense_a so_o neither_o will_v comfort_v simple_o unless_o make_v more_o and_o increase_v serve_v against_o grievous_a affliction_n a_o ordinary_a boat_n will_v not_o be_v like_o the_o ark_n when_o that_o deluge_n of_o water_n do_v overflow_v this_o support_n this_o joy_n thou_o have_v now_o will_v not_o serve_v if_o god_n shall_v exercise_v thou_o with_o great_a trial_n the_o widow_n food_n of_o sarepta_n may_v have_v serve_v she_o in_o a_o ordinary_a way_n but_o when_o the_o famine_n come_v and_o no_o supply_n can_v be_v have_v than_o her_o stock_n will_v quick_o be_v spend_v therefore_o urge_v god_n and_o say_v lord_n if_o thou_o bring_v i_o in_o a_o wilderness_n thou_o will_v provide_v manna_n for_o i_o by_o what_o reason_n thou_o give_v i_o any_o comfort_n give_v man_n i_o more_o now_o that_o my_o suffering_n be_v more_o three_o if_o god_n shall_v not_o increase_v the_o strength_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o people_n according_a to_o the_o increase_n of_o their_o affliction_n than_o he_o who_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o pity_n and_o wisdom_n shall_v be_v exceed_v by_o man_n who_o be_v but_o a_o cistern_n receive_v from_o this_o fountain_n for_o such_o be_v the_o care_n and_o compassion_n of_o a_o man_n to_o his_o beast_n that_o he_o will_v say_v no_o more_o burden_n on_o it_o than_o it_o can_v bear_v and_o when_o he_o put_v it_o to_o more_o labour_n he_o give_v it_o more_o meat_n to_o strengthen_v it_o now_o shall_v man_n do_v thus_o to_o his_o beast_n and_o not_o god_n to_o his_o child_n so_o the_o artificer_n the_o refiner_n of_o gold_n when_o he_o throw_v his_o gold_n into_o the_o fire_n he_o let_v it_o be_v no_o long_o than_o the_o dross_n be_v purge_v away_o it_o shall_v not_o stay_v a_o moment_n long_o than_o will_v serve_v for_o the_o prepare_v it_o to_o excellent_a use_n and_o shall_v not_o the_o great_a god_n of_o heaven_n use_v such_o wisdom_n to_o his_o people_n when_o in_o affliction_n which_o be_v call_v their_o fire_n to_o try_v they_o last_o if_o god_n shall_v not_o give_v proportionable_a comfort_n in_o suffering_n his_o glorious_a obtain_v end_n will_v not_o be_v obtain_v in_o bring_v these_o upon_o we_o for_o these_o be_v to_o demonstrate_v and_o draw_v out_o our_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n rom._n 8._o and_o that_o we_o may_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o 1_o cor._n 10._o more_o than_o bear_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o mere_o to_o conquer_v affliction_n but_o we_o be_v more_o than_o conqueror_n for_o there_o be_v no_o conqueror_n but_o have_v some_o loss_n but_o the_o child_n of_o god_n lose_v nothing_o for_o they_o be_v advantage_v every_o way_n both_o here_o and_o hereafter_o so_o that_o as_o their_o suffering_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o their_o predestination_n thus_o also_o their_o support_n and_o consolation_n flow_v from_o the_o same_o fountain_n shall_v god_n as_o the_o author_n of_o grace_n be_v more_o deficient_a in_o his_o work_n then_o as_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o nature_n if_o then_o in_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v yea_o every_o thing_n have_v a_o natural_a delight_n and_o facility_n to_o its_o work_n of_o nature_n shall_v not_o the_o godly_a in_o the_o exercise_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v most_o put_v forth_o in_o the_o time_n of_o trouble_n god_n will_v provide_v that_o all_o thy_o suffering_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a but_o you_o may_v say_v have_v the_o people_n of_o god_n in_o their_o suffering_n always_o such_o overflowing_n object_n of_o comfort_n be_v they_o not_o many_o time_n afflict_v without_o and_o destitute_a within_o we_o have_v answer_v this_o heretofore_o inform_v that_o job_n yea_o christ_n himself_o answ_n have_v suffering_n without_o and_o suffering_n within_o their_o affliction_n do_v abound_v but_o their_o joy_n do_v not_o we_o distinguish_v and_o explicate_v that_o case_n only_o we_o shall_v now_o give_v some_o reason_n why_o god_n at_o least_o for_o a_o time_n may_v leave_v a_o suffer_a gift_n people_n without_o consolation_n because_o than_o they_o be_v omit_v as_o first_o god_n in_o thy_o trouble_n may_v deny_v thou_o comfort_n to_o teach_v thou_o that_o they_o be_v his_o gift_n this_o cool_a wind_n blow_v when_o he_o please_v we_o may_v think_v that_o comfort_n be_v our_o desert_n that_o god_n can_v not_o be_v just_a to_o leave_v we_o without_o it_o when_o it_o be_v for_o his_o cause_n we_o be_v trouble_v but_o god_n will_v let_v thou_o know_v that_o when_o thou_o have_v suffer_v to_o the_o utmost_a thou_o have_v but_o do_v thy_o duty_n god_n be_v not_o behold_v to_o thou_o and_o therefore_o if_o he_o give_v thou_o these_o cordial_n know_v it_o be_v of_o his_o mercy_n thou_o have_v not_o merit_v they_o and_o when_o thou_o have_v they_o receive_v they_o thankful_o second_o do_v god_n deny_v thou_o thy_o desire_a comfort_n consider_v whether_o thy_o pure_a sin_n have_v not_o deserve_v it_o for_o although_o thou_o suffer_v for_o he_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v much_o unbelief_n much_o impatience_n much_o frowardness_n have_v rise_v in_o thy_o heart_n now_o these_o misty_a fog_n will_v obscure_v the_o glorious_a beam_n of_o his_o favour_n god_n be_v ready_a with_o his_o comfort_n but_o thou_o be_v indispose_v thy_o heart_n be_v like_o a_o untuned_a instrument_n and_o so_o there_o can_v be_v any_o melodious_a sound_n three_o if_o thou_o have_v no_o comfort_n it_o may_v be_v god_n delay_v and_o put_v off_o that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o welcome_a when_o they_o do_v come_v thus_o god_n do_v not_o answer_v prayer_n present_o that_o when_o the_o mercy_n do_v come_v it_o may_v be_v the_o more_o esteem_v christ_n delay_v to_o raise_v lazarus_n that_o when_o he_o be_v restore_v to_o life_n the_o mercy_n may_v be_v acknowdge_v the_o great_a when_o paul_n and_o his_o passanger_n for_o a_o great_a while_n have_v not_o see_v the_o sun_n this_o make_v they_o rejoice_v the_o more_o when_o they_o do_v behold_v it_o four_o do_v god_n deny_v thou_o comfort_v it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v to_o try_v whether_o thy_o obedience_n be_v pure_a whether_o thou_o will_v serve_v he_o though_o he_o give_v thou_o no_o wage_n comfort_n be_v for_o our_o refreshment_n it_o be_v to_o encourage_v we_o we_o like_o child_n can_v live_v without_o these_o breast_n now_o if_o deny_v these_o though_o we_o have_v a_o stone_n for_o bread_n yet_o thou_o will_v not_o give_v over_o suffer_v for_o christ_n than_o thou_o show_v thyself_o upright_o indeed_o for_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o look_v to_o consolation_n more_o than_o duty_n to_o regard_v comfort_n more_o than_o obedience_n now_o when_o thou_o can_v say_v o_o lord_n i_o will_v not_o repine_v i_o will_v not_o be_v weary_a of_o righteousness_n or_o deny_v the_o name_n of_o
thou_o he_o that_o can_v immediate_o be_v avenge_v on_o they_o he_o that_o can_v command_v legion_n of_o devil_n to_o drag_v they_o to_o hell_n present_o yet_o with_o much_o patience_n suffer_v they_o god_n be_v so_o patient_a that_o as_o tertullian_n ipsa_fw-la sibi_fw-la detrahit_fw-la ●●de_v pat_o his_o patience_n detract_v from_o he_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o loser_n by_o it_o for_o people_n sin_n the_o more_o obstinate_o and_o wilful_o because_o they_o meet_v with_o impunity_n because_o vengeance_n be_v not_o speedy_o execute_v therefore_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v encourage_v to_o evil_a eccles_n 8._o 11._o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o if_o we_o speak_v proper_o we_o can_v attribute_v the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o god_n as_o if_o that_o be_v a_o attribute_n in_o he_o the_o scripture_n use_v other_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o never_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o god_n be_v most_o absolute_o bless_v and_o happy_a in_o himself_o he_o can_v be_v under_o any_o misery_n so_o as_o to_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v patient_a under_o it_o neither_o can_v god_n be_v say_v to_o pati_fw-la to_o suffer_v in_o a_o passive_a sense_n yet_o his_o goodness_n his_o forbearance_n these_o be_v call_v patience_n and_o from_o the_o patience_n of_o god_n we_o may_v be_v encourage_v to_o a_o conformity_n thereunto_o shall_v god_n be_v as_o impatient_a of_o thou_o shall_v he_o as_o little_o endure_v thy_o fail_n as_o thou_o can_v his_o dispensation_n thou_o have_v be_v with_o dives_n call_v for_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n long_o before_o this_o time_n and_o not_o able_a to_o partake_v of_o it_o christ_n also_o be_v a_o wonderful_a examplar_n cause_n of_o patience_n for_o he_o to_o lay_v aside_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o glory_n to_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n to_o be_v expose_v to_o such_o a_o ignominious_a death_n in_o all_o which_o he_o do_v seem_v as_o tertullian_n express_v it_o contumeliosus_fw-la sibiipsi_fw-la injurious_a and_o reproachful_a to_o himself_o which_o make_v the_o marcionite_n say_v he_o have_v only_o a_o fantastical_a body_n think_v it_o a_o reproachful_a and_o dishonourable_a thing_n to_o he_o to_o have_v a_o true_a real_a body_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n but_o this_o exinanition_n and_o empty_n of_o himself_o do_v the_o more_o commend_v and_o make_v his_o patience_n illustrious_a hence_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 23._o and_o in_o other_o place_n christ_n be_v commend_v as_o a_o pattern_n to_o we_o of_o patience_n in_o all_o our_o suffering_n and_o certain_a never_o may_v we_o more_o shame_n and_o abhor_v ourselves_o for_o all_o our_o repine_a and_o impatient_a work_n of_o soul_n then_o when_o we_o set_v christ_n before_o our_o eye_n he_o be_v as_o a_o sheep_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o shearer_n that_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n yet_o how_o much_o do_v he_o suffer_v both_o from_o god_n and_o man_n and_o that_o without_o any_o cause_n in_o respect_n of_o himself_o though_o just_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n covenant_n with_o he_o as_o our_o surety_n now_o though_o all_o this_o be_v for_o we_o enemy_n to_o he_o such_o who_o will_v contemn_v his_o love_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o crucify_v he_o over_o and_o over_o again_o yet_o in_o these_o great_a agony_n and_o unspeakable_a suffering_n he_o be_v not_o impatient_a thus_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o patience_n great_a than_o that_o of_o job_n even_o of_o christ_n himself_o and_o let_v his_o patience_n shame_v thou_o out_o of_o thy_o impatience_n serm_n liv._o motive_n exciting_a we_o to_o a_o patient_a submission_n unto_o god_n under_o all_o the_o affliction_n he_o lay_v upon_o we_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 6._o which_o be_v effectual_a in_o endure_v of_o the_o same_o suffering_n which_o we_o also_o suffer_v we_o be_v yet_o treat_v on_o the_o manner_n how_o the_o salvation_n of_o believer_n be_v promote_v by_o their_o suffering_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o endure_v or_o in_o patience_n in_o a_o patient_a endure_v it_o be_v not_o my_o purpose_n i_o tell_v you_o to_o enlarge_v myself_o according_a as_o this_o subject_a of_o patience_n may_v require_v some_o thing_n have_v be_v speak_v to_o declare_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o i_o shall_v add_v at_o this_o time_n some_o motive_n and_o encouragement_n to_o be_v patient_a under_o the_o most_o extreme_a suffering_n we_o be_v put_v upon_o and_o first_o this_o consideration_n may_v great_o calm_v and_o compose_v our_o spirit_n if_o we_o deserve_v sensible_o affect_v ourselves_o with_o what_o we_o have_v deserve_v all-impatiency_n and_o turbulence_n of_o heart_n arise_v because_o we_o be_v not_o thorough_o humble_v under_o our_o own_o guilt_n and_o unworthiness_n for_o if_o this_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o we_o will_v wonder_v why_o dog_n shall_v have_v child_n bread_n why_o we_o shall_v have_v the_o least_o drop_n of_o mercy_n who_o deserve_v the_o deluge_n of_o god_n wrath_n do_v thou_o at_o any_o time_n find_v repine_n and_o fretting_n of_o heart_n within_o thou_o do_v thou_o present_o possess_v thy_o soul_n with_o thy_o wretchedness_n and_o unworthiness_n say_v who_o be_o i_o lord_n that_o it_o be_v no_o worse_o this_o be_v not_o hell_n nor_o everlasting_a damnation_n that_o i_o be_o in_o and_o yet_o i_o have_v a_o thousand_o time_n over_o deserve_v that_o it_o be_v this_o that_o quiet_v david_n heart_n under_o that_o sour_a affliction_n he_o conflict_v with_o when_o absolom_n have_v make_v such_o a_o strong_a conspiracy_n against_o he_o 2_o sam._n 16._o 11._o when_o shimei_n curse_v he_o with_o such_o a_o grievous_a curse_n that_o abishai_n have_v no_o patience_n to_o bear_v it_o why_o shall_v this_o dead_a dog_n curse_v my_o lord_n the_o king_n say_v he_o let_v i_o go_v and_o take_v off_o his_o head_n who_o but_o a_o david_n will_v have_v be_v avenge_v but_o what_o tame_v david_n heart_n let_v he_o alone_o let_v he_o curse_v for_o the_o lord_n have_v bid_v he_o david_n know_v that_o it_o be_v for_o his_o sin_n that_o absolom_n rebel_v shimei_n curse_v and_o therefore_o he_o dare_v not_o grudge_v nor_o mutter_v so_o 2_o sam._n 15._o 26._o while_n david_n be_v compass_v about_o with_o the_o same_o difficulty_n see_v how_o soft_a his_o heart_n be_v ready_a to_o receive_v any_o impression_n but_o if_o he_o say_v i_o have_v no_o delight_n in_o he_o behold_v here_o i_o be_o let_v he_o do_v to_o i_o as_o seem_v good_a to_o he_o thus_o david_n heart_n be_v like_o the_o vessel_n cast_v into_o the_o fire_n it_o may_v be_v put_v into_o any_o form_n or_o fashion_n and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o a_o true_a humble_a spirit_n under_o all_o its_o unworthiness_n thus_o the_o church_n lament_n 3._o 22._o though_o she_o be_v in_o such_o desolation_n that_o she_o call_v to_o all_o the_o passenger_n who_o come_v by_o to_o see_v if_o there_o be_v ever_o any_o affliction_n like_o she_o yet_o say_v she_o it_o be_v of_o the_o lord_n mercy_n that_o we_o be_v not_o consume_v as_o wretched_a as_o we_o be_v we_o may_v be_v worse_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n mercy_n that_o we_o do_v but_o taste_v of_o his_o cup_n of_o wrath_n that_o we_o do_v not_o drink_v up_o the_o dregs_o here_o be_v a_o good_a pattern_n to_o write_v after_o let_v thy_o trouble_n and_o exercise_n be_v like_a nebuchadnezar_n furnace_n heat_v seven_o time_n hot_a than_o ordinary_a yet_o thou_o will_v have_v cause_n to_o say_v if_o thou_o regard_v thy_o own_o guilt_n it_o be_v of_o the_o lord_n mercy_n that_o it_o be_v no_o worse_o and_o vers_fw-la 39_o wherefore_o do_v a_o live_a man_n complain_v a_o man_n for_o the_o punishment_n of_o his_o sin_n be_v thou_o a_o live_a man_n not_o a_o damn_a man_n and_o do_v thou_o complain_v think_v what_o if_o thy_o condition_n be_v like_o those_o that_o be_v chain_v up_o in_o everlasting_a darkness_n gnash_v their_o tooth_n and_o roar_v out_o for_o the_o endless_a torment_n that_o be_v upon_o they_o will_v thou_o not_o then_o judge_v this_o condition_n thou_o be_v in_o though_o afflict_a and_o troublesome_a to_o be_v a_o mercy_n certain_o if_o the_o damn_a in_o hell_n be_v bind_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o to_o give_v he_o the_o glory_n thereof_o though_o it_o be_v in_o their_o confusion_n how_o much_o rather_o be_v thou_o bind_v to_o give_v god_n the_o glory_n of_o all_o his_o attribute_n in_o these_o dispensation_n to_o thou_o though_o bitter_a to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n take_v heed_n then_o of_o be_v like_o jonah_n of_o say_v thou_o do_v well_o to_o be_v angry_a it_o be_v a_o ease_n to_o pour_v forth_o thy_o complaint_n for_o what_o do_v god_n do_v thou_o any_o wrong_n do_v not_o the_o
manner_n how_o thou_o bear_v it_o three_o these_o truth_n about_o suffer_v for_o christ_n be_v useful_a even_o to_o such_o who_o enjoy_v all_o freedom_n and_o abundance_n because_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a martyrdom_n martyrium_fw-la 3._o cordis_fw-la and_o martyrium_fw-la corporis_fw-la a_o martyrdom_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o a_o martyrdom_n of_o the_o body_n if_o therefore_o thou_o be_v not_o call_v to_o suffer_v bodily_a it_o be_v certain_a thou_o must_v suffer_v spiritual_o habes_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o te_fw-la occidas_fw-la if_o other_o do_v not_o martyr_v thou_o thou_o be_v to_o martyr_v thyself_o hence_o be_v that_o duty_n of_o offer_v up_o ourselves_o as_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n hence_o it_o be_v we_o be_v command_v to_o deny_v ourselves_o to_o take_v up_o our_o cross_n to_o pull_v out_o the_o right_a eye_n to_o cut_v off_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o christianity_n be_v to_o mortify_v the_o flesh_n to_o crucify_v the_o flesh_n insomuch_o that_o the_o ancient_a writer_n do_v frequent_o compare_v this_o soul-mortification_n to_o the_o bodily_a martyrdom_n he_o that_o do_v abstain_v from_o the_o seem_a pleasure_n and_o profy_v of_o slay_v this_o man_n be_v a_o spiritual_a martyr_n he_o that_o do_v crucify_v his_o will_n that_o do_v subdue_v and_o conquer_v his_o corruption_n it_o be_v as_o much_o from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o he_o that_o be_v enable_v to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o christ_n sake_n all_o these_o come_v from_o the_o same_o principle_n there_o be_v require_v a_o insuperable_a divine_a and_o efficacious_a power_n of_o grace_n to_o bring_v the_o heart_n to_o any_o holy_a duty_n to_o avoid_v any_o sin_n from_o pure_a and_o holy_a motive_n it_o be_v therefore_o of_o consequence_n to_o hear_v of_o the_o consolation_n which_o god_n give_v in_o suffering_n for_o if_o thou_o have_v not_o corporal_a suffering_n thou_o have_v spiritual_a one_o and_o therefore_o god_n he_o will_v proportion_v thy_o comfort_n to_o thy_o exercise_n four_o it_o be_v good_a to_o understand_v and_o possess_v our_o soul_n with_o the_o affliction_n of_o other_o that_o hereby_o we_o may_v acknowledge_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o we_o if_o he_o 4._o give_v we_o sunshine_n day_n when_o other_o have_v live_v in_o trouble_n some_o time_n say_v not_o then_o what_o be_v these_o sermon_n of_o suffer_v to_o we_o who_o be_v not_o exercise_v for_o they_o great_o concern_v thou_o see_v that_o hereby_o thy_o heart_n be_v to_o be_v raise_v up_o to_o more_o thankfulness_n to_o more_o joy_n in_o blessing_n and_o praise_v of_o god_n be_v it_o not_o a_o mercy_n that_o thou_o do_v not_o live_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n that_o thou_o be_v not_o one_o of_o those_o mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n who_o wander_v in_o sheepskin_n and_o goatskin_n who_o have_v no_o settle_a abode_n or_o quietness_n in_o any_o place_n they_o do_v eat_v their_o bread_n with_o tremble_a and_o drink_v with_o fear_n and_o astonishment_n fly_v from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o parent_n bereave_v of_o child_n husband_n of_o wife_n now_o when_o thou_o shall_v consider_v what_o sad_a time_n many_o of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n have_v live_v in_o and_o thou_o have_v day_n of_o peace_n and_o abundance_n be_v not_o this_o like_a fire_n in_o thy_o bosom_n to_o inflame_v thou_o with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o constant_o to_o bless_v he_o five_o it_o be_v good_a to_o know_v the_o suffering_n of_o other_o though_o thou_o be_v free_v 5._o because_o none_o know_v when_o the_o time_n of_o thy_o trial_n may_v come_v the_o time_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n and_o of_o her_o trouble_n be_v in_o god_n hand_n and_o these_o time_n be_v only_o know_v to_o himself_o thou_o know_v not_o what_o heavy_a suffering_n thou_o may_v be_v put_v upon_o ere_o thou_o die_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v good_a to_o be_v provide_v the_o whole_a armour_n of_o christ_n before_o the_o day_n of_o fight_v do_v approach_v the_o mariner_n have_v not_o his_o instrument_n to_o provide_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o storm_n but_o he_o do_v prepare_v for_o it_o so_o neither_o be_v the_o soldier_n then_o to_o furnish_v himself_o with_o weapon_n when_o the_o enemy_n be_v approach_v to_o he_o do_v thou_o therefore_o hear_v much_o know_v much_o and_o be_v instruct_v much_o about_o the_o patience_n and_o suffering_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o when_o god_n shall_v call_v thou_o to_o it_o it_o may_v not_o seem_v a_o strange_a and_o a_o new_a thing_n to_o thou_o use_v of_o instruction_n not_o to_o be_v afraid_a to_o hear_v of_o and_o know_v all_o the_o difficulty_n and_o calamity_n which_o will_v accompany_v the_o powerful_a way_n of_o own_v christ_n how_o carnal_a and_o self-seeking_a be_v our_o heart_n with_o the_o disciple_n to_o flee_v from_o christ_n when_o he_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o cross_n we_o will_v receive_v good_a from_o christ_n but_o not_o evil_a whereas_o if_o thou_o do_v consider_v it_o thou_o shall_v find_v the_o earthly_a and_o the_o worldly_a man_n be_v more_o afflict_a and_o trouble_v in_o get_v the_o thing_n of_o the_o world_n than_o thou_o in_o obtain_v of_o heaven_n and_o what_o a_o shame_n be_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v more_o patient_a and_o endure_a for_o these_o worldly_a good_n than_o thou_o be_v for_o heavenly_a do_v not_o the_o earthly_a man_n say_v to_o his_o gold_n what_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o it_o do_v he_o not_o say_v for_o the_o love_n of_o thou_o i_o be_o kill_v all_o the_o day_n long_o this_o be_v the_o golden_a image_n that_o every_o one_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_n oh_o than_o shame_n thyself_o say_v how_o much_o can_v these_o suffer_v how_o much_o can_v these_o bear_v and_o for_o that_o which_o will_v damn_v they_o at_o last_o but_o my_o carnal_a fearful_a heart_n be_v afraid_a to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n who_o will_v give_v i_o eternal_a glory_n shall_v the_o devil_n have_v his_o martyr_n the_o world_n its_o sufferer_n and_o shall_v not_o christ_n have_v such_o as_o will_v leave_v all_o to_o have_v all_o by_o he_o again_o serm._n lix_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n find_v much_o opposition_n from_o the_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a professor_n who_o be_v these_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a professor_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 8._o of_o our_o trouble_n which_o come_v to_o we_o in_o asia_n the_o next_o thing_n considerable_a in_o the_o text_n be_v the_o description_n of_o that_o tribulation_n which_o do_v fall_v upon_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v so_o necessary_a and_o useful_a to_o be_v know_v in_o which_o we_o have_v 1._o the_o nature_n of_o this_o exercise_n express_v in_o the_o name_n it_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 2._o there_o be_v the_o place_n where_o in_o afia_n 3._o there_o be_v the_o aggravation_n of_o it_o of_o which_o in_o its_o time_n the_o exercise_n itself_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d beza_n in_o annotat._n in_o cor._n cap._n 13._o say_v this_o word_n be_v proper_o render_v affliction_n not_o tribulation_n for_o that_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rather_o than_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d hence_o he_o show_v out_o of_o tully_n that_o affligo_n be_v proper_o to_o throw_v a_o thing_n to_o the_o ground_n so_o as_o to_o press_v it_o down_o and_o therefore_o be_v the_o same_o with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n than_o signify_v not_o a_o ordinary_a trouble_n but_o such_o as_o do_v most_o strict_o constringe_v and_o bind_v press_v a_o man_n to_o the_o ground_n and_o this_o he_o say_v do_v come_v upon_o he_o in_o asia_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o that_o it_o come_v by_o chance_n or_o fortune_n or_o by_o the_o mere_a malice_n and_o power_n of_o man_n no_o it_o come_v by_o the_o special_a appointment_n of_o god_n in_o much_o wisdom_n and_o mercy_n thereby_o propagate_a the_o gospel_n for_o affliction_n be_v so_o many_o arrow_n deliver_v out_o of_o god_n quiver_n which_o be_v sure_a to_o hit_v the_o mark_n they_o be_v destine_v unto_o here_o be_v no_o more_o difficulty_n in_o the_o word_n only_a expositor_n question_v what_o this_o trouble_n be_v he_o meet_v with_o in_o asia_n where_o may_v we_o find_v any_o thing_n about_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o cajetan_n on_o the_o place_n acknowledge_v that_o concern_v this_o trouble_n in_o asia_n he_o can_v read_v nothing_o in_o any_o book_n that_o be_v authentic_a yet_o it_o seem_v not_o to_o refer_v general_o to_o all_o the_o trouble_v he_o meet_v with_o in_o publish_v of_o the_o gospel_n but_o to_o some_o eminent_a singular_a one_o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v the_o trouble_n not_o trouble_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n some_o learned_a man_n therefore_o refer_v this_o to_o those_o passage_n mention_v in_o the_o former_a epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 1_o cor._n
and_o so_o worship_v now_o to_o trust_v in_o ourselves_o or_o creature_n be_v to_o err_v in_o the_o object_n we_o set_v up_o another_o thing_n in_o god_n room_n thy_o part_n be_v thy_o god_n thy_o grace_n thy_o christ_n thy_o repentance_n thy_o saviour_n thou_o give_v that_o to_o thy_o tear_n which_o alone_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n if_o then_o god_n do_v so_o often_o proclaim_v his_o jealousy_n in_o worship_v of_o other_o god_n will_v he_o not_o also_o about_o trust_v in_o any_o thing_n but_o himself_o what_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o first_o command_n but_o to_o love_n god_n to_o trust_v in_o he_o and_o to_o depend_v upon_o he_o for_o he_o only_o be_v the_o proper_a and_o adequate_a object_n of_o trust_n because_o in_o he_o be_v infallible_a verity_n and_o truth_n truth_n of_o be_v so_o that_o he_o can_v never_o die_v but_o be_v always_o the_o same_o and_o truth_n of_o promise_n so_o that_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v soon_o pass_v away_o than_o his_o word_n again_o he_o be_v willing_a and_o ready_a to_o help_v he_o manifest_v his_o freeness_n of_o grace_n to_o thou_o whereas_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o damn_a they_o can_v trust_v in_o god_n because_o they_o have_v no_o promise_n from_o god_n yea_o they_o be_v sure_o he_o will_v never_o help_v they_o last_o god_n be_v omnipotent_a nothing_o be_v impossible_a to_o he_o therefore_o if_o thou_o can_v meet_v with_o a_o creature_n that_o be_v eternal_a unchangeable_a omnipotent_a then_o may_v thou_o put_v trust_n in_o that_o but_o the_o whole_a world_n respective_o to_o god_n be_v less_o than_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o balance_n which_o do_v not_o turn_v the_o scale_n one_o way_n or_o other_o so_o neither_o be_v all_o the_o power_n and_o all_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o world_n able_a to_o turn_v thy_o condition_n to_o supply_v thy_o want_n if_o god_n do_v not_o interpose_v last_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a and_o unprofitable_a sin_n as_o jer._n 17._o curse_a be_v he_o that_o sin_n trust_v in_o man_n god_n delight_v to_o blast_v all_o the_o thing_n thou_o have_v hope_v in_o so_o that_o common_o we_o may_v know_v what_o we_o trust_v too_o much_o in_o by_o god_n remove_v of_o it_o or_o what_o we_o will_v rest_v upon_o too_o much_o by_o deny_v we_o such_o help_n and_o comfort_n no_o soon_o have_v we_o with_o jonah_n get_v under_o a_o gourd_n to_o keep_v ourselves_o from_o the_o scorch_a heat_n but_o god_n cause_v a_o worm_n to_o devour_v it_o how_o unwise_a be_v thou_o then_o by_o rest_v thy_o soul_n upon_o any_o comfort_n thou_o can_v not_o take_v a_o more_o speedy_a way_n then_o to_o make_v god_n break_v it_o under_o thy_o arm_n even_o as_o the_o aegyptiane_n because_o they_o boast_v of_o the_o water_n of_o nilus_n and_o trust_v in_o they_o god_n turn_v they_o all_o into_o blood_n be_v sure_a god_n will_v make_v thy_o confidence_n thy_o sorrow_n and_o break_n of_o heart_n that_o can_v never_o enough_o be_v receive_v which_o jonah_n preach_v from_o his_o own_o experience_n they_o that_o observe_v lie_v vanity_n forsake_v their_o own_o mercy_n jonah_n 2._o 8._o those_o very_a mercy_n god_n have_v purpose_v for_o thou_o and_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o perform_v of_o they_o by_o observe_v of_o and_o trust_v in_o other_o mean_n and_o help_n thou_o have_v utter_o deprive_v thyself_o of_o even_o as_o god_n do_v with_o the_o israelite_n jerem._n 2._o 37._o thou_o shall_v go_v from_o egypt_n with_o thy_o hand_n upon_o thy_o head_n for_o the_o lord_n have_v reject_v thy_o confidence_n and_o thou_o shall_v not_o prosper_v in_o they_o thus_o thou_o be_v many_o time_n bewail_v the_o loss_n of_o thy_o confidence_n serm._n lxxi_o of_o the_o nature_n object_n and_o matter_n of_o our_o divine_a trust_n or_o dependence_n upon_o god_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 9_o but_o in_o god_n we_o now_o come_v to_o that_o bless_a and_o medicinal_a effect_n of_o the_o grent_a trouble_n which_o come_v upon_o paul_n in_o asia_n as_o it_o be_v positive_o describe_v for_o we_o have_v the_o sinful_a and_o unlawful_a object_n of_o our_o trust_n remove_v which_o be_v ourselves_o and_o the_o proper_a adequate_a and_o only_a object_n thereof_o assert_v and_o that_o be_v the_o lord_n from_o whence_o observe_v trust_n that_o god_n alone_o be_v the_o proper_a object_n in_o who_o we_o be_v to_o trust_v as_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o any_o but_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n so_o neither_o to_o trust_v in_o any_o beside_o he_o because_o this_o text_n be_v so_o proper_a i_o shall_v enlarge_v myself_o about_o this_o great_a duty_n of_o trust_v in_o god_n it_o be_v of_o such_o great_a practical_a concernment_n for_o there_o be_v no_o grace_n more_o difficult_o and_o rare_o exercise_v than_o this_o there_o be_v indeed_o much_o presumption_n in_o the_o world_n and_o carnal_a confidence_n but_o little_a spiritual_a dependence_n upon_o god_n alone_o and_o rely_v upon_o his_o promise_n and_o power_n overlook_v all_o mean_n and_o instrument_n that_o therefore_o we_o may_v be_v full_o acquaint_v with_o the_o nature_n of_o this_o grace_n and_o may_v according_o exercise_v it_o all_o the_o day_n long_o for_o every_o god_n moment_n every_o time_n we_o breathe_v we_o have_v need_n of_o trust_v in_o god_n let_v we_o lay_v down_o several_a proposition_n and_o first_o consider_v that_o to_o trust_v in_o god_n be_v a_o gracious_a gift_n wrought_v in_o we_o by_o his_o spirit_n no_o man_n be_v able_a of_o himself_o or_o by_o himself_o to_o rest_n upon_o god_n alone_o not_o regard_v or_o look_v above_o all_o second_o cause_n unless_o he_o be_v enable_v thereunto_o by_o god_n for_o to_o trust_n be_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v to_o be_v show_v and_o faith_n that_o be_v in_o many_o place_n make_v to_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o not_o accomplish_v by_o our_o strength_n whereas_o then_o you_o have_v many_o people_n who_o mouth_n be_v full_a of_o trust_v in_o god_n you_o must_v know_v that_o such_o speak_v they_o know_v not_o what_o for_o none_o can_v trust_v in_o god_n but_o he_o that_o be_v enable_v thereunto_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o as_o peter_n body_n can_v not_o walk_v upon_o the_o water_n without_o sink_v because_o of_o the_o natural_a weight_n of_o the_o body_n unless_o christ_n have_v in_o a_o wonderful_a manner_n support_v it_o so_o neither_o can_v a_o man_n look_v high_a than_o mean_n than_o instrument_n unless_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n lift_v thy_o soul_n up_o yea_o because_o man_n be_v so_o apt_a to_o live_v by_o sense_n consist_v of_o a_o sensible_a body_n and_o therefore_o the_o thing_n of_o sense_n most_o affect_v he_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o if_o there_o be_v more_o difficulty_n to_o work_v one_o grace_n than_o another_o because_o of_o the_o more_o immediate_a opposition_n of_o the_o soul_n against_o some_o duty_n more_o than_o another_o we_o may_v say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v soon_o bring_v to_o be_v just_a liberal_a and_o to_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o second_o table_n yea_o many_o duty_n of_o the_o first_o table_n than_o this_o no_o wonder_n than_o it_o be_v make_v a_o gracious_a gift_n of_o god_n hence_o in_o the_o second_o place_n there_o be_v none_o can_v trust_v in_o god_n but_o such_o as_o be_v regenerate_v grace_n and_o be_v make_v new_a creature_n for_o as_o none_o have_v true_a save_a faith_n but_o such_o so_o none_o have_v spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a dependence_n upon_o god_n but_o such_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o say_v we_o trust_v in_o god_n when_o we_o have_v the_o help_n and_o supply_v of_o all_o creature_n but_o when_o all_o prop_n be_v remove_v then_o to_o rest_v on_o god_n as_o secure_o and_o quiet_o as_o if_o thou_o have_v all_o external_a abundance_n this_o can_v be_v do_v but_o by_o a_o gracious_a heart_n therefore_o the_o unregenerate_a man_n he_o do_v but_o delude_v himself_o it_o be_v not_o god_n that_o he_o trust_v in_o but_o his_o wealth_n his_o power_n some_o refuge_n or_o other_o he_o have_v in_o the_o creature_n neither_o can_v he_o live_v upon_o high_a principle_n hence_o we_o have_v that_o place_n thrice_o mention_v the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n faith_n be_v trust_v there_o and_o it_o be_v apply_v both_o to_o our_o life_n in_o respect_n of_o temporal_a thing_n in_o affliction_n as_o heb._n 10._o 38._o as_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n especial_o our_o justification_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o gal._n 3._o 11._o it_o be_v the_o just_a man_n then_o and_o the_o sanctify_a man_n alone_o who_o can_v live_v by_o trust_v on_o god_n only_o sin_n be_v such_o a_o heavy_a load_n that_o it_o press_v down_o and_o make_v a_o man_n creep_v upon_o the_o ground_n now_o all_o those_o creature_n that_o do_v
we_o from_o so_o great_a a_o death_n and_o do_v deliver_v in_o who_o we_o trust_v that_o he_o will_v yet_o deliver_v we_o the_o apostle_n have_v former_o discover_v his_o humane_a fear_n and_o diffidence_n under_o that_o great_a trouble_n which_o come_v upon_o he_o in_o asia_n do_v now_o recollect_v himself_o and_o revive_v out_o of_o his_o swound_n the_o sun_n that_o be_v in_o a_o eclipse_n do_v now_o begin_v to_o shine_v forth_o in_o glorious_a lustre_n he_o have_v inform_v we_o that_o the_o end_n of_o that_o heavy_a tribulattion_n be_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o trust_v in_o himself_o but_o in_o god_n and_o now_o in_o this_o verse_n we_o see_v this_o bless_a effect_n take_v place_n in_o he_o for_o by_o the_o experience_n of_o god_n mercy_n to_o he_o at_o this_o time_n he_o be_v encourage_v to_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o the_o future_a he_o have_v do_v and_o will_v deliver_v one_o favour_n from_o god_n be_v a_o pledge_n of_o more_o to_o come_v in_o this_o verse_n than_o we_o see_v paul_n get_v above_o and_o conquer_a that_o weakness_n and_o imbecility_n which_o he_o find_v in_o himself_o and_o acknowledge_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o his_o power_n to_o he_o paul_n find_v god_n able_a to_o raise_v the_o dead_a by_o what_o he_o have_v do_v to_o he_o in_o his_o particular_a in_o the_o text_n than_o we_o may_v take_v notice_n of_o 1._o paul_n solemn_a acknowledgement_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o power_n of_o god_n to_o he_o in_o deliver_v of_o he_o and_o 2._o his_o encouragement_n from_o thence_o to_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o the_o future_a in_o the_o former_a part_n we_o have_v his_o celebration_n of_o god_n goodness_n to_o he_o and_o this_o he_o aggravate_v from_o the_o hopelesnesse_n and_o desperateness_n of_o his_o estate_n which_o he_o call_v a_o death_n not_o a_o sickness_n but_o a_o death_n yea_o chrysostome_n observe_v that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v who_o have_v deliver_v we_o from_o such_o danger_n but_o such_o death_n to_o show_v the_o extremity_n chrysostome_n read_v it_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d death_n but_o the_o general_a copy_n be_v otherwise_o now_o paul_n do_v not_o only_o call_v it_o death_n but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d such_o death_n the_o word_n be_v use_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n about_o three_o time_n beside_o in_o this_o place_n and_o it_o be_v always_o apply_v to_o the_o great_a aggravation_n of_o a_o thing_n so_o as_o we_o be_v to_o admire_v it_o as_o if_o the_o like_a have_v never_o be_v hear_v of_o thus_o revel_v 16._o 18._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v such_o a_o earthquake_n as_o never_o have_v be_v before_o james_n chap._n 3._o 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v ship_n very_o great_a and_o hebr._n 2._o 3._o how_o shall_v we_o escape_v if_o we_o neglect_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o great_a salvation_n then_o which_o there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a the_o apostle_n therefore_o in_o use_v this_o word_n do_v intend_v to_o aggravate_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o he_o to_o leave_v out_o no_o circumstance_n that_o may_v not_o heighten_v the_o mercy_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o with_o he_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o mercy_n but_o the_o aggravation_n of_o his_o mercy_n and_o this_o make_v his_o heart_n seven_o time_n hot_a as_o it_o be_v in_o praise_v of_o god_n than_o otherwise_o it_o will_v be_v from_o whence_o observe_v that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n do_v not_o only_o acknowledge_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o they_o likewise_o but_o they_o also_o consider_v of_o every_o circumstance_n that_o may_v make_v the_o mercy_n appear_v great_a they_o will_v take_v up_o every_o crumb_n and_o the_o fragment_n as_o it_o be_v that_o god_n miraculous_a power_n may_v be_v more_o demonstrate_v they_o do_v not_o content_v themselves_o with_o a_o behold_n of_o the_o mercy_n in_o the_o bulk_n but_o they_o weigh_v every_o particular_a ingredient_n and_o so_o of_o one_o mercy_n make_v many_o mercy_n that_o as_o the_o godly_a in_o their_o humiliation_n for_o sin_n think_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o humble_v themselves_o in_o the_o general_n but_o they_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v to_o mind_v every_o circumstance_n that_o may_v aggravate_v it_o and_o so_o make_v themselves_o more_o abominable_a and_o loathsome_a in_o their_o own_o eye_n thus_o they_o do_v also_o in_o matter_n of_o thanksgiving_n they_o do_v not_o take_v the_o mercy_n in_o the_o gross_a but_o they_o look_v through_o it_o and_o about_o it_o to_o espy_v out_o every_o particular_a that_o may_v be_v like_o a_o coal_n of_o fire_n in_o their_o bosom_n thus_o we_o have_v the_o thankful_a psalmist_n psal_n 136._o sever_a every_o particular_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o israel_n by_o itself_o and_o then_o add_v for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o sihon_n king_n of_o the_o amorites_n for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o og_n king_n of_o basan_n for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o he_o reckon_v they_o up_o one_o and_o by_o one_o though_o he_o may_v have_v satisfy_v himself_o with_o that_o expression_n vers_fw-la 24._o who_o have_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o our_o enemy_n but_o a_o gracious_a heart_n dare_v not_o rob_v god_n of_o his_o glory_n in_o any_o one_o benefit_n that_o he_o have_v from_o he_o for_o if_o he_o must_v say_v with_o jacob_n he_o be_v less_o than_o the_o least_o of_o his_o mercy_n it_o be_v not_o for_o he_o to_o pass_v it_o by_o for_o every_o little_a mercy_n be_v far_o above_o his_o desert_n to_o he_o belong_v all_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n whatsoever_o be_v not_o hell_n and_o damnation_n come_v from_o the_o mere_a bounty_n of_o god_n but_o let_v we_o illustrate_v this_o truth_n in_o the_o particular_n show_v wherein_o the_o people_n of_o god_n use_v to_o make_v their_o aggravation_n and_o first_o the_o child_n of_o god_n use_v to_o enlarge_v their_o thought_n in_o praise_n of_o god_n condition_n from_o the_o low_a weak_a and_o impotent_a condition_n they_o of_o themselves_o be_v in_o now_o the_o more_o the_o disease_n be_v find_v out_o to_o be_v desperate_a and_o incurable_a the_o great_a be_v the_o art_n and_o skill_n of_o the_o physician_n thus_o psal_n 136._o 23._o who_o remember_v we_o in_o our_o low_a estate_n the_o black_a eclipse_n make_v the_o sun_n light_n when_o recover_v more_o glorious_a the_o low_a and_o weak_a in_o thyself_o the_o more_o be_v god_n thereby_o acknowledge_v so_o psal_n 34._o 6._o this_o poor_a man_n cry_v and_o the_o lord_n hear_v he_o this_o aggravate_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o though_o a_o very_a lazar_n yet_o god_n will_v not_o despise_v he_o so_o psal_n 142._o 3._o when_o my_o spirit_n be_v overwhelm_v within_o i_o than_o thou_o know_v my_o path_n nothing_o be_v more_o ordinary_a than_o such_o passage_n in_o the_o psalm_n to_o aggravate_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o the_o godly_a from_o the_o lowness_n and_o the_o impotency_n they_o be_v in_o oh_o if_o god_n have_v not_o come_v in_o at_o that_o time_n i_o have_v utter_o perish_v how_o many_o low_a condition_n have_v many_o of_o god_n people_n be_v in_o sometime_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o outward_a sometime_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o inward_a yet_o god_n have_v deliver_v they_o from_o those_o whale_n belly_n your_o affection_n to_o praise_n god_n will_v be_v very_o cold_a and_o dull_a till_o you_o possess_v your_o soul_n with_o this_o thought_n oh_o how_o low_o be_v it_o with_o i_o little_o do_v other_o know_v how_o it_o fare_v with_o i_o one_o step_z further_a will_v have_v cast_v i_o into_o utter_a horror_n and_o then_o when_o i_o can_v bear_v no_o long_o god_n support_v i_o many_o psalm_n may_v the_o chilren_n of_o god_n make_v as_o it_o be_v i_o be_v in_o such_o a_o sad_a temptation_n but_o god_n rescue_v i_o for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o i_o be_v in_o such_o a_o outward_a straight_a and_o the_o lord_n make_v a_o way_n to_o escape_v for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o thus_o the_o thought_n of_o thy_o low_a condition_n will_v great_o advance_v the_o help_n of_o god_n vouchsafe_v to_o thou_o second_o the_o people_n of_o god_n do_v aggravate_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n not_o only_o sinfulness_n from_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o danger_n they_o be_v in_o but_o also_o their_o sinfulness_n their_o unworthiness_n that_o ever_o god_n shall_v cast_v a_o eye_n of_o pity_n on_o they_o and_o this_o they_o do_v whether_o in_o temporal_a or_o spiritual_a mercy_n and_o true_o this_o be_v a_o excellent_a way_n to_o enlarge_v the_o heart_n in_o blessing_n of_o god_n when_o we_o shall_v consider_v how_o unworthy_a we_o be_v we_o that_o deserve_v curse_v to_o meet_v with_o blessing_n see_v this_o humble_a frame_n in_o david_n 1_o chron._n 17._o 16._o when_o
nathan_n come_v to_o declare_v the_o good_a purpose_n of_o god_n towards_o he_o in_o raise_v up_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n to_o glory_n see_v how_o humble_o and_o in_o a_o self-emptied_n manner_n he_o address_v himself_o to_o god_n who_o be_o i_o and_o what_o be_v my_o house_n that_o thou_o have_v bring_v i_o hitherto_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v oh_o lord_n what_o be_o i_o and_o my_o family_n the_o mean_a and_o most_o unworthy_a and_o will_v thou_o do_v this_o to_o i_o yea_o as_o if_o this_o be_v a_o small_a thing_n thou_o have_v speak_v of_o thy_o servant_n house_n for_o a_o great_a while_n to_o come_v and_o have_v regard_v i_o after_o the_o estate_n of_o a_o man_n of_o high_a degree_n what_o can_v david_n speak_v more_o yea_o as_o it_o be_v 1_o sam._n 7._o he_o say_v be_v this_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n o_o lord_n god_n imply_v that_o only_a god_n vouchsafe_v mercy_n to_o such_o as_o be_v unworthy_a as_o than_o he_o who_o will_v build_v high_a must_v lay_v a_o deep_a foundation_n so_o he_o that_o will_v exalt_v god_n on_o high_a must_v lay_v himself_o low_a and_o if_o it_o be_v thus_o for_o temporal_a mercy_n we_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o a_o crumb_n of_o bread_n and_o though_o with_o dives_n we_o shall_v beg_v for_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n it_o may_v be_v deny_v we_o then_o how_o much_o more_o in_o spiritual_a mercy_n if_o god_n bestow_v they_o upon_o we_o shall_v not_o our_o affection_n be_v great_o kindle_v in_o blessing_n of_o god_n take_v that_o fountain_n of_o all_o mercy_n the_o give_v of_o the_o lord_n christ_n to_o believer_n to_o work_v out_o their_o salvation_n by_o be_v make_v a_o curse_n for_o they_o how_o diligent_a be_v the_o scripture_n to_o put_v a_o account_n as_o it_o be_v upon_o every_o passage_n therein_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o impossible_a for_o a_o believer_n to_o think_v of_o this_o love_n of_o the_o father_n to_o we_o and_o not_o be_v ravish_v with_o it_o as_o for_o a_o man_n to_o carry_v hot_a coal_n in_o his_o bosom_n and_o they_o not_o burn_v he_o for_o the_o scripture_n aggravate_v it_o from_o the_o person_n who_o die_v for_o we_o even_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n john_n 3._o 16._o for_o god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n he_o so_o love_v it_o if_o god_n will_v have_v deny_v any_o thing_n to_o mankind_n it_o will_v have_v be_v this_o who_o will_v not_o think_v that_o he_o shall_v rather_o suffer_v all_o man_n to_o be_v damn_v then_o to_o give_v up_o his_o son_n to_o death_n and_o yet_o what_o astonish_v love_n be_v here_o dare_v a_o poor_a sinner_n of_o himself_o ever_o think_v to_o have_v beg_v such_o a_o thing_n at_o god_n hand_n rom._n 8._o 32._o he_o spare_v not_o his_o own_o son_n certain_o thy_o heart_n may_v be_v amaze_v more_o than_o the_o queen_n of_o shebaes_n in_o see_v of_o solomon_n glory_n in_o meditate_v on_o this_o god_n to_o give_v his_o own_o son_n his_o only_a beget_v son_n his_o son_n out_o of_o his_o bosom_n all_o which_o be_v aggravate_v circumstance_n if_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o body_n if_o all_o the_o hair_n of_o thy_o head_n be_v turn_v into_o tongue_n can_v they_o speak_v enough_o of_o this_o goodness_n of_o god_n as_o god_n say_v to_o abraham_n now_o i_o know_v thou_o love_v i_o because_o thou_o have_v not_o withhold_v thy_o only_a son_n from_o i_o how_o much_o more_o may_v we_o conclude_v from_o god_n give_v his_o son_n to_o we_o as_o the_o scripture_n aggravate_v it_o thus_o from_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n so_o also_o from_o the_o quality_n of_o those_o for_o who_o christ_n be_v thus_o give_v and_o that_o be_v for_o enemy_n and_o adversary_n and_o here_o be_v a_o aggravate_v circumstance_n to_o inflame_v thy_o heart_n rom._n 5._o 6._o when_o we_o be_v without_o strength_n when_o we_o be_v enemy_n to_o die_v for_o righteous_a man_n to_o die_v for_o godly_a man_n will_v not_o have_v be_v such_o a_o aggravation_n but_o for_o sinner_n and_o enemy_n this_o be_v wonderful_a here_o then_o be_v another_o coal_n from_o the_o altar_n to_o warm_v thy_o heart_n with_o when_o thou_o will_v bless_v god_n for_o christ_n again_o the_o scripture_n to_o aggravate_v this_o mercy_n do_v consider_v to_o what_o end_n he_o be_v give_v for_o we_o that_o be_v to_o die_v for_o we_o to_o die_v a_o ignominious_a death_n to_o be_v make_v accurse_v for_o we_o to_o bear_v the_o punishment_n of_o our_o sin_n upon_o himself_o this_o also_o do_v deep_o sink_v into_o the_o heart_n this_o be_v like_a oil_n to_o the_o chariot_n wheel_v of_o the_o soul_n this_o be_v like_o the_o spirit_n in_o ezekiel_n wheel_n thy_o heart_n can_v be_v quiet_a but_o it_o will_v exceed_o dilate_v itself_o in_o blessing_n of_o god_n for_o he_o that_o whereas_o he_o who_o will_v be_v our_o saviour_n must_v purchase_v our_o salvation_n at_o so_o dear_a a_o rate_n yet_o he_o do_v willing_o make_v his_o soul_n a_o offering_n for_o our_o sin_n last_o the_o scripture_n aggravate_v this_o comparative_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n heb._n 2._o 16._o he_o do_v not_o so_o love_v they_o he_o die_v not_o for_o those_o apostate_n angel_n who_o yet_o be_v more_o glorious_a creature_n than_o man_n and_o if_o redeem_v will_v have_v bring_v god_n more_o glory_n but_o it_o be_v for_o sinful_a wretched_a and_o weak_a man_n but_o this_o mercy_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n can_v never_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o depth_n breadth_n and_o length_n thereof_o it_o be_v like_o ezekiel_n water_n that_o will_v ascend_v high_a and_o high_o even_o till_o it_o cover_v our_o head_n we_o may_v instance_n in_o a_o second_o spiritual_a mercy_n viz._n of_o conversion_n or_o effectual_a call_v we_o out_o of_o the_o damn_a world_n oh_o the_o soul_n can_v never_o be_v affect_v with_o this_o how_o much_o do_v it_o delight_n to_o speak_v of_o his_o own_o vileness_n and_o unworthiness_n once_o that_o so_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o call_v of_o we_o may_v be_v the_o more_o exalt_v we_o see_v it_o in_o paul_n 1_o tim._n 1._o 13_o 15._o how_o willing_a he_o be_v to_o speak_v what_o a_o blasphemous_a persecutor_n he_o have_v once_o be_v even_o the_o great_a and_o chief_a of_o sinner_n and_o therefore_o in_o he_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v even_o for_o the_o age_n to_o come_v to_o this_o purpose_n also_o 1_o corinth_n 15._o 8_o 9_o 10._o he_o speak_v debase_v himself_o that_o he_o be_v not_o meet_v to_o be_v call_v a_o apostle_n because_o he_o persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n this_o discriminate_n and_o differ_v grace_n of_o god_n whereby_o god_n choose_v thou_o a_o poor_a contemptible_a worm_n and_o pass_v by_o other_o many_o in_o the_o same_o town_n in_o the_o same_o family_n of_o the_o same_o profession_n yet_o convert_v grace_n lay_v hold_v on_o thou_o and_o not_o on_o another_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v there_o be_v many_o widow_n at_o that_o time_n beside_o she_o of_o sarepta_n yet_o the_o prophet_n be_v send_v to_o she_o alone_o this_o comparative_a work_n of_o grace_n pass_v by_o other_o and_o take_v thou_o when_o if_o god_n will_v have_v regard_v external_n or_o internal_o there_o be_v rich_a there_o be_v more_o learned_a there_o be_v less_o vicious_a must_v for_o ever_o enlarge_v the_o soul_n yea_o so_o astonish_v she_o that_o she_o will_v cry_v out_o what_o shall_v i_o say_v to_o these_o thing_n a_o three_o aggravation_n of_o god_n mercy_n that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n take_v notice_n mercy_n of_o be_v from_o the_o time_n and_o season_n that_o god_n do_v it_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n god_n send_v his_o son_n and_o the_o wiseman_n say_v god_n do_v every_o thing_n beautiful_a in_o its_o season_n to_o have_v mercy_n out_o of_o its_o due_a time_n be_v to_o give_v bread_n instead_o of_o stone_n it_o be_v like_o good_a physic_n but_o not_o administer_v in_o its_o proper_a season_n now_o the_o observe_a christian_a who_o love_v to_o seek_v out_o the_o work_n of_o god_n towards_o he_o and_o study_v all_o god_n dispensation_n towards_o he_o do_v in_o this_o respect_n find_v out_o infinite_a matter_n of_o praise_v of_o god_n that_o the_o lord_n shall_v put_v off_o to_o help_v so_o long_o that_o he_o shall_v let_v lazarus_n die_v and_o be_v bury_v all_o this_o be_v to_o make_v the_o soul_n affect_v with_o the_o seasonable_a time_v of_o a_o mercy_n to_o have_v a_o mercy_n in_o its_o season_n make_v it_o a_o double_a mercy_n only_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o god_n season_n and_o fit_a opportunity_n be_v not_o always_o well_o discern_v by_o we_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o think_v
the_o discriminate_a mercy_n of_o god_n he_o kill_v and_o make_v alive_a he_o make_v poor_a and_o make_v rich_a so_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v distribute_v according_a to_o the_o wisdom_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n if_o so_o how_o then_o come_v it_o about_o that_o thou_o escape_v such_o a_o misery_n and_o another_o do_v not_o affliction_n rise_v not_o out_o of_o the_o dust_n neither_o do_v preferment_n and_o honour_n god_n then_o give_v a_o cup_n of_o gladness_n and_o joy_n or_o a_o cup_n of_o gall_n and_o wormwood_n to_o drink_v off_o now_o then_o look_v about_o thou_o and_o behold_v how_o many_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o have_v no_o light_n how_o many_o be_v bereave_v of_o sense_n of_o their_o understanding_n and_o of_o all_o comfort_n even_o bring_v to_o be_v like_o dives_n in_o hell_n ask_v for_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n and_o can_v obtain_v it_o but_o it_o be_v light_a in_o thy_o goshen_n while_o darkness_n with_o other_o do_v not_o this_o prevent_a mercy_n melt_v thy_o soul_n be_v thou_o not_o make_v of_o brass_n and_o iron_n if_o thy_o preservation_n from_o the_o misery_n of_o other_o especial_o the_o damnable_a and_o sinful_a way_n do_v not_o exceed_o move_v thou_o how_o can_v thou_o carry_v such_o live_v coal_n in_o thy_o bosom_n as_o these_o thought_n be_v and_o not_o be_v whole_o inflame_v with_o they_o 3._o acknowledge_v this_o likewise_o that_o whatsoever_o god_n in_o justice_n may_v inflict_v mercy_n upon_o thou_o and_o yet_o do_v not_o therein_o be_v also_o prevent_v mercy_n it_o may_v amaze_v we_o to_o consider_v what_o object_n of_o wrath_n and_o example_n of_o god_n vengeance_n there_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n cain_n be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n god_n make_v he_o like_o a_o anatomy-lecture_n for_o all_o succeed_a evil_a man_n to_o beware_v of_o his_o impiety_n pharaoh_n also_o god_n say_v of_o he_o for_o this_o cause_n have_v i_o raise_v thou_o up_o or_o as_o some_o contend_v i_o have_v keep_v thou_o alive_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o those_o many_o judgement_n that_o destroy_v round_o about_o he_o rom._n 9_o 17._o exod._n 9_o 16._o now_o let_v any_o thankful_a godly_a heart_n meditate_v on_o these_o history_n consider_v these_o example_n why_o be_v not_o thou_o a_o cain_n thou_o a_o pharaoh_n why_o shall_v not_o god_n make_v thou_o a_o example_n of_o his_o wrath_n to_o be_v a_o pillar_n of_o salt_n to_o season_v other_o as_o well_o as_o other_o be_v to_o thou_o oh_o the_o depth_n of_o this_o prevent_a mercy_n how_o incomprehensible_a and_o unsearchable_a be_v they_o must_v not_o this_o astonish_v thou_o to_o think_v that_o whatsoever_o god_n in_o the_o way_n of_o wrath_n have_v do_v to_o any_o man_n in_o the_o world_n the_o same_o god_n may_v have_v do_v to_o thou_o and_o no_o more_o have_v wrong_v thou_o than_o he_o do_v they_o account_v this_o therefore_o upon_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o mercy_n that_o these_o thing_n have_v not_o come_v upon_o thou_o look_v upon_o all_o such_o mercy_n as_o privilege_n and_o exemption_n god_n do_v otherwise_o with_o thou_o than_o many_o other_o he_o punish_v their_o sin_n he_o animadvert_v their_o iniquity_n they_o be_v howl_v under_o his_o anger_n and_o thou_o be_v preserve_v it_o be_v true_a god_n be_v no_o accepter_n of_o person_n and_o therefore_o cain_n can_v expostulate_v with_o god_n why_o he_o do_v not_o make_v he_o abel_n nor_o can_v pharaoh_n complain_v of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v not_o david_n nor_o yet_o can_v judas_n find_v fault_n with_o the_o lord_n because_o he_o be_v not_o peter_n because_o as_o aquinas_n observe_v well_o in_o thing_n of_o mere_a bounty_n and_o liberality_n there_o can_v be_v any_o accept_n of_o person_n see_v that_o if_o no_o munificence_n to_o any_o at_o all_o be_v extend_v there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o grievance_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v whole_o with_o god_n he_o be_v no_o debtor_n nor_o oblige_v in_o any_o way_n of_o justice_n to_o man_n and_o therefore_o if_o he_o do_v what_o he_o please_v with_o his_o own_o shall_v thy_o eye_n be_v evil_a because_o he_o be_v good_a so_o that_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v justify_v by_o these_o different_a dispensation_n only_o thou_o who_o the_o lord_n do_v thus_o spare_a and_o exempt_a from_o his_o way_n of_o wrath_n look_v upon_o it_o as_o so_o much_o mercy_n as_o if_o god_n have_v say_v to_o the_o damn_a in_o hell_n as_o he_o do_v to_o lazarus_n in_o the_o grave_n come_v forth_o 4._o not_o only_o whatsoever_o god_n do_v in_o a_o way_n of_o justice_n but_o also_o in_o a_o providential_a way_n which_o we_o call_v chance_n bring_v upon_o other_o and_o not_o upon_o thou_o this_o mercy_n also_o be_v a_o prevent_a mercy_n we_o read_v that_o if_o a_o man_n be_v cut_v a_o tree_n and_o the_o axe_n head_n fall_v off_o and_o kill_v another_o it_o be_v say_v the_o lord_n deliver_v that_o man_n into_o his_o hand_n exod._n 21._o 13._o compare_v with_o deut._n 13._o 19_o although_o to_o man_n there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o contingency_n and_o casualty_n such_o sad_a thing_n fall_v out_o many_o time_n that_o no_o wisdom_n of_o man_n can_v foresee_v yet_o in_o respect_n both_o of_o god_n knowledge_n and_o providence_n no_o thing_n be_v uncertain_a to_o god_n and_o therefore_o those_o casual_a thing_n be_v as_o much_o under_o god_n providence_n as_o necessary_a thing_n what_o can_v be_v more_o inconsiderable_a than_o a_o hair_n yet_o not_o one_o of_o these_o fall_v from_o the_o head_n without_o god_n will_n this_o be_v so_o let_v a_o godly_a man_n but_o think_v with_o himself_o how_o many_o casual_a murder_n how_o many_o sudden_a and_o unexpected_a death_n have_v many_o meet_v withal_o in_o the_o world_n what_o sad_a change_n have_v be_v make_v in_o family_n in_o relation_n by_o some_o accident_n that_o be_v never_o think_v of_o yea_o it_o may_v be_v the_o like_a never_o fall_v out_o again_o now_o then_o cast_v up_o thy_o account_n o_o child_n of_o god_n see_v how_o much_o be_v owe_v to_o god_n in_o this_o very_a particular_a count_v every_o such_o prevent_a mercy_n as_o much_o as_o a_o positive_a one_o 5._o whatsoever_o the_o frailty_n imbecility_n and_o weakness_n of_o man_n will_v cast_v he_o mercy_n into_o yet_o god_n keep_v thou_o from_o know_v this_o be_v a_o prevent_a mercy_n man_n be_v such_o a_o poor_a infirm_a creature_n so_o many_o thing_n be_v requisite_a to_o keep_v up_o life_n that_o we_o may_v wonder_v every_o man_n who_o go_v from_o home_n alive_a be_v not_o bring_v home_o dead_a at_o night_n how_o be_v it_o that_o this_o candle_n under_o so_o many_o puff_n of_o wind_n be_v not_o extinguish_v how_o come_v this_o spark_n of_o fire_n to_o be_v keep_v in_o a_o sea_n of_o water_n so_o that_o thou_o may_v just_o account_v every_o day_n life_n a_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a have_v man_n no_o other_o keeper_n or_o preserver_n than_o himself_o both_o in_o temporal_n and_o spiritual_n every_o moment_n he_o will_v die_v both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n say_v then_o o_o lord_n my_o heart_n be_v affect_v my_o soul_n suffer_v violence_n within_o i_o if_o i_o have_v the_o tongue_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n i_o can_v not_o exalt_v thy_o mercy_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o i_o look_v upon_o myself_o as_o bring_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n yea_o bring_v out_o of_o hell_n many_o time_n a_o day_n the_o papist_n have_v a_o opinion_n about_o the_o virgin_n mary_n that_o she_o be_v bear_v in_o no_o original_a sin_n nor_o ever_o commit_v any_o actual_a sin_n and_o therefore_o say_v they_o when_o she_o call_v christ_n her_o redeemer_n that_o be_v by_o way_n of_o preservation_n not_o that_o she_o be_v actual_o redeem_v from_o sin_n but_o will_v necessary_o have_v be_v if_o christ_n have_v not_o preserve_v she_o this_o be_v a_o absurd_a and_o a_o foolish_a opinion_n only_o in_o the_o general_n we_o may_v say_v that_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v a_o redeemer_n to_o his_o people_n by_o actual_a deliverance_n so_o also_o by_o preservation_n christ_n be_v a_o saviour_n in_o that_o he_o preserve_v thou_o from_o the_o sin_n thou_o will_v have_v commit_v as_o well_o as_o those_o thou_o have_v commit_v yea_o all_o those_o iniquity_n thy_o heart_n thy_o temptation_n will_v have_v carry_v thou_o unto_o if_o god_n have_v not_o prevent_v thou_o be_v to_o bless_v god_n for_o as_o well_o as_o the_o pardon_n of_o those_o sin_n actual_o commit_v by_o thou_o fill_v thy_o soul_n therefore_o with_o the_o meditation_n of_o these_o thing_n say_v lord_n what_o i_o be_o be_v a_o mercy_n what_o i_o be_o not_o be_v a_o mercy_n the_o remove_n of_o evil_n be_v a_o mercy_n the_o keep_n of_o it_o off_o be_v likewise_o a_o mercy_n serm._n lxxvi_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o god_n
seek_v out_o fit_a word_n that_o may_v be_v as_o so_o many_o nail_n fasten_v by_o the_o master_n of_o the_o assembly_n so_o it_o be_v your_o duty_n to_o be_v as_o diligent_a in_o prayer_n for_o a_o blessing_n upon_o it_o that_o to_o yourselves_o to_o your_o family_n to_o your_o neighbour_n it_o may_v be_v a_o quicken_a and_o convert_v word_n thus_o paul_n in_o that_o forementioned_a place_n pray_v for_o we_o that_o the_o gospel_n may_v have_v a_o free_a course_n and_o be_v glorify_v oh_o what_o auditor_n do_v his_o duty_n in_o this_o respect_n thou_o complain_v of_o the_o dullness_n and_o frowardness_n of_o people_n how_o much_o good_a seed_n fall_v upon_o stony_a ground_n see_v if_o thy_o soul_n may_v not_o be_v charge_v with_o negligence_n herein_o have_v thou_o pray_v more_o earnest_o have_v thou_o seek_v the_o lord_n more_o there_o may_v have_v be_v a_o more_o plentiful_a harvest_n when_o the_o minister_n faithful_a preach_v and_o the_o people_n fervent_a prayer_n go_v together_o then_o satan_n will_v fall_v like_o lightning_n before_o they_o 3._o you_o be_v to_o pray_v for_o their_o qualification_n that_o their_o gift_n and_o grace_n may_v quicken_v be_v quicken_v that_o they_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o boldness_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o power_n not_o fearn_v man_n or_o sinful_o please_v he_o it_o be_v a_o very_a hard_a thing_n to_o be_v qualify_v with_o all_o ability_n and_o grace_n for_o the_o ministerial_a employment_n who_o be_v sufficient_a for_o these_o thing_n and_o the_o work_n we_o have_v to_o do_v be_v unpleasing_a and_o distrustful_a to_o all_o natural_a man_n now_o how_o difficult_o can_v man_n subject_a to_o weakness_n and_o infirmity_n do_v such_o angelical_a work_n thus_o paul_n himself_o who_o profess_v he_o die_v daily_o and_o attain_v to_o such_o a_o measure_n of_o grace_n as_o to_o bid_v other_o follow_v he_o yet_o see_v the_o reason_n eph._n 6._o 20_o 21._o why_o he_o desire_v the_o ephesian_n to_o pray_v for_o he_o viz._n that_o i_o may_v open_v my_o mouth_n bold_o that_o i_o may_v speak_v bold_o as_o i_o ought_v to_o speak_v last_o you_o be_v to_o pray_v even_o for_o their_o salvation_n for_o their_o office_n be_v so_o great_a save_v and_o they_o stand_v accountable_a for_o their_o own_o and_o the_o people_n soul_n their_o salvation_n be_v the_o more_o improbable_a chrysostome_n speak_v very_o sad_o to_o this_o point_n as_o if_o very_a few_o minister_n will_v be_v save_v because_o of_o their_o office_n however_o we_o find_v paul_n aw_v his_o heart_n with_o this_o and_o keep_v down_o his_o body_n use_v all_o mean_n to_o suppress_v the_o very_a begin_n of_o sin_n 1_o cor._n 9_o 17._o jest_n when_o he_o have_v preach_v to_o other_o he_o himself_o may_v be_v a_o castaway_n these_o office_n in_o the_o church_n though_o some_o do_v ambitious_o intrude_v into_o they_o look_v for_o glory_n and_o advantage_n thereby_o yet_o such_o who_o consider_v the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o office_n the_o necessary_a qualification_n and_o due_a administration_n thereof_o do_v tremble_v under_o it_o and_o like_o moses_n and_o jeremy_n be_v afraid_a to_o take_v such_o a_o office_n upon_o they_o but_o man_n who_o spirit_n be_v hardy_a and_o confident_a matter_n not_o the_o danger_n thereof_o as_o you_o see_v in_o great_a high_a building_n how_o mason_n and_o other_o artificer_n can_v stand_v upon_o a_o high_a pinnacle_n and_o their_o head_n never_o be_v giddy_a nor_o have_v any_o fear_n but_o those_o who_o be_v not_o accustom_v to_o that_o way_n do_v exceed_o tremble_v thus_o man_n who_o be_v accustom_v to_o high_a thought_n of_o themselves_o that_o have_v great_a confidence_n of_o their_o own_o ability_n they_o can_v work_v on_o these_o battlement_n and_o their_o head_n never_o go_v round_o whereas_o man_n of_o deep_a modesty_n and_o humility_n be_v afraid_a to_o climb_v so_o high_a use_v of_o admonition_n to_o our_o people_n general_o how_o great_o be_v this_o duty_n neglect_v how_o many_o instead_o of_o pray_v for_o they_o curse_n and_o revile_v they_o but_o no_o wonder_n at_o this_o see_v many_o never_o pray_v for_o themselves_o they_o never_o pray_v nor_o their_o family_n pray_v and_o then_o how_o can_v you_o help_v we_o by_o your_o prayer_n let_v this_o particular_a move_v thou_o that_o by_o prayer_n for_o a_o blessing_n upon_o our_o ministerial_a labour_n thou_o will_v find_v the_o benefit_n redound_v upon_o thy_o own_o soul_n it_o will_v be_v a_o quicken_a ministry_n to_o thou_o whatever_o it_o be_v to_o other_o to_o thou_o it_o will_v be_v soulsaving_a do_v you_o pray_v that_o your_o corporal_a bread_n may_v nourish_v your_o body_n and_o will_v you_o not_o much_o rather_o that_o your_o spiritual_a bread_n may_v be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n to_o you_o all_o lie_v not_o in_o hear_v write_a and_o repeat_v but_o add_v to_o these_o effectual_a prayer_n serm._n lxxxi_o how_o and_o why_o we_o shall_v praise_v god_n for_o all_o his_o mercy_n vouchsafe_v to_o we_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 11._o that_o for_o the_o gift_n bestow_v upon_o we_o by_o mean_n of_o many_o person_n thanks_o may_v be_v give_v by_o many_o on_o our_o behalf_n this_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n contain_v the_o reason_n or_o final_a cause_n of_o his_o request_n for_o the_o unanimous_a public_a paryer_n of_o the_o corinthian_n viz._n that_o as_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o many_o his_o deliverance_n have_v be_v obtain_v so_o also_o by_o they_o public_a praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n may_v be_v give_v to_o god_n in_o his_o behalf_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n be_v very_o plain_a and_o clear_a only_o the_o grammatical_a construction_n have_v cause_v great_a variety_n of_o interpretation_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o clear_v every_o obscurity_n as_o it_o come_v in_o order_n in_o the_o word_n there_o be_v 1._o the_o end_n itself_o and_o that_o be_v that_o thanks_o may_v be_v give_v 2._o the_o object_n matter_n for_o which_o and_o that_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o gift_n viz._n of_o deliverance_n from_o that_o great_a death_n 3._o the_o subject_a by_o who_o this_o gift_n be_v obtain_v and_o that_o be_v by_o many_o 4._o the_o person_n who_o be_v to_o give_v thanks_o and_o that_o be_v also_o many_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o last_o in_o who_o behalf_n and_o that_o on_o our_o behalf_n let_v we_o take_v these_o part_n of_o division_n as_o they_o come_v in_o order_n and_o first_o we_o meet_v with_o the_o final_a cause_n that_o thanks_o may_v be_v give_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v in_o the_o passive_a sense_n and_o therefore_o note_v to_o be_v a_o unusual_a and_o a_o very_a rare_a phrase_n it_o be_v every_o where_o else_o use_v active_o observe_v that_o when_o by_o prayer_n we_o have_v obtain_v mercy_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n by_o praise_n he_o and_o thankfulness_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o to_o god_n prayer_n must_v not_o be_v alone_o when_o it_o have_v prevail_v with_o god_n like_o castor_n and_o pollux_n prayer_n and_o praise_n must_v go_v together_o phil._n 4._o 6._o in_o every_o thing_n by_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n with_o thanksgiving_n let_v your_o request_n be_v make_v know_v to_o god_n here_o you_o see_v supplication_n and_o thanksgiving_n must_v go_v hand_n in_o hand_n it_o be_v no_o less_o god_n command_v to_o praise_v he_o for_o mercy_n then_o to_o pray_v to_o he_o and_o this_o truth_n be_v the_o more_o to_o be_v press_v because_o of_o our_o horrible_a negligence_n herein_o in_o our_o distress_n in_o our_o exigence_n we_o call_v and_o cry_v unto_o the_o lord_n but_o in_o our_o mercy_n and_o deliverance_n we_o forget_v he_o and_o do_v not_o own_o the_o author_n of_o our_o favour_n and_o benefit_n this_o be_v notable_o represent_v in_o that_o history_n luke_n 17._o 17_o 18._o where_o often_o leper_n that_o be_v cleanse_v there_o be_v but_o one_o do_v return_v and_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n by_o thanksgiving_n and_o he_o be_v a_o samaritan_n also_o so_o that_o those_o from_o who_o it_o be_v expect_v do_v neglect_v this_o duty_n we_o see_v by_o this_o how_o backward_o we_o be_v to_o praise_n god_n though_o very_o forward_o and_o earnest_a to_o pray_v to_o he_o in_o our_o misery_n those_o nine_o leper_n that_o regard_v not_o to_o praise_v god_n yet_o they_o lift_v up_o their_o voice_n and_o say_v jesus_n master_n have_v mercy_n on_o we_o and_o thus_o while_o we_o be_v in_o any_o exigence_n than_o our_o heart_n be_v very_o hot_a and_o lively_a then_o we_o cry_v and_o pray_v lord_n hear_v we_o our_o trouble_n be_v great_a but_o if_o the_o lord_n do_v vouchsafe_v his_o mercy_n to_o we_o than_o god_n may_v say_v where_o be_v the_o man_n where_o be_v the_o woman_n that_o be_v cleanse_v that_o be_v heal_v that_o have_v this_o or_o that_o mercy_n and_o deliverance_n
of_o his_o love_n this_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n shall_v exceed_o melt_v thou_o it_o shall_v be_v like_o fire_n that_o assimilate_v every_o thing_n into_o its_o self_n now_o when_o this_o love_n like_v so_o many_o coal_n of_o fire_n be_v in_o thy_o breast_n it_o can_v be_v but_o that_o it_o will_v open_v thy_o heart_n and_o thy_o mouth_n wide_a to_o praise_v the_o lord_n this_o be_v our_o corruption_n we_o love_v the_o mercy_n itself_o but_o not_o god_n that_o give_v it_o we_o delight_v in_o the_o comfort_n that_o be_v bestow_v upon_o we_o but_o do_v not_o rejoice_v in_o god_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v if_o therefore_o thou_o find_v thy_o heart_n freeze_v and_o dull_a thou_o can_v not_o raise_v it_o up_o to_o bless_v god_n meditate_v much_o upon_o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o so_o vile_a and_o unworthy_a 4._o a_o heavenly_a heart_n be_v necessary_a to_o bless_v and_o praise_v god_n the_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v angel_n work_n and_o the_o employment_n of_o the_o glorify_a saint_n to_o all_o eternity_n mindedness_n praise_n be_v comely_a but_o it_o be_v from_o clean_a heart_n and_o clean_a mouth_n we_o need_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o thanksgiving_n as_o well_o as_o to_o prayer_n psal_n 119._o 7._o i_o will_v praise_v thou_o with_o uprightness_n a_o hypocrite_n who_o give_v god_n glory_n by_o his_o mouth_n but_o reproach_v he_o by_o his_o life_n not_o only_o his_o prayer_n but_o his_o praise_n be_v abominable_a hence_o psal_n 50._o ult_n it_o be_v say_v who_o so_o offer_v praise_n glorifi_v god_n but_o lest_o you_o shall_v extend_v this_o to_o every_o man_n see_v what_o be_v add_v and_o who_o so_o order_v his_o conversation_n aright_o etc._n etc._n if_o a_o man_n praise_n god_n in_o never_o so_o melodious_a a_o tune_n but_o then_o there_o be_v no_o harmony_n nor_o order_n in_o his_o life_n this_o be_v a_o reproach_n to_o god_n we_o may_v benedicere_fw-la linguâ_fw-la when_o we_o do_v maledicere_fw-la vitâ_fw-la there_o be_v a_o real_a praise_v of_o god_n by_o exercise_v holiness_n as_o well_o as_o verbal_a by_o the_o tongue_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n levit._n 7._o 10._o whosoever_o do_v eat_v thereof_o that_o have_v uncleanness_n upon_o he_o he_o be_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o by_o this_o be_v typify_v how_o unpleasing_a the_o praise_n of_o such_o be_v who_o live_v in_o their_o sin_n it_o be_v as_o uncomely_a as_o a_o pearl_n in_o the_o swine_n mouth_n it_o be_v true_a god_n do_v great_o condescend_v to_o accept_v of_o our_o praise_n for_o he_o have_v million_o and_o million_o of_o angel_n continual_o praise_v of_o he_o who_o have_v not_o the_o least_o blemish_n or_o spot_n upon_o they_o but_o yet_o he_o be_v please_v to_o take_v this_o sacrifice_n at_o our_o hand_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n levit._n 7._o 13._o there_o be_v leaven_n allow_v junius_n observe_v that_o whereas_o god_n allow_v leaven_n in_o no_o other_o sacrifice_n though_o bonfrerius_n think_v otherwise_o and_o that_o leaven_n only_o be_v forbid_v so_o far_o as_o to_o be_v offer_v but_o the_o common_a opinion_n be_v otherwise_o why_o then_o be_v leaven_n allow_v only_o in_o this_o sacrifice_n hereby_o to_o teach_v we_o say_v junius_n that_o there_o be_v corruption_n and_o sinfulness_n in_o our_o best_a action_n and_o that_o we_o need_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o be_v accept_v of_o even_o then_o in_o our_o praise_n there_o be_v matter_n of_o humiliation_n there_o be_v some_o bitterness_n yet_o through_o christ_n we_o be_v accept_v of_o but_o though_o all_o pollution_n can_v be_v purge_v out_o yet_o he_o that_o live_v in_o a_o wilful_a way_n of_o sin_v can_v give_v glory_n to_o god_n acceptable_o 5._o he_o that_o praise_v god_n must_v do_v it_o voluntary_o ready_o cheerful_o otherwise_o chearfulnes_n it_o be_v not_o worthy_a the_o name_n of_o praise_n as_o god_n love_v a_o cheerful_a giver_n so_o especial_o a_o thanksgiver_n to_o praise_v god_n with_o a_o heavy_a lumpish_a unwilling_a heart_n be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o the_o duty_n in_o thy_o hand_n it_o be_v as_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v a_o black_a sun_n or_o a_o cold_a fire_n leu._n 22._o 29_o 30._o the_o law_n about_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n be_v that_o when_o they_o offer_v it_o it_o must_v be_v at_o their_o own_o will_n which_o argue_v the_o readiness_n and_o willingness_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o we_o at_o that_o time_n and_o then_o on_o the_o same_o day_n it_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v they_o be_v to_o eat_v it_o all_o up_o to_o leave_v none_o till_o the_o morrow_n whereas_o in_o other_o sacrifice_n they_o may_v and_o this_o be_v to_o show_v that_o he_o who_o will_v give_v thanks_o to_o god_n he_o must_v do_v it_o speedy_o he_o must_v not_o delay_v or_o put_v off_o so_o that_o by_o this_o you_o see_v a_o praise_a frame_n of_o heart_n require_v a_o most_o curious_a exact_a temperature_n it_o be_v that_o apothecary_n ointment_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o highpriest_n only_o make_v up_o of_o choice_a ingredient_n a_o sinful_a heart_n can_v praise_v god_n and_o a_o worldly_a heart_n can_v praise_v god_n that_o want_v wheel_n to_o its_o chariot_n wing_n to_o fly_v up_o with_o the_o lark_n lift_v herself_o off_o from_o the_o earth_n ere_o she_o begin_v to_o sing_v and_o then_o a_o sorrowful_a deject_a heart_n that_o can_v praise_v god_n no_o more_o than_o a_o string_n in_o the_o instrument_n too_o much_o wet_v can_v cause_v a_o melodious_a sound_n in_o the_o next_o place_n let_v we_o consider_v the_o encouragement_n thereunto_o and_o it_o 1._o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o duty_n be_v apparent_a in_o that_o the_o heart_n be_v natural_o so_o froward_a and_o opposite_a to_o it_o it_o may_v cause_v some_o wonder_n why_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v slow_a to_o this_o work_n and_o common_o all_o be_v more_o in_o petition_n then_o in_o thanksgiving_n hence_o david_n psal_n 103._o though_o a_o man_n more_o exercise_v in_o this_o service_n than_o any_o one_o call_v therefore_o the_o sweet_a singer_n of_o israel_n and_o who_o be_v not_o content_v himself_o to_o praise_n god_n but_o call_v upon_o all_o the_o creature_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n yea_o the_o most_o inconsiderable_a one_o to_o praise_n god_n yet_o he_o find_v some_o listlesness_n and_o slothfulness_n in_o himself_o see_v therefore_o how_o he_o prepare_v and_o stir_v up_o himself_o as_o the_o cock_n do_v before_o his_o crow_n bless_v the_o lord_n o_o my_o soul_n and_o let_v all_o within_o thou_o praise_v his_o holy_a name_n his_o heart_n do_v need_n call_v upon_o his_o soul_n must_v be_v move_v and_o quicknnd_v ere_o it_o do_v his_o duty_n conclude_v then_o certain_o this_o duty_n be_v most_o excellent_a it_o be_v very_o please_v to_o god_n because_o i_o be_o so_o backward_o i_o be_o never_o scarce_o in_o a_o praise_a temper_n one_o clog_n or_o other_o be_v upon_o i_o 2._o consider_v that_o the_o scripture_n vouchsafe_v it_o the_o name_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n heb._n 13._o 15._o sacrifice_n where_o you_o have_v the_o duty_n command_v the_o time_n when_o and_o the_o manner_n how_o let_v we_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n to_o god_n and_o that_o continual_o as_o david_n say_v seven_o time_n a_o day_n will_v i_o praise_v thou_o ps_n 119._o 164._o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o every_o sacrifice_n must_v have_v fire_n there_o must_v be_v zeal_n and_o fervency_n but_o by_o who_o must_v we_o offer_v it_o it_o be_v by_o christ_n so_o that_o he_o be_v the_o altar_n upon_o which_o the_o incense_n of_o prayer_n and_o praise_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n by_o he_o we_o have_v both_o power_n and_o acceptance_n to_o praise_n god_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v call_v priest_n and_o they_o have_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n continual_o to_o offer_v up_o unto_o god_n hence_o to_o praise_n god_n be_v express_v host_n 14._o 2._o by_o render_v the_o calf_n of_o our_o lip_n 3._o it_o be_v a_o debt_n that_o be_v due_a to_o god_n he_o that_o have_v command_v thou_o to_o pray_v to_o he_o have_v also_o enjoin_v thou_o to_o praise_v he_o yea_o this_o be_v all_o that_o god_n look_v for_o thou_o god_n can_v not_o satisfy_v god_n for_o thy_o sin_n commit_v thou_o be_v not_o able_a to_o repair_v his_o honour_n and_o glory_n shall_v thou_o be_v damn_v a_o thousand_o time_n over_o yet_o it_o can_v not_o recompense_v to_o god_n according_a to_o what_o thou_o have_v dishonour_v he_o therefore_o see_v this_o be_v the_o only_a debt_n god_n oblige_v unto_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o be_v more_o diligent_a in_o it_o if_o he_o have_v require_v some_o great_a service_n of_o we_o and_o more_o terrible_a to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n ought_v
we_o not_o to_o have_v do_v it_o 4._o one_o chief_a motive_n which_o be_v to_o put_v we_o upon_o all_o holy_a obedience_n unto_o god_n be_v thankfulness_n there_o be_v two_o great_a and_o principal_a part_n of_o divinity_n the_o one_o be_v de_fw-fr gratià_fw-la thankfulness_n dei_fw-la of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o other_o de_fw-fr gratitudine_fw-la hominis_fw-la of_o man_n thankfulness_n there_o be_v indeed_o several_a reason_n why_o we_o be_v command_v to_o abound_v in_o holy_a work_n but_o one_o of_o they_o be_v thereby_o to_o testify_v our_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n that_o though_o we_o can_v do_v anything_o to_o merit_v at_o his_o hand_n though_o christ_n as_o mediator_n have_v purchase_v all_o spiritual_a privilege_n so_o that_o we_o can_v do_v any_o holy_a duty_n as_o a_o cause_n to_o procure_v they_o yet_o to_o manifest_v our_o thankfulness_n to_o god_n we_o be_v ready_a with_o delight_n to_o do_v his_o will_n 5._o a_o thanksgiving_n heart_n be_v the_o most_o proper_a and_o suitable_a disposition_n to_o the_o gospel_n dispensation_n wherein_o grace_n do_v in_o so_o many_o wonderful_a effect_n demonstrate_v itself_o now_o dispensation_n praise_n do_v proper_o answer_v to_o free_a grace_n and_o love_n eph._n 1._o 16._o god_n predestination_n and_o his_o adoption_n it_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n these_o new_a song_n shall_v always_o be_v in_o our_o mouth_n and_o again_o v_o 12._o that_o we_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glory_n so_o that_o if_o you_o say_v why_o do_v god_n predestine_v thou_o it_o be_v to_o his_o praise_n why_o do_v he_o convert_v it_o be_v to_o his_o praise_n thus_o he_o adopt_v he_o justify_v that_o we_o may_v be_v only_o to_o his_o praise_n thus_o 1_o pet._n 2._o 9_o we_o be_v a_o choose_a generation_n a_o peculiar_a people_n that_o we_o shall_v show_v forth_o his_o praise_n the_o child_n then_o of_o free_a grace_n must_v be_v the_o child_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n unto_o god_n every_o power_n of_o the_o soul_n every_o part_n of_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v a_o tongue_n as_o it_o be_v to_o glorify_v god_n be_v we_o more_o affect_v with_o the_o depth_n breadth_n and_o length_n of_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v be_v more_o abound_v in_o this_o duty_n of_o blessing_n god_n david_n call_v his_o tongue_n his_o glory_n though_o some_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o soul_n because_o of_o this_o work_n last_o if_o we_o praise_v not_o god_n when_o mercy_n be_v obtain_v by_o prayer_n it_o discover_v a_o rot_a and_o insincere_a heart_n it_o argue_v thou_o never_o do_v pray_v for_o mercy_n upon_o right_a heart_n ground_n to_o glorify_v god_n to_o be_v thereby_o more_o instrumental_a in_o our_o service_n of_o he_o but_o only_o for_o our_o own_o end_n and_o our_o own_o necessity_n for_o he_o that_o pray_v spiritual_o will_v praise_v god_n cheerful_o he_o will_v more_o rejoice_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n because_o god_n hear_v his_o prayer_n than_o the_o benefit_n obtain_v if_o then_o thou_o neglecte_v this_o duty_n of_o thanksgiving_n thou_o discover_v a_o profane_a earthly_a heart_n that_o thou_o prefer_v the_o mercy_n desire_v above_o the_o glory_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v be_v just_a with_o god_n never_o to_o hear_v thy_o prayer_n more_o for_o thankfulness_n be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o preserve_v mercy_n and_o to_o have_v more_o add_v serm._n lxxxii_o god_n be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o our_o mercy_n they_o be_v his_o gift_n and_o why_o 2_o cor._n i._o ii_o that_o for_o the_o gift_n bestow_v upon_o we_o the_o second_o part_n in_o order_n to_o be_v treat_v of_o be_v the_o object_n matter_n for_o which_o or_o that_o for_o which_o paul_n will_v have_v solemn_a thanksgiving_n after_o such_o solemn_a prayer_n the_o gift_n bestow_v upon_o we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o temporal_a deliverance_n he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o it_o come_v from_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n not_o from_o any_o merit_n or_o desert_n in_o paul_n some_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o if_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v apply_v only_o to_o the_o common_a gift_n of_o god_n spirit_n especial_o those_o which_o divine_v call_v dona_fw-la ministrantia_fw-la gift_n of_o service_n and_o the_o school_n gratiae_n gratis_o datae_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o a_o special_a manner_n or_o to_o the_o effect_n thereof_o which_o be_v inherent_a grace_n in_o the_o soul_n these_o grace_n be_v call_v dona_n sanctificantia_fw-la gift_n that_o do_v true_o sanctify_v those_o that_o have_v they_o the_o school_n false_o call_v they_o gratiae_n gratum_fw-la facientes_fw-la but_o though_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v often_o apply_v to_o such_o common_a spiritual_a gift_n as_o 1_o cor._n 12._o &_o alibi_fw-la yet_o sometime_o we_o must_v thereby_o understand_v sanctify_v grace_n and_o justify_v grace_n rom._n 5._o 16._o rom._n 11._o 28._o and_o indeed_o if_o we_o will_v make_v any_o difference_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v this_o rather_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o effect_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o cause_n as_o rom._n 12._o 6._o have_v gift_n according_a to_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v give_v to_o we_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v general_o translate_v gift_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n so_o favorinus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o that_o what_o the_o scripture_n other_o where_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d jac._n 1._o 17._o act._n 8._o 21._o psal_n 1._o 17._o it_o may_v be_v the_o same_o with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d only_o it_o do_v proper_o signify_v such_o a_o gift_n as_o make_v to_o the_o public_a and_o spiritual_a advantage_n of_o the_o church_n only_o in_o this_o text_n it_o may_v have_v the_o general_a signification_n and_o the_o special_a the_o general_n paul_n deliverance_n be_v a_o temporal_a gift_n it_o be_v a_o mercy_n in_o these_o outward_a thing_n a_o preservation_n from_o death_n either_o violent_a as_o the_o common_a exposition_n you_o hear_v be_v or_o from_o natural_a for_o baldwin_n the_o lutheran_n expositor_n think_v it_o may_v well_o enough_o be_v understand_v of_o some_o desperate_a sickness_n paul_n be_v afflict_v with_o howsoever_o this_o outward_a mercy_n of_o preservation_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o it_o may_v have_v also_o the_o special_a signification_n of_o a_o paul_n life_n and_o preservation_n be_v a_o gift_n in_o this_o sense_n for_o hereby_o his_o ministerial_a labour_n may_v be_v more_o successful_a but_o this_o latter_a consideration_n will_v come_v in_o in_o the_o close_a of_o this_o verse_n let_v we_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o general_a one_o paul_n life_n and_o preservation_n it_o be_v a_o gift_n from_o whence_o observe_v god_n that_o not_o only_o spiritual_a mercy_n which_o be_v above_o natural_a cause_n but_o even_o our_o ordinary_a temporal_a enjoyment_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o god_n gift_n only_o to_o sanctify_v we_o to_o justify_v we_o but_o to_o give_v we_o our_o health_n our_o food_n our_o preservation_n so_o that_o we_o live_v whole_o upon_o the_o mere_a bounty_n of_o god_n we_o be_v all_o so_o many_o almes-man_n the_o world_n be_v a_o almshouse_n man_n do_v not_o or_o can_v obtain_v the_o least_o mercy_n with_o his_o own_o wisdom_n and_o power_n without_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n this_o be_v a_o necessary_a truth_n for_o we_o look_v more_o upon_o these_o ordinary_a mercy_n as_o the_o fruit_n of_o our_o own_o labour_n than_o as_o god_n mere_a free_a gift_n the_o apostle_n jam._n 1._o 17._o say_v every_o good_a gift_n be_v from_o god_n every_o gift_n whether_o natural_a or_o supernatural_a what_o have_v we_o that_o we_o have_v not_o receive_v be_v true_a both_o in_o nature_n and_o grace_n for_o although_o in_o the_o sense_n that_o pelagian_n do_v it_o be_v very_o erroneous_a to_o confound_v creation_n and_o nature_n with_o grace_n yet_o in_o this_o respect_n we_o may_v say_v that_o creation_n and_o preservation_n be_v of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n because_o he_o communicate_v of_o his_o goodness_n to_o the_o creature_n only_o from_o his_o mere_a favour_n but_o to_o speak_v after_o the_o scripture-language_n only_o those_o spiritual_a favour_n and_o church-priviledge_n which_o conduce_v to_o eternal_a blessedness_n be_v call_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n so_o that_o health_n life_n and_o other_o mercy_n though_o they_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n yet_o be_v not_o call_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n however_o
they_o both_o agree_v in_o this_o our_o temporal_a mercy_n and_o spiritual_a mercy_n come_v from_o god_n the_o fountain_n of_o they_o though_o spiritual_a mercy_n have_v a_o more_o special_a and_o restrain_a consideration_n to_o affect_v we_o with_o humility_n and_o thankfulness_n in_o this_o point_n consider_v these_o particular_n first_o that_o even_o those_o mercy_n which_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o natural_a cause_n yet_o god_n they_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n shall_v he_o withdraw_v his_o concourse_n no_o creature_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v its_o useful_a operation_n the_o fire_n will_v not_o warm_v we_o our_o bread_n will_v not_o nourish_v we_o our_o raiment_n will_v not_o comfort_v we_o against_o the_o cold_a so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o bless_v god_n that_o we_o have_v such_o creature_n as_o these_o be_v but_o that_o they_o be_v useful_a we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o praise_n god_n that_o we_o have_v bread_n and_o raiment_n but_o that_o these_o thing_n can_v do_v their_o office_n for_o in_o these_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a mercy_n 1._o that_o god_n do_v provide_v they_o for_o we_o 2._o that_o when_o they_o be_v provide_v they_o put_v forth_o their_o usefulness_n thus_o our_o saviour_n allege_v out_o of_o deuteronomy_n mat._n 4._o 4._o thou_o shall_v not_o live_v by_o bread_n only_o but_o by_o every_o word_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o god_n mouth_n if_o god_n give_v not_o a_o word_n of_o blessing_n our_o bread_n can_v nourish_v we_o hence_o we_o be_v also_o say_v in_o god_n to_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v act._n 17._o 28._o although_o therefore_o there_o be_v natural_a cause_n and_o these_o do_v produce_v their_o effect_n from_o a_o natural_a necessity_n yet_o because_o they_o be_v second_o cause_n they_o do_v therefore_o depend_v upon_o god_n the_o chief_a and_o supreme_a cause_n both_o in_o esse_fw-la and_o operari_fw-la in_o their_o be_v and_o operation_n thus_o the_o fire_n will_v not_o burn_v if_o god_n shall_v not_o give_v concourse_n thereunto_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o three_o worthy_n and_o the_o reason_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o dominican_n though_o the_o jesuit_n do_v not_o well_o relish_v it_o be_v that_o every_o second_o cause_n though_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a agent_n and_o so_o determine_v to_o operation_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v in_o a_o potentiality_n to_o work_v it_o have_v a_o potentia_fw-la a_o power_n this_o must_v be_v reduce_v to_o act_v by_o that_o which_o be_v the_o pure_a and_o chief_a act_n viz._n god_n himself_o so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o god_n to_o give_v a_o natural_a power_n to_o produce_v such_o a_o effect_n unless_o he_o also_o actuate_v that_o power_n and_o go_v along_o with_o it_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n and_o when_o believe_v will_v draw_v off_o our_o eye_n from_o the_o creature_n more_o so_o as_o to_o set_v they_o upon_o god_n and_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o more_o in_o all_o thing_n this_o than_o thou_o be_v to_o know_v that_o even_o those_o natural_a comfort_n which_o flow_v from_o natural_a cause_n so_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o miracle_n if_o they_o shall_v not_o produce_v they_o be_v yet_o from_o the_o goodness_n and_o bounty_n of_o god_n now_o how_o often_o be_v we_o unthankful_a for_o these_o mercy_n we_o do_v not_o bless_v god_n for_o the_o gift_n of_o see_v the_o gift_n of_o hear_v the_o gift_n of_o walk_v second_o those_o comfort_n which_o flow_v from_o moral_a cause_n these_o also_o be_v to_o god_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n a_o man_n that_o be_v diligent_a in_o his_o place_n he_o may_v grow_v to_o be_v rich_a the_o strong_a usual_o prevail_v in_o battle_n the_o swift_a they_o overcome_v in_o a_o race_n yet_o where_o these_o moral_a cause_n be_v the_o effect_n be_v god_n gift_n therefore_o solomon_n observe_v that_o the_o clean_a contrary_n fall_v out_o sometime_o eccles_n 9_o 11._o that_o the_o battle_n be_v not_o to_o the_o strong_a nor_o the_o race_n to_o the_o swift_a how_o many_o be_v diligent_a careful_a and_o wise_a in_o their_o place_n and_o yet_o can_v obtain_v wealth_n in_o this_o world_n so_o that_o even_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v bring_v about_o by_o the_o mean_n that_o we_o use_v we_o must_v acknowledge_v they_o be_v god_n gift_n if_o his_o blessing_n be_v not_o upon_o the_o mean_n they_o be_v frustrate_v thus_o the_o lord_n do_v instruct_v israel_n against_o any_o pride_n and_o confidence_n that_o may_v arise_v as_o if_o their_o power_n and_o strength_n do_v make_v they_o rich_a for_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n say_v he_o that_o give_v thou_o power_n to_o get_v wealth_n deut._n 8._o 18._o you_o see_v whatsoever_o wisdom_n diligence_n and_o good_a husbandry_n we_o use_v yet_o if_o any_o thing_n come_v thereby_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n you_o have_v a_o most_o significant_a place_n for_o this_o truth_n hag._n 1._o 6._o where_o the_o prophet_n show_v whatever_o we_o eat_v or_o drink_v or_o take_v care_n and_o labour_v about_o the_o lord_n can_v blast_v it_o and_o make_v it_o come_v to_o nothing_o you_o eat_v but_o have_v not_o enough_o you_o clothe_v you_o but_o there_o be_v none_o warm_a and_o he_o that_o earn_v wage_n it_o be_v to_o put_v in_o a_o bag_n with_o hole_n do_v not_o this_o text_n evident_o proclaim_v that_o the_o labourer_n in_o his_o wage_n the_o tradesman_n in_o his_o buy_n and_o sell_v the_o husbandman_n in_o his_o plow_a and_o sow_v can_v add_v one_o farthing_n to_o his_o efface_n unless_o the_o lord_n bless_v it_o three_o all_o those_o comfort_n we_o have_v and_o gift_n either_o to_o relieve_v or_o refresh_v god_n we_o that_o we_o have_v from_o other_o we_o be_v to_o account_v they_o god_n gift_n rather_o than_o man_n if_o any_o man_n help_v thou_o in_o thy_o necessity_n if_o any_o man_n prefer_v and_o honour_v thou_o thou_o be_v indeed_o to_o be_v thankful_a unto_o man_n that_o be_v benefactor_n but_o more_o to_o god_n who_o incline_v their_o heart_n to_o thou_o yet_o how_o little_a be_v this_o thought_n upon_o when_o we_o receive_v courtesy_n from_o man_n kindness_n from_o man_n we_o look_v upon_o these_o alone_a whereas_o if_o god_n do_v not_o move_v their_o heart_n thou_o will_v have_v find_v no_o relief_n from_o they_o it_o be_v thus_o with_o joseph_n he_o be_v cast_v into_o prison_n upon_o the_o king_n displeasure_n in_o all_o outward_a appearance_n the_o gaoler_n will_v have_v use_v he_o with_o all_o cruelty_n yet_o say_v the_o text_n genes_n 39_o 21._o god_n show_v mercy_n to_o joseph_n and_o give_v he_o favour_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o prison_n the_o lord_n have_v a_o command_n over_o man_n heart_n he_o make_v they_o merciful_a and_o free_a to_o some_o and_o again_o he_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o some_o man_n against_o other_o now_o we_o poor_a creature_n look_v only_o upon_o man_n as_o if_o they_o do_v all_o as_o if_o all_o be_v in_o their_o power_n but_o as_o god_n command_v laban_n who_o be_v in_o a_o rage_n against_o jacob_n not_o to_o speak_v a_o ill_a word_n against_o he_o so_o also_o do_v the_o lord_n daily_o he_o make_v man_n thy_o friend_n and_o he_o raise_v they_o up_o to_o be_v foe_n we_o have_v likewise_o a_o notable_a instance_n exod._n 12._o 36._o when_o the_o israelite_n be_v upon_o their_o departure_n the_o egyptian_n though_o their_o cruel_a enemy_n who_o hate_v and_o oppress_v they_o yet_o it_o be_v say_v the_o lord_n give_v they_o favour_n in_o their_o eye_n that_o they_o lend_v they_o even_o jewel_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n on_o the_o contrary_a when_o god_n be_v provoke_v it_o be_v say_v psalm_n 105._o he_o turn_v their_o heart_n to_o his_o people_n as_o david_n then_o say_v when_o shimei_n revile_v he_o bitter_o the_o lord_n have_v bid_v he_o so_o when_o thou_o receive_v any_o favour_n any_o mercy_n from_o man_n look_v up_o high_o than_o man_n the_o lord_n have_v bid_v he_o man_n gift_n be_v much_o rather_o god_n gift_n yea_o even_a what_o those_o do_v for_o we_o who_o be_v in_o the_o most_o endear_a relation_n and_o so_o have_v principle_n of_o nature_n to_o instigate_v they_o to_o help_v thou_o yet_o thou_o be_v to_o look_v upon_o all_o their_o care_n and_o love_n as_o god_n gift_n to_o thou_o if_o thy_o parent_n have_v take_v care_n of_o thou_o if_o they_o have_v provide_v for_o thou_o if_o they_o have_v look_v to_o thou_o though_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n and_o they_o will_v have_v be_v unnatural_a if_o they_o have_v do_v otherwise_o yet_o do_v thou_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o god_n gift_n to_o thou_o how_o many_o parent_n be_v give_v up_o to_o unnatural_a affection_n how_o many_o love_n their_o lust_n and_o their_o whore_n more_o than_o their_o child_n so_o that_o
that_o be_v not_o probable_a it_o be_v then_o for_o that_o deliverance_n vouchsafe_v to_o paul_n that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v thankful_a and_o the_o reason_n be_v clear_a because_o mercy_n vouchsafe_v to_o paul_n be_v their_o mercy_n also_o from_o whence_o observe_v that_o the_o mercy_n vouchsafe_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n be_v mercy_n to_o be_v account_v the_o church_n mercy_n what_o advantage_n come_v to_o the_o shepherd_n it_o redound_v to_o the_o sheep_n the_o rain_n that_o fall_v upon_o the_o mountain_n descend_v to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o valley_n your_o life_n your_o comfort_n be_v bind_v up_o in_o they_o paul_n indeed_o say_v we_o live_v if_o you_o stand_v fast_o it_o be_v his_o comfort_n his_o life_n to_o see_v they_o preserve_v from_o apostasy_n by_o persecution_n 1_o thess_n 3._o 8._o and_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o church_n may_v say_v of_o her_o guide_n we_o stand_v fast_o if_o you_o live_v as_o mercy_n to_o the_o public_a magistrate_n be_v to_o be_v account_v the_o people_n mercy_n so_o the_o mercy_n of_o church-officer_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v the_o church_n if_o the_o pilot_n be_v in_o danger_n it_o can_v never_o be_v well_o with_o the_o ship_n when_o elijah_n be_v take_v away_o the_o cry_n be_v the_o chariot_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o horseman_n thereof_o so_o great_a a_o mercy_n be_v one_o prophet_n account_v to_o be_v we_o have_v a_o notable_a instance_n of_o the_o holy_a care_n of_o the_o philippian_n about_o their_o pastor_n epaphroditus_n phil._n 2._o 26_o 27._o when_o he_o be_v sick_a unto_o death_n how_o heavy_o do_v they_o lie_v it_o to_o heart_n insomuch_o that_o epaphroditus_n be_v exceed_o grieve_v that_o they_o have_v hear_v of_o his_o be_v sick_a he_o know_v it_o will_v so_o great_o afflict_v they_o yea_o paul_n account_v it_o a_o mercy_n to_o he_o also_o that_o god_n do_v heal_v he_o for_o though_o paul_n do_v recover_v many_o out_o of_o their_o disease_n yet_o this_o gift_n be_v not_o when_o they_o please_v and_o it_o be_v least_o of_o all_o extend_a to_o those_o that_o be_v of_o their_o intimate_a acquaintance_n but_o rather_o to_o such_o as_o be_v bring_v to_o they_o that_o so_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o miracle_n may_v be_v more_o manifest_v use_v of_o instruction_n how_o happy_a and_o bless_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v when_o people_n be_v able_a to_o do_v their_o duty_n herein_o to_o look_v upon_o all_o the_o favour_n and_o good_a providence_n of_o god_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o their_o own_o mercy_n their_o health_n encouragement_n preservation_n as_o their_o own_o but_o how_o bitter_o do_v satan_n fill_v the_o heart_n of_o some_o man_n who_o out_o of_o love_n to_o their_o lust_n and_o their_o error_n look_v upon_o their_o godly_a guide_n as_o the_o great_a burden_n and_o will_v hearty_o rejoice_v in_o any_o evil_n that_o shall_v befall_v they_o this_o be_v clean_a contrary_n to_o those_o gracious_a love_a and_o endear_a affection_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o people_n to_o their_o spiritual_a shepherd_n serm._n lxxxiv_o of_o our_o glory_v and_o rejoice_v in_o our_o gift_n and_o grace_n why_o and_o how_o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o how_o not_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 12._o for_o our_o rejoice_v be_v this_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n that_o in_o simplicity_n and_o godly_a sincerity_n not_o with_o fleshly_a wisdom_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o have_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o the_o world_n and_o more_o abundant_o to_o youward_n this_o verse_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o raciocinative_a particular_a or_o note_n of_o inference_n for_o be_v bring_v in_o as_o a_o reason_n of_o something_o which_o go_v before_o but_o interpreter_n do_v differ_v about_o the_o coherence_n thereof_o some_o make_v this_o to_o be_v a_o reason_n of_o that_o hope_n and_o trust_v he_o former_o speak_v of_o which_o he_o have_v in_o god_n though_o he_o do_v trust_v in_o god_n mercy_n yet_o not_o in_o they_o alone_o but_o in_o his_o own_o endeavour_n also_o hence_o aquinas_n from_o this_o say_v that_o hope_n do_v arise_v from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o man_n merit_n but_o this_o do_v not_o consist_v with_o scripture_n other_o do_v make_v it_o part_n of_o his_o apologetical_a narration_n defend_v himself_o as_o against_o that_o crime_n of_o inconstancy_n and_o levity_n which_o be_v cast_v upon_o he_o because_o of_o his_o promise_n to_o come_v to_o they_o which_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o and_o therefore_o they_o think_v these_o word_n look_v backward_o and_o not_o forward_o calvin_n and_o other_o which_o be_v most_o probable_a refer_v it_o to_o the_o word_n immediate_o precede_v viz._n their_o prayer_n and_o praise_n to_o god_n in_o his_o behalf_n this_o be_v give_v as_o a_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v thus_o tender_a about_o he_o because_o he_o have_v obtain_v grace_n to_o be_v faithful_a he_o have_v not_o seek_v himself_o or_o his_o own_o glory_n he_o have_v not_o walk_v in_o hypocrisy_n and_o fraud_n but_o have_v be_v keep_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o all_o sincerity_n in_o his_o conversation_n in_o the_o world_n not_o only_o at_o corinth_n but_o every_o where_o else_o now_o it_o be_v a_o great_a motive_n and_o encouragement_n to_o pray_v for_o such_o the_o apostle_n use_v this_o argument_n heb._n 13._o 18._o pray_v for_o we_o for_o we_o trust_v we_o have_v a_o good_a conscience_n in_o all_o thing_n the_o connexion_n then_o be_v thus_o discover_v we_o come_v to_o the_o text_n absolute_o consider_v and_o therein_o we_o may_v consider_v 1._o the_o ground_n and_o reason_n itself_o 2._o that_o which_o be_v affirm_v and_o predicate_v of_o it_o and_o this_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o forepart_n of_o the_o verse_n and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v begin_v with_o it_o the_o word_n be_v this_o be_v our_o rejoice_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v render_v by_o most_o our_o glory_n or_o our_o boast_n the_o apostle_n do_v very_o often_o use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o seem_v to_o come_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o neck_n and_o so_o be_v a_o metaphor_n signify_v for_o the_o most_o part_n pride_n and_o loftiness_n take_v from_o horse_n who_o pride_n will_v be_v discover_v by_o their_o neck_n and_o therefore_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o as_o homer_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n it_o be_v take_v in_o a_o ill_a sense_n hence_o hesychius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o with_o budaeus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o proud_a boaster_n and_o bragger_n but_o with_o paul_n it_o be_v use_v sometime_o in_o a_o good_a sense_n as_o here_o for_o the_o word_n be_v use_v in_o a_o threefold_a sense_n gradual_a to_o one_o another_o 1._o to_o rest_v and_o rely_v upon_o a_o thing_n 2._o from_o thence_o to_o rejoice_v and_o to_o be_v glad_a in_o it_o 3._o from_o thence_o to_o declare_v and_o publish_v this_o with_o boast_v now_o though_o paul_n do_v not_o put_v confidence_n and_o trust_n in_o his_o good_a and_o sincere_a conscience_n yet_o from_o the_o perceive_v of_o that_o he_o do_v rejoice_v whereas_o then_o we_o see_v paul_n rejoice_v and_o glory_v from_o the_o testimony_n and_o evidence_n of_o that_o grace_n he_o have_v in_o he_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o a_o holy_a glory_v and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o perceive_v in_o we_o lawful_a be_v allow_v and_o lawful_a i_o say_v a_o holy_a glory_v for_o the_o heart_n may_v quick_o degenerate_v into_o a_o proud_a sinful_a boast_n therefore_o this_o truth_n must_v be_v wary_o bound_v so_o that_o the_o deject_a and_o tempt_v soul_n may_v be_v quicken_v to_o its_o duty_n of_o comfort_n and_o not_o to_o deny_v the_o work_n of_o grace_n that_o it_o may_v feel_v and_o the_o proud_a pharisaical_a spirit_n may_v be_v debase_v the_o valley_n must_v be_v exalt_v and_o the_o mountain_n make_v low_a it_o be_v true_a indeed_o we_o have_v the_o scripture_n say_v let_v he_o that_o glori_v glory_n in_o the_o lord_n let_v not_o the_o wise_a man_n glory_n in_o his_o wisdom_n 1_o cor._n 1._o 31_o and_o if_o abraham_n have_v not_o wherewith_o to_o glory_v who_o can_v have_v yea_o the_o apostle_n say_v express_o rom._n 3._o 27._o that_o glory_v be_v exclude_v by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o what_o sense_n this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v will_v appear_v when_o we_o come_v to_o manifest_v how_o many_o way_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o glory_n or_o to_o rejoice_v no_o not_o in_o our_o gift_n and_o grace_n only_o this_o text_n make_v it_o plain_a that_o in_o some_o sense_n our_o grace_n may_v be_v matter_n
22._o how_o miserable_a be_v such_o a_o people_n who_o rejoice_v in_o the_o great_a judgement_n that_o can_v befall_v they_o rejoice_v not_o in_o this_o but_o weep_v and_o mourn_v rather_o when_o those_o who_o shall_v deal_v faithful_o with_o thou_o do_v flatter_v and_o seduce_v thou_o daub_v with_o untempered_a mortar_n for_o god_n will_v destroy_v both_o such_o prophet_n and_o such_o a_o people_n three_o we_o be_v to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o spiritual_a success_n and_o prosperity_n of_o their_o work_n minister_n it_o be_v very_o sad_a to_o hear_v those_o complaint_n in_o the_o scripture_n who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n and_o all_o the_o day_n long_o have_v we_o stretch_v out_o our_o hand_n unto_o a_o rebellious_a people_n to_o have_v much_o rain_n fall_v upon_o the_o ground_n and_o nothing_o but_o briar_n and_o thorn_n come_v up_o thereupon_o when_o therefore_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o god_n make_v the_o ministry_n a_o savour_n of_o life_n and_o not_o of_o death_n unto_o many_o this_o aught_o great_o to_o rejoice_v we_o when_o thou_o find_v it_o to_o be_v a_o mighty_a word_n upon_o thy_o own_o heart_n or_o upon_o the_o heart_n of_o other_o wherein_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v exceed_o glad_a for_o be_v there_o any_o great_a mercy_n can_v befall_v thou_o than_o to_o have_v the_o word_n thus_o a_o convert_n and_o save_v word_n to_o thou_o thou_o may_v admire_v thy_o pleasure_n thy_o profit_n thy_o lust_n and_o judge_v they_o sweet_a but_o know_v that_o the_o save_v efficacy_n of_o the_o ministry_n upon_o thy_o soul_n will_v be_v the_o blessedness_n indeed_o that_o shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o and_o therefore_o when_o you_o hear_v man_n praise_v a_o ministry_n admire_v that_o examine_v what_o be_v the_o spiritual_a good_a they_o have_v find_v thereby_o what_o reformation_n what_o a_o change_n have_v it_o make_v the_o apostle_n tell_v these_o very_a corinthian_n 1_o cor._n 5._o 6._o that_o their_o glory_v be_v not_o good_a why_o so_o because_o they_o do_v not_o purge_v out_o the_o old_a leaven_n they_o do_v not_o cast_v out_o that_o wicked_a person_n from_o among_o they_o now_o all_o this_o while_n they_o glory_v in_o their_o able_a teacher_n they_o magnify_v the_o wisdom_n and_o eloquence_n of_o many_o that_o preach_v among_o they_o but_o say_v he_o your_o glory_v be_v not_o good_a where_o be_v the_o holy_a order_n the_o godly_a discipline_n the_o spiritual_a reformation_n that_o you_o shall_v have_v attain_v unto_o by_o the_o gift_n and_o ministry_n of_o your_o teacher_n this_o alone_a will_v cause_v we_o true_o and_o solid_o to_o rejoice_v use_v of_o instruction_n how_o impossible_a be_v it_o for_o man_n upon_o true_a and_o spiritual_a ground_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o ministry_n unless_o they_o have_v feel_v some_o special_a efficacy_n upon_o it_o in_o their_o heart_n they_o may_v glory_v in_o the_o part_n in_o the_o eloquence_n in_o the_o ability_n of_o man_n but_o not_o for_o the_o spiritual_a success_n of_o the_o work_n in_o popery_n they_o will_v have_v their_o people_n glory_n in_o their_o church-officer_n because_o of_o the_o external_a pomp_n and_o stateliness_n they_o live_v in_o and_o so_o they_o become_v reverence_v for_o their_o outward_a glory_n but_o this_o be_v whole_o unsuitable_a with_o the_o scripture-glory_n and_o the_o scripture-rejoycing_a for_o this_o alone_a will_v make_v thou_o praise_n god_n if_o thou_o have_v find_v his_o minister_n to_o be_v the_o happy_a instrument_n of_o grace_n and_o peace_n to_o thy_o soul_n serm._n ciii_o of_o the_o rejoice_v a_o faithful_a minister_n have_v in_o a_o obedient_a people_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 14._o that_o we_o be_v your_o rejoye_v as_o you_o also_o be_v we_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n there_o remain_v the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n to_o be_v dispatch_v which_o be_v the_o minister_n rejoice_v upon_o good_a ground_n in_o his_o people_n for_o you_o hear_v how_o happy_a and_o bless_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v when_o there_o be_v cause_n for_o a_o mutual_a and_o reciprocal_a rejoice_v in_o one_o another_o between_o minister_n and_o people_n for_o god_n many_o time_n upon_o wise_a end_n do_v divide_v those_o who_o shall_v be_v conjoin_v sometime_o he_o send_v faithful_a ambassador_n to_o a_o froward_a and_o rebellious_a people_n as_o god_n in_o ezekiel_n that_o the_o people_n be_v briar_n and_o thorn_n to_o he_o and_o that_o he_o do_v dwell_v among_o scorpion_n yet_o he_o must_v not_o be_v afraid_a or_o dismay_v at_o their_o look_n though_o they_o be_v a_o rebellious_a house_n chap._n 2._o 6._o now_o what_o comefort_n can_v ezekiel_n have_v from_o such_o a_o people_n they_o be_v so_o many_o briar_n and_o thorn_n scratch_v and_o tear_v of_o he_o so_o many_o scorpion_n that_o have_v sting_n and_o what_o danger_n be_v it_o to_o dwell_v with_o such_o sometime_o again_o there_o may_v be_v a_o godly_a and_o holy_a people_n high_o prise_v the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o yet_o god_n set_v over_o they_o dumb_a or_o wicked_a pastor_n that_o be_v idol_n and_o no_o shepherd_n now_o when_o this_o be_v so_o their_o be_v little_o rejoice_v in_o one_o another_o and_o if_o jehoash_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n 2_o king_n 13._o 9_o compare_v a_o unequal_a war_n to_o a_o unequal_a and_o unfit_a marriage_n the_o thistle_n in_o lebanon_n with_o the_o cedar_n in_o lebanon_n which_o prove_v destructive_a immediate_o for_o the_o wild_a beast_n in_o lebanon_n come_v and_o tread_v down_o the_o thistle_n how_o much_o more_o now_o be_v this_o true_a in_o this_o spiritual_a relation_n when_o a_o ignorant_a or_o profane_a minister_n be_v over_o a_o gracious_a people_n than_o the_o thistle_n be_v marry_v to_o the_o cedar_n but_o but_o this_o can_v hold_v long_o for_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v like_o the_o wild_a beast_n the_o roar_a lion_n he_o will_v come_v and_o devour_v all_o so_o that_o what_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2_o cor._n 6._o 14._o may_v well_o be_v apply_v here_o be_v not_o unequal_o yoke_v what_o communion_n have_v light_a with_o darkness_n it_o be_v then_o very_a uncomfortable_a when_o a_o godly_a people_n have_v a_o unfaithful_a minister_n or_o a_o faithful_a minister_n a_o ungodly_a and_o a_o froward_a people_n this_o will_v make_v he_o sad_o to_o bewail_v his_o condition_n cry_v out_o with_o isaiah_n woe_n unto_o i_o for_o i_o dwell_v among_o man_n of_o pollute_a lip_n isaiah_n chap._n 6._o 12._o this_o make_v he_o like_o lot_n to_o torment_v his_o righteous_a soul_n by_o see_v and_o hear_v the_o wickedness_n of_o those_o he_o dwell_v among_o 2_o pet._n 2._o 8._o this_o be_v a_o bitter_a and_o sad_a persecution_n as_o it_o be_v thou_o do_v not_o only_o persecute_v a_o minister_n by_o the_o malicious_a opposition_n and_o violent_a course_n against_o he_o but_o even_o thy_o ungodly_a life_n that_o thou_o will_v not_o be_v reform_v that_o thou_o will_v not_o hear_v and_o humble_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o make_v they_o grieve_v and_o weary_v in_o their_o work_n this_o be_v a_o perfecution_n of_o their_o righteous_a soul_n as_o jeremy_n say_v chap._n 13._o 17._o if_o you_o will_v not_o here_o it_o my_o soul_n shall_v weep_v in_o secret_a place_n for_o your_o pride_n thus_o the_o wickedness_n and_o ungodly_a way_n of_o a_o stubborn_a people_n be_v the_o very_a heart-breaking_n of_o a_o godly_a minister_n while_o they_o deride_v and_o scorn_v his_o soul_n mourn_v for_o they_o while_o they_o revile_v and_o reproach_v he_o malicious_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o prayer_n for_o they_o even_o as_o it_o be_v with_o some_o tender_a father_n who_o have_v a_o son_n grievous_o distract_v and_o bereave_v of_o his_o wit_n while_o he_o rage_v and_o rave_v at_o his_o father_n while_o he_o miscal_v he_o and_o strike_v at_o he_o the_o father_n stand_v by_o sad_o affect_v weep_v and_o pray_v for_o his_o child_n that_o he_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o his_o sound_a mind_n again_o thus_o do_v a_o godly_a tender_a pastor_n mourn_v over_o a_o wicked_a scornful_a and_o rebellious_a people_n but_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o show_v wherein_o a_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n have_v cause_n teachable_a to_o rejoice_v over_o his_o people_n and_o first_o when_o they_o be_v a_o teachable_a and_o learn_a people_n very_o tractable_a and_o ready_a to_o receive_v instruction_n this_o be_v a_o great_a joy_n and_o encouragement_n there_o be_v many_o who_o as_o they_o be_v sottish_o ignorant_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n so_o they_o will_v continue_v obstinate_o therein_o they_o be_v not_o desirous_a and_o harken_v after_o knowledge_n that_o say_v with_o those_o in_o job_n 21._o 14._o unto_o god_n depart_v from_o we_o for_o we_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n now_o it_o be_v for_o want_v of_o a_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n that_o iniquity_n and_o profaneness_n do_v abound_v every_o where_o
noble_a effect_n of_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n that_o it_o become_v spiritual_a seed_n to_o give_v man_n a_o new_a spiritual_a life_n as_o well_o to_o feed_v to_o nourish_v they_o therein_o james_n chap._n 4._o 18._o of_o his_o own_o will_n beget_v he_o we_o with_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o john_n 17._o sanctify_v they_o by_o thy_o word_n when_o therefore_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n do_v not_o only_o become_v instructer_n but_o father_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o be_v to_o these_o corinthian_n this_o be_v matter_n of_o great_a joy_n though_o you_o have_v ten_o thousand_o instructor_n yet_o not_o many_o father_n for_o in_o christ_n jesus_n i_o have_v beget_v you_o through_o the_o gospel_n 1_o corinth_n chap._n 4._o 15._o this_o then_o be_v a_o foundation_n of_o much_o indear_n comfort_n when_o a_o people_n can_v own_v their_o minister_n to_o be_v a_o father_n to_o they_o and_o he_o they_o for_o his_o spiritual_a child_n when_o by_o his_o ministry_n they_o be_v able_a to_o say_v i_o be_v enlighten_v i_o be_v convert_v i_o be_v sanctify_v sure_o if_o aristotle_n say_v we_o can_v never_o recompense_v the_o god_n nor_o our_o natural_a father_n neither_o be_v we_o able_a to_o requite_v our_o spiritual_a father_n although_o as_o in_o nature_n it_o be_v observe_v that_o love_n though_o it_o be_v fire_n yet_o it_o do_v descend_v not_o ascend_v so_o it_o be_v in_o spiritual_a relation_n such_o minister_n who_o have_v be_v instrumental_a to_o the_o conversion_n of_o any_o do_v far_o more_o rejoice_v in_o such_o a_o people_n than_o they_o can_v in_o the_o minister_n hence_o the_o apostle_n speak_v most_o affectionate_o in_o a_o overflow_a manner_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 11_o 12_o 13._o o_o you_o corinthian_n our_o mouth_n be_v open_a unto_o you_o our_o heart_n be_v enlarge_v you_o be_v not_o streighten_v in_o we_o but_o in_o your_o own_o bowel_n now_o for_o a_o recompense_n in_o the_o same_o i_o speak_v as_o unto_o child_n be_v you_o also_o enlarge_v here_o you_o see_v paul_n heart_n be_v more_o enlarge_v to_o they_o than_o there_o be_v to_o he_o this_o then_o be_v a_o unspeakable_a mercy_n when_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o say_v with_o the_o prophet_n though_o in_o another_o sense_n behold_v i_o and_o the_o child_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o isa_n chap._n 8._o 18._o or_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n after_o all_o his_o suffering_n for_o we_o he_o shall_v see_v of_o the_o travail_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o be_v satisfy_v he_o shall_v see_v his_o seed_n and_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v prosper_v in_o his_o hand_n isa_n 53._o 10_o 11._o four_o then_o be_v they_o rejoice_v to_o a_o minister_n when_o they_o be_v a_o ready_a duty_n and_o willing_a people_n in_o all_o gospel_n duty_n when_o they_o be_v his_o live_a sermon_n his_o walk_a sermon_n when_o they_o endeavour_v to_o adorn_v the_o gospel_n by_o their_o conversation_n when_o there_o be_v no_o profane_a person_n no_o bitter_a root_n grow_v up_o among_o they_o but_o a_o garden_n without_o weed_n a_o floor_n of_o pure_a wheat_n without_o chaff_n a_o net_n of_o good_a fish_n only_o a_o field_n of_o wheat_n without_o tare_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v no_o such_o people_n no_o such_o church_n to_o be_v expect_a in_o this_o life_n but_o the_o less_o weed_n the_o few_o bramble_n the_o great_a joy_n to_o the_o husbandman_n what_o a_o glorious_a commendation_n do_v the_o apostle_n give_v this_o church_n 2_o cor._n 2_o 3._o when_o he_o call_v they_o his_o epistle_n to_o be_v read_v and_o know_v of_o all_o man_n yea_o he_o say_v they_o be_v manifest_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o christ_n o_o what_o unspeakable_a gladness_n of_o heart_n will_v it_o be_v to_o a_o minister_n to_o be_v able_a to_o make_v such_o a_o holy_a boast_n of_o his_o people_n that_o they_o be_v his_o sermon_n to_o be_v read_v and_o know_v of_o all_o man_n we_o may_v know_v what_o he_o preach_v by_o the_o life_n of_o his_o people_n the_o apostle_n instance_v in_o one_o duty_n viz._n their_o liberality_n to_o the_o poor_a saint_n of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 9_o 13._o for_o thereby_o they_o do_v glorify_v god_n by_o their_o profess_a subjection_n to_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v bless_v when_o a_o people_n in_o all_o gospel_n duty_n will_v not_o cavil_v and_o be_v contentious_a but_o declare_v their_o profess_a subjection_n thereunto_o 5._o when_o they_o be_v a_o people_n willing_a and_o ready_a to_o submit_v to_o the_o whole_a order_n of_o christ_n christ_n to_o reform_v all_o corruption_n and_o abuse_n as_o also_o with_o much_o repentance_n to_o manifest_v their_o sorrow_n for_o any_o negligence_n and_o remission_n herein_o these_o very_a corinthian_n as_o they_o be_v matter_n of_o joy_n so_o also_o of_o much_o trouble_n of_o much_o trouble_n of_o much_o sorrow_n and_o humiliation_n hence_o he_o speak_v remarkable_o 2_o cor._n 12._o 20._o i_o fear_v least_o when_o i_o come_v i_o shall_v not_o find_v you_o such_o as_o i_o will_v and_o that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v find_v unto_o you_o such_o as_o you_o will_v and_o lest_o when_o i_o come_v again_o my_o god_n humble_v i_o among_o you_o and_o that_o i_o shall_v bewail_v many_o which_o have_v sin_v already_o and_o have_v not_o repent_v of_o their_o uncleanness_n by_o this_o you_o see_v that_o though_o the_o apostle_n have_v much_o rejoice_v from_o they_o yet_o he_o have_v also_o much_o humiliation_n many_o do_v not_o repent_v and_o therefore_o put_v he_o to_o more_o severity_n than_o he_o will_v now_o than_o that_o paul_n may_v not_o contradict_v himself_o they_o can_v not_o be_v his_o rejoice_v and_o mourn_v also_o therefore_o we_o must_v either_o hereby_o gather_v that_o the_o corinthian_n be_v unconstant_a sometime_o hopfull_a and_o reforming_a and_o afterward_o again_o relapse_v or_o else_o this_o be_v speak_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o but_o some_o of_o they_o who_o do_v gross_o fail_v in_o their_o duty_n for_o if_o we_o consult_v with_o 2_o cor._n 17._o there_o we_o shall_v see_v the_o apostle_n wonderful_o affect_v with_o the_o joy_n that_o he_o have_v by_o see_v the_o good_a effect_n of_o his_o former_a epistle_n upon_o they_o for_o thereby_o they_o do_v set_v upon_o church-order_n they_o purge_v out_o the_o old_a leaven_n they_o manifest_v much_o godly_a sorrow_n indignation_n and_o zeal_n and_o every_o way_n endeavour_v to_o approve_v themselves_o unto_o paul_n and_o this_o do_v so_o exceed_o rejoice_v he_o that_o he_o say_v verse_n 4._o great_a be_v my_o glory_v of_o you_o i_o be_o fill_v with_o comefort_n i_o be_o exceed_o joyful_a in_o all_o our_o tribulation_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o his_o trouble_n this_o rejoice_v his_o heart_n that_o they_o do_v themselves_o assist_v to_o the_o cast_v out_o of_o wicked_a person_n and_o be_v exceed_o sorrowful_a for_o their_o former_a negligence_n herein_o thus_o then_o when_o a_o people_n be_v ready_a to_o observe_v all_o the_o order_n and_o instituion_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v matter_n of_o great_a joy_n but_o because_o many_o church_n have_v receive_v but_o half_a christ_n as_o it_o be_v hence_o also_o their_o minister_n have_v receive_v but_o half_a joy_n some_o protestant_a church_n receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n but_o not_o the_o discipline_n some_o be_v for_o orthodoxy_n in_o judgement_n but_o not_o purity_n in_o life_n some_o be_v willing_a to_o cast_v of_o the_o antichristian_a yoke_n but_o then_o will_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o rod_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v many_o faithful_a pastor_n have_v go_v to_o the_o grave_n with_o great_a grief_n of_o heart_n oh_o it_o be_v a_o sad_a thing_n when_o people_n be_v so_o wilful_a as_o to_o necessitate_v a_o minister_n to_o remove_v from_o they_o because_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o he_o be_v limit_v in_o his_o ministerial_a administration_n and_o can_v do_v all_o he_o desire_v thus_o these_o corinthian_n fail_v also_o about_o holy_a order_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o make_v he_o begin_v his_o discourse_n about_o it_o after_o this_o manner_n shall_v i_o praise_v you_o in_o this_o i_o praise_v you_o not_o 1_o cor._n 11._o 22._o there_o be_v many_o other_o particular_n which_o rejoice_v a_o faithful_a minister_n as_o when_o they_o continue_v from_o not_o fall_v off_o from_o the_o truth_n either_o by_o false_a teacher_n or_o affliction_n which_o be_v so_o great_a a_o matter_n that_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o thes_n 3._o 8._o we_o live_v if_o you_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o lord_n likewise_o when_o they_o be_v a_o grow_a people_n and_o do_v not_o continue_v as_o babe_n but_o be_v carry_v unto_o perfection_n and_o do_v not_o stand_v still_o but_o walk_v in_o the_o truth_n 〈◊〉_d i_o have_v
godly_a go_v bow_v down_o not_o able_a to_o lift_v up_o their_o head_n now_o this_o question_n will_v never_o be_v full_o answer_v till_o that_o great_a day_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v call_v the_o day_n of_o restore_v of_o all_o thing_n act_n 3._o 21._o which_o word_n signify_v that_o here_o in_o this_o world_n many_o thing_n seem_v to_o be_v out_o of_o order_n it_o be_v ill_a with_o a_o godly_a man_n well_o with_o a_o wicked_a man_n but_o then_o god_n will_v put_v every_o one_o in_o his_o proper_a place_n the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v where_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o the_o godly_a where_o he_o be_v to_o be_v then_o we_o shall_v no_o long_o cry_v out_o how_o unsearchable_a be_v his_o way_n and_o past_o find_v out_o for_o then_o god_n will_v clear_v all_o his_o proceed_n which_o have_v be_v in_o this_o world_n then_o we_o shall_v know_v why_o this_o be_v so_o and_o that_o so_o why_o god_n do_v help_v at_o such_o a_o time_n and_o not_o before_o then_o all_o the_o proceed_n of_o god_n whether_o in_o a_o way_n of_o judgement_n or_o mercy_n that_o do_v astonish_v we_o shall_v be_v open_v all_o the_o wisdom_n goodness_n and_o righteousness_n of_o god_n shall_v then_o be_v manifest_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n thue_n we_o shall_v see_v a_o wonderful_a alteration_n the_o next_o proposition_n and_o last_o shall_v be_v this_o at_o that_o day_n there_o will_v be_v a_o vast_a and_o unspeakable_a change_n make_v upon_o some_o self-righteous_a sinner_n especial_o though_o we_o tell_v you_o all_o sinner_n will_v have_v other_o thought_n and_o look_v upon_o themselves_o in_o another_o manner_n than_o they_o do_v now_o yet_o to_o some_o sinner_n this_o day_n will_v bring_v a_o remarkable_a but_o a_o terrible_a alteration_n as_o first_o the_o rich_a and_o jolly_a sinner_n who_o live_v in_o all_o manner_n of_o pleasure_n without_o any_o molestation_n at_o all_o here_o will_v be_v a_o dreadful_a change_n to_o he_o to_o go_v from_o his_o downe-bed_n to_o the_o flame_n in_o hell_n to_o be_v fetch_v from_o his_o merry_a companion_n to_o be_v for_o ever_o torment_v by_o the_o devil_n the_o parable_n of_o dives_n and_o lazarus_n luke_n 16._o 20._o do_v egregious_o demonstrate_v this_o dives_n be_v take_v from_o his_o delicate_a fare_n and_o great_a abundance_n plunge_v in_o such_o a_o want_n of_o all_o mercy_n that_o he_o can_v have_v one_o drop_n of_o water_n to_o assuage_v his_o torment_n abraham_n also_o tell_v of_o his_o change_n vers_n 25._o remember_v that_o thou_o in_o thy_o life_n time_n receive_v thy_o good_a thing_n but_o now_o thou_o be_v torment_v what_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n shall_v this_o be_v to_o every_o such_o jolly_a sinner_n why_o do_v thou_o not_o say_v to_o thyself_o now_o thou_o be_v jolly_a and_o merry_a but_o will_v this_o hold_v always_o will_v there_o never_o be_v any_o change_n second_o the_o secret_a close_a sinner_n he_o who_o carry_v himself_o in_o all_o plausible_a way_n of_o piety_n but_o then_o continue_v in_o private_a secret_a sin_n now_o this_o day_n will_v especial_o be_v for_o the_o bring_v to_o light_v all_o such_o hide_a way_n of_o dishonesty_n solomon_n conclude_v his_o book_n with_o this_o eccles_n 12._o 14._o god_n will_v bring_v every_o secret_a thing_n to_o light_n whether_o good_a or_o evil_n this_o day_n will_v be_v a_o terrible_a day_n for_o all_o such_o as_o hide_v and_o keep_v close_o their_o sin_n there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o secret_a but_o will_n then_o be_v make_v manifest_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n how_o terrible_a will_v this_o day_n be_v to_o the_o secret_a unclean_a person_n to_o the_o secret_a thigh_n to_o the_o secret_a unjust_a man_n know_v to_o thy_o terror_n at_o that_o day_n they_o will_v be_v no_o more_o secret_a as_o they_o say_v of_o letter_n write_v with_o some_o juice_n they_o can_v be_v read_v till_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o fire_n and_o then_o what_o be_v hardly_o discernible_a be_v very_o legible_a thus_o it_o will_v be_v at_o that_o day_n the_o sin_n no_o man_n know_v by_o thou_o those_o evil_a way_n the_o world_n can_v charge_v upon_o thou_o will_v then_o be_v make_v know_v to_o all_o last_o all_o pharisaical_a and_o self-righteous_a person_n all_o those_o who_o be_v strong_o persuade_v of_o their_o good_a condition_n but_o upon_o false_a ground_n this_o will_v be_v very_o terrible_a to_o such_o many_o man_n live_v so_o profane_o and_o die_v so_o wicked_o that_o they_o can_v but_o expect_v damnation_n they_o must_v look_v for_o no_o other_o but_o there_o be_v a_o generation_n of_o person_n oh_o how_o many_o of_o they_o that_o do_v applaud_v themselves_o in_o their_o own_o good_a heart_n they_o doubt_v not_o of_o god_n favour_n they_o conclude_v whensoever_o they_o die_v it_o shall_v be_v well_o with_o they_o to_o such_o as_o these_o there_o will_v be_v a_o dreadful_a change_n what_o thou_o that_o do_v not_o doubt_v or_o fear_v thy_o condition_n no_o not_o to_o the_o last_o gasp_n to_o fall_v from_o these_o great_a hope_n into_o eternal_a despair_n what_o a_o change_n be_v here_o make_v our_o saviour_n do_v most_o full_o represent_v such_o person_n in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o foolish_a virgin_n matth._n 25._o 11_o 12._o do_v not_o they_o go_v out_o confident_o to_o meet_v the_o bridegroom_n do_v not_o they_o cry_v bold_o lord_n lord_n open_a to_o we_o and_o yet_o when_o they_o come_v to_o the_o last_o they_o want_v oil_n oh_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o person_n who_o want_v oil_n yet_o live_v confident_o and_o die_v confident_o make_v no_o question_n but_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v open_v to_o let_v they_o in_o so_o in_o another_o parable_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n vers_fw-la 44._o those_o person_n who_o the_o ●udge_n shall_v bid_v depart_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n for_o the_o omission_n of_o such_o duty_n as_o be_v require_v of_o they_o they_o stand_v and_o plead_v with_o the_o judge_n they_o will_v not_o believe_v themselves_o such_o sinner_n they_o will_v not_o grant_v they_o ever_o offend_v so_o when_o see_v we_o thou_o a_o hungry_a and_o feed_v thou_o not_o &_o c_o oh_o take_v heed_n of_o this_o selfe-fulnesse_n of_o live_v and_o die_v in_o such_o strong_a presumption_n of_o god_n love_n for_o hell_n and_o damnation_n will_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o terrible_a by_o how_o much_o thou_o do_v make_v sure_a of_o heaven_n in_o thy_o own_o expectation_n the_o use_n from_o this_o doctrine_n must_v needs_o be_v full_a of_o power_n and_o efficacy_n to_o move_v we_o imagine_v a_o wicked_a man_n sentence_v at_o that_o tribunal_n take_v his_o leave_n of_o all_o comfort_n wish_v he_o have_v never_o be_v bear_v cry_v out_o to_o the_o mountain_n and_o hill_n to_o cover_v he_o and_o then_o say_v do_v this_o man_n once_o believe_v it_o will_v be_v thus_o with_o he_o do_v this_o man_n ever_o think_v there_o will_v be_v such_o a_o change_n now_o be_v it_o not_o god_n mercy_n to_o forewarn_a thou_o of_o this_o day_n neither_o devil_n or_o the_o world_n neither_o god_n or_o man_n can_v be_v accuse_v but_o thy_o own_o wilfulness_n in_o sin_v when_o thou_o be_v command_v to_o depart_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n never_o to_o enjoy_v a_o drop_n of_o comfort_n more_o how_o must_v thou_o justify_v god_n the_o minister_n and_o thy_o own_o godly_a friend_n take_v confusion_n to_o thyself_o shall_v we_o not_o hear_v thou_o speak_v to_o god_n o_o glorious_a and_o infinite_a god_n thou_o have_v be_v merciful_a and_o patient_a to_o i_o thou_o give_v i_o time_n to_o repent_v thou_o do_v forewarn_a of_o this_o torment_n i_o must_v justify_v thou_o then_o we_o shall_v hear_v he_o speak_v to_o christ_n oh_o bless_a and_o glorious_a mediator_n though_o not_o so_o to_o i_o how_o great_a be_v thy_o love_n in_o die_v for_o sinner_n how_o much_o be_v i_o convince_v that_o it_o be_v my_o duty_n to_o depart_v from_o my_o sin_n but_o my_o lust_n will_v not_o let_v i_o afterward_o he_o shall_v justify_v the_o minister_n and_o godly_a friend_n how_o often_o be_v i_o admonish_v i_o remember_v what_o you_o say_v to_o i_o i_o be_v convince_v i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o do_v as_o i_o do_v it_o be_v my_o own_o rebellious_a heart_n that_o have_v undo_v i_o last_o he_o speak_v to_o the_o glorify_a saint_n oh_o happy_a and_o thrice_o happy_a be_v you_o how_o unspeakable_o glorious_a and_o comfortable_a be_v your_o condition_n i_o remember_v the_o holy_a life_n the_o godly_a example_n you_o give_v i_o but_o my_o wretched_a lust_n will_v not_o let_v i_o follow_v you_o and_o now_o i_o must_v see_v your_o face_n no_o more_o farewell_n all_o joy_n all_o comfort_n brimstone_n fire_n torment_n and_o hell_n flame_n be_v to_o be_v my_o portion_n for_o ever_o where_o be_v thy_o reason_n where_o be_v
god_n do_v by_o his_o efficacy_n you_o may_v observe_v in_o most_o of_o paul_n epistle_n which_o be_v like_o water_v of_o the_o garden_n after_o it_o be_v plant_v how_o much_o care_n and_o inspection_n be_v use_v against_o those_o false_a teacher_n how_o great_o he_o labour_v to_o antidote_n they_o against_o false_a doctrine_n so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n that_o any_o who_o read_v paul_n epistle_n and_o observe_v his_o diligence_n and_o zeal_n therein_o can_v look_v upon_o error_n as_o almost_o innocency_n and_o deserve_a pity_n rather_o than_o indulgence_n gal._n 1._o 6._o i_o marvel_v you_o be_v so_o soon_o remove_v from_o he_o that_o call_v you_o to_o another_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n so_o soon_o those_o galatian_n that_o have_v receive_v such_o wonderful_a gift_n by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o even_o to_o the_o admiration_n of_o paul_n be_v sudden_o carry_v aside_o into_o false_a way_n this_o then_o be_v a_o continual_a benefit_n by_o a_o faithful_a and_o sound_a ministry_n that_o we_o be_v not_o as_o child_n toss_v up_o and_o down_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n ephes_n 4._o 14._o that_o we_o be_v sound_o fortify_v against_o all_o the_o deceivable_a way_n of_o error_n and_o true_o this_o be_v a_o special_a mercy_n to_o have_v a_o ministry_n sanctify_v to_o that_o end_n and_o bless_v to_o that_o purpose_n to_o keep_v thou_o in_o a_o sound_n and_o right_a judgement_n therefore_o be_v it_o that_o the_o devil_n place_v his_o engine_n against_o the_o ministry_n to_o batter_v that_o down_o for_o if_o the_o wall_n be_v break_v down_o the_o city_n may_v be_v easy_o take_v if_o the_o hedge_n be_v trample_v down_o the_o corn_n will_v present_o be_v spoil_v second_o ministerial_a labour_n be_v necessary_a to_o a_o constitute_v church_n in_o respect_n of_o life_n all_o the_o effectual_a mean_n it_o be_v to_o use_v against_o those_o corruption_n and_o abuse_n in_o man_n manner_n which_o may_v soon_o break_v forth_o and_o thus_o it_o be_v with_o this_o church_n of_o corinth_n their_o life_n be_v great_o corrupt_v there_o be_v many_o disorder_n they_o do_v not_o walk_v with_o such_o a_o holy_a respect_n to_o the_o rule_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v some_o fall_v into_o gross_a sin_n of_o wantonness_n and_o have_v not_o yet_o repent_v or_o manifest_v any_o true_a humiliation_n other_o they_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o pride_n and_o envy_n whereby_o many_o party_n and_o faction_n be_v make_v among_o they_o now_o where_o there_o be_v so_o many_o disease_n do_v they_o not_o need_v a_o physician_n when_o the_o school_n be_v thus_o disorder_v be_v not_o a_o rod_n requisite_a although_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v glorious_a title_n yet_o they_o seldom_o exact_o answer_v to_o they_o in_o their_o life_n they_o be_v call_v believer_n but_o how_o apt_a to_o misbelieve_v to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o the_o sligh_o cunning_a of_o heretical_a man_n they_o be_v call_v saint_n but_o how_o apt_a to_o be_v carnal_a passionate_a worldly_a yea_o and_o sometime_o to_o be_v overtake_v with_o grosser_n sin_n now_o they_o that_o be_v thus_o overtake_v do_v they_o not_o need_v those_o that_o be_v spiritual_a gal._n 6._o 1._o to_o restore_v they_o again_o by_o the_o spiritual_a here_o some_o understand_v the_o officer_n and_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n who_o as_o they_o be_v to_o cast_v out_o obstinate_a and_o impenitent_a sinner_n so_o to_o receive_v they_o again_o upon_o their_o humiliation_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n to_o church-communion_n three_o ministerial_a labour_n be_v necessary_a in_o a_o iterate_a and_o repeat_v manner_n godly_a for_o consolation_n and_o encouragement_n the_o people_n of_o god_n have_v a_o two_o fold_v occasion_n of_o their_o sadness_n and_o discouragement_n the_o former_a whereof_o be_v from_o their_o sin_n and_o failling_n they_o be_v whole_o stranger_n to_o their_o and_o heart_n but_o discover_v that_o vileness_n and_o loathsomeness_n in_o themselves_o which_o the_o world_n can_v not_o which_o god_n only_o know_v and_o sometime_o this_o fire_n be_v enrage_v qy_o the_o oil_n that_o the_o devil_n pour_v on_o he_o have_v his_o fiery_a dart_n he_o have_v his_o buffet_n now_o when_o any_o of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n sit_v in_o this_o darkness_n how_o necessary_a how_o welcome_a be_v the_o foot_n of_o those_o who_o bring_v the_o glad_a tiding_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v not_o even_o christ_n himself_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o sorrow_n a_o angel_n send_v to_o comefort_v he_o the_o incestuous_a person_n be_v not_o he_o ready_a to_o be_v swallow_v up_o with_o overmuch_a sorrow_n and_o therefore_o paul_n exhort_v the_o corinthian_n 2_o cor_n 2._o 7._o to_o forgive_v he_o and_o to_o comfort_v he_o hence_o god_n do_v reprove_v those_o negligent_a shepherd_n ezek_n 34._o 4._o that_o gross_o fail_v in_o this_o duty_n the_o disease_a have_v you_o not_o strengthen_v neither_o have_v you_o heal_v that_o which_o be_v sick_a or_o bind_v up_o that_o which_o be_v break_v for_o this_o end_n also_o god_n do_v give_v his_o officer_n a_o tongue_n of_o the_o learned_a as_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n call_v it_o chap._n 50._o 4._o which_o be_v to_o speak_v a_o word_n in_o season_n to_o he_o that_o be_v of_o a_o humble_a spirit_n and_o weary_a soul_n little_o do_v any_o know_v the_o necessity_n of_o such_o comfortable_a physician_n but_o such_o who_o like_o the_o man_n of_o jerecho_n lie_v wound_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o guilt_n and_o god_n displeasure_n against_o they_o for_o alas_o in_o our_o temptation_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v true_a comefort_n to_o ourselves_o it_o be_v well_o if_o we_o be_v enable_v through_o grace_n to_o receive_v it_o from_o other_o in_o muddy_v water_n a_o man_n can_v discern_v his_o own_o face_n so_o neither_o in_o such_o black_a temptation_n be_v a_o christian_a able_a to_o see_v how_o it_o stand_v between_o god_n and_o his_o own_o soul_n therefore_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v efficient_o both_o convince_v of_o sin_n and_o comfort_n so_o do_v the_o ministry_n instrumental_o be_v apply_v thereunto_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n a_o second_o occasion_n of_o comfort_n be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o outward_a persecution_n and_o trouble_n which_o do_v accompany_v the_o powerful_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o external_a consideration_n they_o be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a be_v not_o they_o therefore_o to_o have_v such_o as_o may_v comfort_v and_o strengthen_v they_o in_o their_o warfare_n hence_o paul_n epistle_n do_v abound_v with_o many_o consolation_n as_o so_o many_o cordial_n peter_n also_o in_o his_o epistle_n do_v give_v notable_a encouragement_n not_o to_o faint_v under_o the_o affliction_n they_o meet_v with_o for_o the_o gospels_n sake_n yea_o to_o rejoice_v in_o it_o and_o to_o account_v themselves_o happy_a because_o of_o it_o this_o comfort_n be_v always_o necessary_a but_o because_o the_o ●…dly_a be_v never_o free_a from_o the_o persecution_n of_o the_o hand_n or_o of_o the_o tongue_n the_o minister_n of_o god_n they_o be_v to_o follow_v christ_n in_o this_o as_o he_o inform_v his_o disciple_n of_o the_o hatred_n they_o shall_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o world_n so_o he_o comfort_v they_o he_o command_v they_o to_o be_v of_o good_a courage_n he_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n four_o the_o labour_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v again_o and_o again_o to_o be_v put_v forth_o to_o a_o they_o people_n though_o under_o the_o profession_n of_o christ_n because_o of_o their_o growth_n and_o edification_n in_o the_o way_n of_o holiness_n and_o this_o indeed_o be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a effect_n of_o the_o ministry_n upon_o a_o people_n already_o convert_v they_o that_o say_v or_o think_v they_o need_v no_o ministry_n no_o preach_v may_v with_o that_o novatian_a take_v a_o ladder_n and_o go_v themselves_o up_o into_o heaven_n it_o be_v as_o if_o a_o graden_n shall_v say_v it_o need_v no_o rain_n a_o field_n of_o corn_n it_o need_v not_o the_o cloud_n to_o be_v without_o which_o be_v in_o scripture_n a_o great_a judgement_n this_o god_n threaten_v isaiah_n chap._n 6._o 6._o i_o will_v also_o command_v my_o cloud_n to_o rain_v no_o more_o rain_n upon_o it_o thus_o some_o man_n wilful_o put_v themselves_o into_o that_o condition_n to_o live_v without_o a_o ministry_n as_o a_o mercy_n which_o god_n make_v a_o grievous_a curse_n that_o growth_n in_o christianity_n be_v a_o principal_a end_n of_o the_o ministry_n appear_v ephes_n 4._o 12._o for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n till_o we_o come_v to_o a_o full_a stature_n insomuch_o that_o all_o minister_n and_o all_o hearer_n have_v work_n enough_o to_o do_v none_o can_v say_v we_o have_v preach_v enough_o or_o hear_v enough_o
to_o charge_v it_o upon_o all_o other_o minister_n as_o if_o they_o be_v all_o alike_o it_o be_v for_o this_o that_o paul_n do_v not_o only_o apologise_v for_o himself_o but_o his_o associate_n also_o but_o how_o unreasonable_a be_v this_o grant_v that_o some_o be_v true_o blame-worthy_a must_v all_o be_v so_o if_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n there_o be_v many_o false_a prophet_n that_o daub_v with_o untempered_a mortar_n that_o cry_v peace_n peace_n to_o sinner_n when_o destruction_n be_v at_o hand_n shall_v we_o therefore_o condemn_v the_o good_a prophet_n who_o reprove_v even_o the_o great_a and_o most_o mighty_a for_o their_o sin_n because_o judas_n be_v a_o thief_n and_o for_o filthy_a lucre_n sake_n betray_v christ_n shall_v we_o condemn_v all_o the_o apostle_n make_v they_o to_o be_v no_o better_o must_v sylvanus_n and_o timotheus_n be_v accuse_v because_o they_o think_v paul_n be_v inconstant_a and_o light_a yet_o thus_o it_o fall_v out_o continual_o and_o that_o from_o these_o ground_n first_o the_o policy_n and_o enmity_n of_o false_a teacher_n who_o like_o haman_n think_v it_o a_o small_a matter_n to_o destroy_v one_o mordecai_n unless_o they_o root_v out_o the_o whole_a race_n of_o the_o jew_n teacher_n thus_o the_o false_a apostle_n conclude_v though_o paul_n be_v disgrace_v and_o vilify_v yet_o if_o sylvanus_n and_o timotheus_n be_v in_o esteem_n and_o authority_n our_o kingdom_n will_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n it_o be_v therefore_o the_o adversary_n design_v to_o cast_v dung_n in_o the_o face_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n that_o so_o there_o may_v not_o one_o be_v leave_v that_o shall_v be_v useful_a in_o their_o place_n a_o second_o ground_n be_v from_o the_o injudiciousnesse_n and_o indiscretion_n of_o people_n who_o be_v credulous_a and_o apt_a to_o believe_v all_o rumour_n and_o report_n how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o people_n the_o pharisee_n by_o their_o calumniate_a christ_n as_o a_o impostor_n and_o a_o blasphemer_n shall_v prevail_v with_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n to_o be_v on_o their_o side_n because_o they_o be_v blind_a and_o lead_v by_o the_o blind_a they_o will_v not_o make_v use_n of_o their_o own_o judgement_n they_o will_v not_o examine_v and_o try_v whether_o thing_n be_v so_o or_o no._n and_o then_o the_o three_o ground_n be_v from_o the_o natural_a enmity_n that_o be_v in_o all_o wicked_a man_n to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n when_o faithful_o discharge_v that_o be_v a_o ministry_n burden_n to_o they_o they_o must_v needs_o say_v with_o ahab_n to_o such_o faithful_a michaiah_n we_o hate_v he_o because_o he_o always_o propehsy_v evil_a alas_o godly_a minister_n can_v give_v any_o comfort_n can_v promise_v peace_n to_o such_o ungodly_a person_n therefore_o they_o have_v hatred_n against_o they_o and_o be_v glad_a to_o receive_v any_o false_a report_n concern_v they_o minister_n be_v compare_v to_o light_n and_o to_o salt_n now_o the_o light_n must_v needs_o be_v offensive_a to_o distemper_a eye_n and_o salt_n to_o soar_v thus_o if_o the_o ministry_n be_v powerful_a to_o enlighten_v to_o convince_v to_o reprove_v no_o ungodly_a man_n can_v endure_v this_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n when_o faithful_o manage_v be_v so_o great_a a_o trouble_n to_o wicked_a man_n they_o be_v thieu_n therefore_o can_v endure_v this_o light_n they_o cry_v out_o with_o ahab_n have_v thou_o find_v i_o o_o my_o enemy_n every_o sermon_n that_o be_v powerful_a be_v as_o bitter_a as_o gall_v and_o wormwood_n to_o they_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v such_o a_o enmity_n and_o ill-will_n against_o they_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o they_o be_v quick_o prejudice_v and_o will_v not_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o godly_a or_o faithful_a minister_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n but_o i_o hasten_v to_o the_o last_o observation_n and_o that_o be_v it_o be_v a_o most_o bless_a and_o happy_a thing_n when_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n agree_v christ_n with_o one_o consent_n to_o advance_v christ_n as_o luke_n call_v it_o chap._n 1._o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a prophet_n which_o have_v be_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v but_o one_o mouth_n as_o it_o be_v they_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o same_o doctrine_n paul_n and_o sylvanus_n and_o timotheus_n they_o all_o preach_v the_o same_o christ_n they_o be_v not_o yea_o or_o nay_o this_o accord_n and_o agreement_n among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v of_o so_o great_a concernment_n that_o our_o saviour_n in_o his_o valedictory_n prayer_n do_v with_o much_o efficacy_n and_o vigour_n press_v this_o petition_n that_o his_o disciple_n may_v be_v one_o and_o one_o in_o the_o most_o near_a manner_n imaginable_a even_o as_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v one_o i_o shall_v not_o enlarge_v on_o this_o because_o heretofore_o much_o speak_v off_o only_o i_o shall_v instance_n in_o some_o useful_a effect_n and_o consequence_n of_o this_o happy_a agreement_n only_o before_o i_o do_v that_o we_o have_v cause_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d manifold_a wisdom_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o have_v provide_v many_o office_n many_o officer_n for_o his_o church_n and_o those_o various_o gift_v and_o all_o for_o the_o spiritual_a benefit_n of_o our_o soul_n some_o be_v barnabass_n some_o be_v boanergeses_n thus_o as_o the_o king_n daughter_n be_v say_v to_o be_v clothe_v with_o needle_n work_n of_o divers_a colour_n so_o have_v god_n rich_o adorn_v his_o church_n with_o variety_n of_o ability_n that_o if_o man_n be_v not_o convert_v the_o great_a will_v be_v their_o condemnation_n for_o whereas_o auditor_n be_v of_o divers_a appetite_n some_o be_v for_o doctrinal_a preach_v some_o for_o affectionate_a some_o be_v for_o legal_a terrible_a sermon_n other_o for_o sweet_a evangelical_n discourse_n if_o christ_n send_v ambassador_n thus_o qualify_v every_o way_n what_o can_v they_o look_v for_o who_o be_v not_o by_o these_o several_a bait_n allure_v and_o take_v for_o this_o cause_n we_o have_v christ_n himself_o upbraid_v the_o jew_n that_o no_o kind_n of_o heavenly_a way_n will_v please_v no_o kind_n of_o dress_v the_o word_n of_o life_n be_v acceptable_a to_o their_o palate_n matth._n 11._o 18._o john_n come_v neither_o eat_n nor_o drink_v and_o they_o say_v he_o have_v a_o devil_n the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v eat_v and_o drink_v and_o they_o say_v behold_v a_o friend_n of_o publican_n and_o sinner_n hereupon_o he_o compare_v they_o to_o child_n play_v in_o the_o market_n say_v we_o have_v pipe_v to_o you_o and_o you_o have_v not_o dance_v we_o have_v mourn_v unto_o you_o and_o you_o have_v not_o lament_v thus_o nothing_o will_v do_v any_o good_a to_o they_o admire_v then_o god_n goodness_n that_o have_v thus_o abundant_o provide_v for_o thou_o do_v not_o simple_o and_o envious_o compare_v one_o minister_n gift_n above_o another_o but_o adore_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n that_o use_v all_o the_o different_a ability_n of_o man_n for_o the_o church_n good_a this_o premise_a we_o may_v from_o the_o harmony_n and_o agreement_n of_o minister_n in_o advance_v christ_n truth_n kingdom_n see_v first_o the_o great_a confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n if_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n than_o how_o much_o more_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o many_o thousand_o witness_n be_v every_o truth_n abundant_o confirm_v how_o can_v thou_o give_v way_n to_o any_o atheistical_a thought_n whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o a_o day_n of_o judgement_n or_o a_o heaven_n or_o a_o hell_n when_o thou_o shall_v hear_v so_o many_o thousand_o of_o god_n servant_n in_o all_o age_n witness_v to_o this_o thing_n all_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n man_n renown_v for_o holiness_n for_o miracle_n they_o all_o preach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n that_o we_o do_v to_o you_o and_o therefore_o consider_v with_o thyself_o what_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n thou_o gainsayest_n by_o thy_o unbelief_n 2._o the_o great_a consent_n and_o harmony_n the_o great_a defence_n there_o be_v for_o the_o truth_n truth_n the_o old_a rule_n be_v vis_fw-la unita_fw-la fortior_fw-la our_o saviour_n confirm_v it_o when_o he_o say_v a_o kingdom_n divide_v against_o itself_o can_v stand_v what_o advantage_n do_v the_o enemy_n of_o god_n church_n make_v by_o the_o division_n and_o different_a judgement_n of_o man_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o papist_n do_v confident_o conclude_v that_o all_o will_v turn_v to_o they_o at_o last_o for_o say_v they_o you_o have_v so_o many_o sect_n among_o you_o and_o one_o say_v he_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o another_o he_o have_v but_o all_o contrary_a to_o one_o another_o now_o although_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o recriminate_a yet_o this_o difference_n
object_n matter_n into_o temporal_a spiritual_a and_o temporal_a spiritual_a be_v such_o as_o concern_v the_o welfare_n of_o the_o soul_n temporal_a be_v such_o as_o relate_v to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o outward_a man_n for_o there_o be_v no_o external_a mercy_n but_o god_n have_v promise_v it_o to_o the_o godly_a therefore_o godliness_n be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o this_o life_n and_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v 1_o tim._n 4._o 8._o in_o deed_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n temporal_a promise_n be_v more_o frequent_a and_o spiritual_a more_o rare_a and_o many_o time_n shadow_v out_o by_o the_o temporal_a one_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n spiritual_a promise_n be_v far_o more_o frequent_a and_o temporal_a one_o more_o rare_a yet_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v abundant_o testify_v this_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v the_o godly_a man_n whether_o life_n or_o death_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 23._o and_o that_o only_o they_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o this_o life_n as_o well_o as_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o certain_o if_o god_n have_v give_v we_o christ_n as_o the_o apostle_n argue_v rom._n 18._o how_o shall_v he_o not_o with_o he_o give_v we_o all_o thing_n else_o so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o treasure_n of_o a_o christian_a it_o lie_v in_o god_n promise_n both_o for_o this_o life_n and_o the_o life_n to_o come_v so_o that_o as_o it_o fall_v out_o sometime_o a_o man_n may_v have_v little_a money_n for_o his_o present_a use_n and_o yet_o be_v very_o rich_a in_o bond_n and_o bill_n thus_o it_o be_v sometime_o with_o a_o godly_a man_n though_o he_o have_v a_o promise_n of_o all_o thing_n yet_o for_o the_o present_a he_o may_v want_v all_o thing_n as_o abraham_n have_v a_o promise_n for_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n and_o yet_o for_o the_o present_a have_v not_o where_o to_o set_v his_o foot_n as_o upon_o his_o own_o ground_n only_o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o the_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a promise_n these_o late_a be_v not_o absolute_o promise_v but_o with_o the_o exception_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o with_o this_o limitation_n when_o they_o be_v good_a for_o we_o for_o see_v these_o earthly_a mercy_n be_v not_o ablute_o and_o as_o indipensable_o necessary_a as_o christand_n grace_n be_v so_o therefore_o no_o wonder_n if_o they_o be_v not_o absolute_o promise_v if_o a_o godly_a man_n can_v not_o be_v save_v unless_o he_o have_v riches_n and_o wealth_n unless_o he_o have_v health_n and_o strength_n than_o he_o be_v as_o sure_a to_o have_v they_o as_o he_o have_v christ_n but_o that_o not_o be_v so_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o they_o have_v christ_n and_o yet_o many_o time_n want_v other_o thing_n they_o have_v the_o ocean_n when_o they_o can_v have_v a_o drop_n again_o temporal_a good_a thing_n be_v not_o absolute_o good_a but_o conditional_o and_o upon_o supposition_n though_o they_o may_v be_v good_a in_o themselves_o yet_o not_o to_o thou_o as_o wine_n may_v be_v in_o itself_o comfort_v but_o not_o unto_o a_o man_n in_o a_o fever_n thus_o it_o may_v be_v if_o thou_o shall_v have_v riches_n they_o will_v do_v thou_o hurt_v if_o thou_o shall_v have_v health_n and_o strength_n thy_o corruption_n also_o will_v be_v the_o strong_a those_o thing_n be_v not_o call_v good_a because_o they_o make_v we_o good_a no_o we_o may_v make_v they_o good_a or_o evil_n but_o now_o christ_n be_v such_o a_o infinite_a good_a that_o thy_o have_v of_o he_o can_v never_o be_v hurtful_a to_o thou_o yea_o when_o he_o find_v thou_o evil_a he_o can_v make_v thou_o good_a it_o be_v good_a to_o inform_v ourselves_o thus_o about_o the_o nature_n of_o temporal_a promise_n for_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o murmur_v and_o repine_v when_o we_o find_v not_o these_o promise_n make_v good_a to_o we_o whereas_o we_o shall_v rather_o be_v thankful_a and_o rejoice_v in_o that_o god_n will_v not_o give_v we_o that_o which_o will_v do_v we_o so_o much_o hurt_v and_o certain_o if_o thou_o be_v spiritual_a as_o thou_o shall_v be_v this_o will_v be_v enough_o to_o thou_o that_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v absolute_o promise_v that_o thou_o be_v sure_a to_o have_v christ_n to_o have_v heaven_n how_o sad_a and_o afflict_a soever_o thy_o portion_n may_v be_v in_o this_o world_n do_v it_o not_o argue_v thy_o heart_n to_o be_v too_o carnal_a when_o thou_o mourn_v for_o want_n of_o outward_a mercy_n and_o yet_o christ_n be_v thou_o god_n have_v sanctify_v thou_o god_n have_v convert_v thou_o alas_o have_v not_o god_n in_o this_o do_v more_o for_o thou_o than_o the_o great_a emperor_n in_o the_o world_n that_o have_v not_o godliness_n what_o if_o thou_o have_v not_o riches_n the_o greatness_n other_o have_v it_o may_v be_v they_o have_v not_o the_o christ_n the_o grace_n that_o god_n have_v bestow_v on_o thou_o only_o when_o we_o say_v spiritual_a thing_n be_v absolute_o promise_v you_o must_v distinguish_v of_o spiritual_a thing_n some_o be_v essential_a and_o necessary_o conjoin_v with_o eternal_a glory_n so_o that_o if_o he_o have_v they_o not_o he_o can_v be_v save_v such_o be_v regeneration_n and_o justification_n again_o other_o do_v much_o conduce_v to_o our_o eternal_a happiness_n but_o be_v not_o inseparable_o join_v with_o it_o such_o be_v the_o degree_n of_o grace_n spiritual_a consolation_n and_o joy_n as_o also_o the_o assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n these_o be_v precions-advantage_n more_o to_o be_v desire_v than_o the_o gold_n of_o ophir_n but_o they_o be_v not_o absolute_o promise_v to_o every_o godly_a man_n in_o the_o second_o general_a place_n we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n decree_n they_o be_v the_o execution_n in_o time_n of_o what_o he_o have_v decree_v to_o do_v from_o all_o eternity_n insomuch_o that_o from_o god_n promise_n we_o may_v argue_v to_o his_o predestination_n when_o god_n promise_v justification_n and_o pardon_v of_o sin_n to_o thou_o it_o be_v because_o he_o have_v purpose_v this_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n so_o when_o he_o promise_v to_o give_v grace_n to_o thou_o and_o the_o increase_n thereof_o it_o be_v because_o he_o have_v in_o mercy_n ordain_v thou_o for_o this_o if_o you_o ask_v then_o why_o be_v it_o such_o and_o such_o promise_n be_v fullfil_v you_o must_v not_o have_v recourse_n to_o man_n freewill_n or_o any_o work_n that_o he_o do_v but_o to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o his_o gracious_a counsel_n hence_o some_o expound_v that_o place_n titus_n 1._o 2._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n who_o can_v lie_v have_v promise_v eternal_a life_n before_o the_o world_n begin_v of_o his_o decree_n to_o promise_v for_o it_o be_v not_o proper_a to_o say_v god_n promise_v before_o the_o world_n be_v see_v then_o there_o be_v no_o man_n to_o who_o the_o promise_n can_v be_v make_v therefore_o say_v they_o the_o meaning_n be_v he_o decree_v to_o promise_v but_o there_o be_v another_o interpretation_n more_o probable_a which_o be_v to_o render_v the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o ancient_a age_n allude_v to_o the_o first_o promise_n that_o god_n make_v to_o adam_n upon_o his_o fall_n concern_v the_o woman_n seed_n which_o be_v christ_n for_o till_o that_o promise_n be_v manifest_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n in_o respect_n of_o hope_n and_o comfort_n between_o lose_a mankind_n and_o the_o apostate_n angel_n the_o promise_n then_o of_o god_n be_v but_o god_n predestination_n put_v into_o execution_n hence_o in_o the_o three_o place_n no_o wicked_a man_n have_v any_o promise_n of_o god_n belong_v to_o they_o therefore_o the_o state_n of_o the_o heathen_n ephes_n 2._o be_v say_v to_o be_v they_o without_o christ_n and_o without_o the_o promise_n which_o argue_v as_o desperate_a a_o condition_n as_o when_o those_o of_o the_o old_a world_n be_v without_o the_o ark_n there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o perish_v it_o be_v true_a all_o wicked_a man_n who_o live_v within_o the_o church_n they_o can_v in_o that_o sense_n be_v say_v to_o be_v without_o the_o promise_n as_o heathen_n be_v for_o they_o be_v under_o the_o offer_n of_o promise_n they_o be_v under_o the_o external_a dispensation_n of_o they_o and_o because_o they_o manifest_v a_o outward_a acceptance_n of_o god_n offer_v with_o the_o condition_n tender_v therefore_o we_o may_v call_v they_o the_o child_n of_o the_o promise_n in_o a_o external_a sense_n in_o which_o sense_n rom._n 9_o 4._o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o israelite_n in_o the_o general_n say_v of_o who_o be_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o promise_n in_o this_o sense_n many_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n not_o only_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o of_o the_o promise_n also_o else_o circumcision_n the_o seal_n of_o the_o promise_n have_v not_o be_v
without_o the_o promise_n he_o be_v the_o heir_n and_o therefore_o contrary_a to_o those_o in_o the_o parable_n let_v we_o not_o kill_v he_o but_o obey_v he_o and_o receive_v he_o for_o our_o lord_n and_o then_o the_o inheritance_n will_v be_v we_o can_v thou_o upon_o good_a ground_n say_v christ_n be_v i_o then_o thou_o may_v also_o say_v all_o the_o promise_n be_v i_o but_o know_v christ_n can_v be_v thou_o upon_o any_o other_o term_n than_o by_o forsake_v all_o thy_o sin_n though_o never_o so_o pleasant_a and_o profitable_a christ_n can_v be_v thou_o unless_o you_o leave_v every_o thing_n else_o for_o he_o this_o be_v the_o pearl_n that_o we_o must_v sell_v all_o to_o make_v we_o and_o true_o no_o tongue_n be_v able_a to_o express_v or_o heart_n to_o conceive_v the_o desperate_a condition_n of_o those_o to_o who_o no_o promise_n of_o grace_n do_v belong_v they_o be_v herein_o like_o the_o damn_a in_o hell_n it_o be_v true_a in_o your_o extremity_n in_o your_o terror_n you_o will_v call_v for_o mercy_n cry_v out_o for_o pardon_n but_o where_o be_v the_o christ_n in_o who_o name_n this_o be_v to_o be_v obtain_v certain_o if_o christ_n be_v you_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n also_o subdue_a your_o lust_n and_o sin_n for_o you_o serm._n cxxviii_o the_o promise_n give_v glory_n to_o god_n both_o as_o they_o be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o believe_v by_o we_o 2_o cor._n 1._o 20._o and_o in_o he_o amen_o unto_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n by_o we_o we_o be_v now_o arrive_v at_o the_o final_a cause_n or_o end_n of_o god_n promise_n and_o their_o confirmation_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v god_n glory_n and_o that_o by_o we_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o instrument_n who_o do_v offer_v these_o promise_n and_o so_o god_n be_v glorify_v by_o their_o ministerial_a labour_n some_o copy_n indeed_o read_v our_o glory_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d expound_v it_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o it_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o proclaim_v the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n the_o acceptable_a time_n of_o god_n promise_n but_o that_o be_v not_o so_o probable_a some_o also_o as_o we_o have_v former_o hint_v read_v it_o thus_o and_o therefore_o in_o he_o be_v amen_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n thus_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a and_o one_o manuscript_n greek_a copy_n which_o calvin_n do_v commend_v call_v that_o connexion_n we_o have_v frigida_fw-la a_o frigid_a and_o cold_a one_o whereas_o this_o do_v notable_o discover_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o believer_n that_o they_o be_v to_o set_v to_o their_o amen_n as_o a_o seal_n to_o god_n promise_n and_o certain_o it_o be_v a_o bless_a thing_n for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o be_v nourish_v up_o in_o the_o evangelicall_n amen_o we_o do_v with_o more_o ease_n use_v the_o word_n amen_o optative_o let_v it_o be_v so_o then_o confirmative_o so_o it_o be_v for_o if_o we_o do_v give_v our_o amen_o in_o this_o latter_a sense_n to_o the_o promise_n our_o heart_n will_v have_v full_a quietness_n and_o serenity_n after_o our_o prayer_n when_o we_o have_v cast_v our_o burden_n upon_o the_o lord_n than_o we_o shall_v no_o more_o disquiet_v ourselves_o with_o doubt_v thought_n whether_o the_o lord_n will_v fulfil_v his_o promise_n or_o no._n so_o that_o this_o amen_n will_v exclude_v all_o ergo_n all_o arguing_n and_o doubtful_a disputation_n we_o be_v apt_a to_o molest_v ourselves_o with_o now_o although_o we_o shall_v not_o follow_v those_o copy_n that_o read_v it_o so_o yet_o that_o sense_n must_v necessary_o be_v include_v for_o then_o be_v promise_n to_o god_n glory_n when_o they_o be_v believe_v and_o receive_v by_o we_o let_v we_o then_o serious_o consider_v the_o end_n of_o god_n promise_n why_o have_v he_o take_v such_o a_o full_a and_o sure_a way_n for_o believer_n the_o text_n tell_v we_o it_o be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n we_o will_v think_v the_o promise_n have_v this_o rather_o for_o their_o end_n to_o bring_v salvation_n to_o we_o and_o so_o indeed_o that_o be_v a_o subordinate_a end_n but_o the_o apostle_n he_o instance_v in_o the_o principal_a and_o chief_a end_n of_o all_o which_o be_v god_n glory_n and_o therefore_o chrysostome_n do_v well_o observe_v upon_o this_o text_n that_o this_o be_v a_o sure_a argument_n to_o prevail_v with_o god_n in_o our_o petition_n for_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o god_n promise_n for_o though_o he_o may_v neglect_v our_o salvation_n yet_o he_o will_v not_o his_o own_o glory_n say_v he_o though_o thy_o happiness_n be_v no_o argument_n yet_o his_o own_o honour_n will_v be_v a_o motive_n to_o prevail_v so_o that_o the_o word_n then_o afford_v this_o observation_n that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v make_v on_o his_o part_n and_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v on_o our_o part_n glory_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n when_o we_o believe_v promise_n we_o do_v not_o only_a advantage_n ourselves_o but_o we_o also_o glorify_v god_n this_o be_v not_o sufficient_o think_v of_o for_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o look_v upon_o faith_n in_o a_o promise_n as_o that_o which_o be_v for_o our_o comfort_n our_o profit_n only_o and_o do_v not_o attend_v that_o hereby_o also_o we_o do_v exceed_o glorify_v god_n hence_o abraham_n be_v say_v rom._n 4._o 20._o to_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n give_v glory_n unto_o god_n that_o the_o usefulness_n of_o this_o doctrine_n may_v appear_v we_o will_v consider_v the_o promise_n first_o on_o god_n part_n who_o promise_v they_o and_o show_v how_o this_o make_v to_o the_o great_a glory_n of_o god_n and_o then_o on_o the_o believer_n part_n while_o he_o give_v his_o amen_o to_o they_o and_o for_o the_o first_o god_n glory_n be_v exceed_o manifest_v in_o promise_n by_o these_o know_v particular_o first_o hereby_o his_o bounty_n and_o goodness_n be_v make_v know_v the_o lord_n as_o you_o hear_v former_o be_v infinite_o sufficient_a in_o his_o own_o self_n nothing_o can_v add_v to_o the_o blessedness_n of_o god_n no_o more_o than_o a_o feather_n can_v to_o the_o weight_n of_o a_o mountain_n have_v god_n create_v no_o world_n or_o creature_n therein_o he_o have_v be_v altogether_o happy_a in_o himself_o when_o he_o make_v the_o creature_n it_o be_v not_o for_o that_o end_n that_o eve_n be_v to_o adam_n to_o be_v a_o meet_a help_n to_o he_o no_o it_o be_v his_o plentiful_a goodness_n for_o bonum_fw-la quo_fw-la melius_fw-la eo_fw-la magis_fw-la diffusivum_fw-la god_n be_v say_v indeed_o to_o make_v all_o thing_n for_o himself_o he_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o but_o as_o lessius_fw-la the_o jesuit_n express_v it_o he_o be_v not_o finis_fw-la indigentiae_fw-la but_o assimilationis_fw-la not_o a_o end_n of_o indigency_n as_o if_o he_o want_v any_o thing_n by_o we_o but_o a_o end_n of_o assimilation_n and_o perfection_n whereby_o he_o will_v reduce_v the_o rational_a creature_n to_o his_o own_o likeness_n we_o may_v then_o with_o enlarge_a heart_n admire_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o all_o his_o promise_n have_v the_o lord_n promise_v to_o be_v gracious_a to_o pardon_v sin_n to_o sanctify_v and_o subdue_v corruption_n give_v glory_n to_o god_n in_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v like_o a_o david_n a_o sweet_a singer_n of_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n thou_o may_v read_v in_o every_o promise_n the_o glorious_a attribute_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o bounty_n second_o as_o we_o may_v see_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o goodness_n in_o promise_n so_o also_o the_o glory_n love_n of_o his_o love_n we_o may_v there_o read_v how_o great_a his_o affection_n be_v to_o we_o he_o lay_v aside_o as_o it_o be_v his_o absolute_a majesty_n his_o terrible_a greatness_n and_o condescend_v to_o deal_v with_o we_o in_o a_o way_n of_o promise_n he_o give_v we_o leave_v by_o this_o to_o have_v confident_a and_o familiar_a converse_n with_o he_o so_o that_o as_o it_o be_v the_o unspeakable_a love_n of_o god_n to_o become_v man_n for_o our_o sake_n thus_o also_o it_o be_v to_o become_v in_o promise_n to_o we_o so_o that_o whereas_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n may_v affright_v we_o his_o command_n and_o threaten_n may_v amaze_v we_o now_o his_o promise_n they_o give_v we_o encouragement_n and_o we_o be_v with_o moses_n admit_v as_o it_o be_v to_o speak_v to_o god_n face_n to_o face_n as_o one_o familiar_a friend_n to_o another_o he_o give_v we_o the_o key_n when_o he_o make_v a_o promise_n to_o come_v into_o his_o chamber_n of_o presence_n when_o we_o will_v or_o to_o go_v in_o his_o wine-cellar_n for_o all_o spiritual_a refreshment_n when_o you_o come_v with_o a_o promise_n you_o have_v a_o mandamus_fw-la as_o it_o be_v for_o every_o door_n to_o open_a to_o you_o and_o to_o receive_v you_o in_o these_o promise_n
instance_n what_o weakness_n be_v upon_o the_o best_a if_o the_o lord_n forsake_v they_o but_o for_o a_o while_n peter_n be_v so_o confident_a of_o his_o immoyeablenesse_n that_o he_o think_v though_o all_o other_o shall_v deny_v christ_n yet_o he_o will_v stand_v it_o out_o but_o how_o sad_o do_v he_o fall_v to_o the_o great_a bit_n ernesse_n of_o his_o soul_n thus_o the_o godly_a appear_v sometime_o like_o tree_n in_o the_o winter_n which_o though_o have_v some_o life_n in_o the_o root_n yet_o outward_o have_v no_o apparent_a difference_n from_o those_o that_o be_v stark_o dead_a and_o all_o be_v because_o they_o have_v not_o that_o establish_v grace_n they_o use_v to_o have_v let_v not_o then_o the_o strong_a man_n in_o grace_n glory_n in_o his_o strength_n nor_o the_o swift_a man_n in_o the_o way_n of_o heaven_n glory_n in_o his_o swiftness_n and_o fervency_n for_o he_o be_v alone_o support_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n yea_o which_o be_v the_o more_o observable_a you_o may_v see_v they_o fall_v and_o stagger_v in_o those_o particular_a grace_n wherein_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v most_o corroborate_v abraham_n be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o yet_o he_o discover_v much_o carnal_a fear_n in_o abimelech_n country_n moses_n be_v the_o meek_a man_n upon_o the_o earth_n yet_o in_o what_o a_o froward_a passion_n when_o he_o strike_v the_o rock_n which_o so_o provoke_v god_n that_o thereby_o he_o have_v only_o a_o sight_n of_o canaan_n and_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o enter_v thereinto_o peter_n be_v note_v to_o have_v the_o great_a fervency_n and_o zeal_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o how_o surprise_v with_o cowardice_n and_o sinful_a fear_n in_o these_o grace_n of_o all_o other_o you_o will_v not_o have_v think_v they_o shall_v stumble_v and_o and_o fall_v but_o behold_v how_o it_o be_v the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o do_v bear_v we_o up_o second_o this_o truth_n be_v demonstrate_v from_o those_o wonderful_a dispensation_n they_o towards_o his_o best_a servant_n many_o be_v the_o temptation_n that_o they_o be_v assault_v with_o and_o all_o this_o be_v to_o show_v their_o impotency_n to_o they_o to_o discover_v their_o infirmity_n to_o they_o that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v humble_a always_o in_o their_o own_o eye_n thus_o abraham_n and_o jacob_n they_o be_v in_o constant_a exercise_n no_o soon_o be_v they_o deliver_v from_o the_o lion_n but_o a_o bear_n meet_v they_o one_o wave_z followed_z another_o and_o what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o all_o this_o but_o to_o keep_v they_o in_o continual_a dependence_n and_o wait_v upon_o god_n david_n also_o be_v constant_o in_o a_o wilderness_n where_o no_o water_n be_v and_o god_n end_v herein_o be_v to_o make_v he_o see_v his_o salvation_n be_v in_o god_n alone_o yea_o paul_n himself_o though_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o be_v so_o preserve_v that_o after_o his_o conversion_n we_o read_v of_o no_o other_o extraordinary_a fall_n he_o have_v yet_o lest_o hereby_o as_o also_o from_o many_o other_o glorious_a privilege_n he_o enjoy_v he_o shall_v be_v puff_v up_o above_o measure_n 2_o cor._n 12._o he_o have_v the_o buffet_n of_o satan_n and_o a_o thorn_n in_o the_o flesh_n to_o make_v he_o go_v out_o of_o himself_o and_o to_o rest_v on_o christ_n only_o so_o that_o god_n end_n in_o put_v they_o upon_o these_o trial_n be_v to_o instruct_v they_o wherein_o or_o in_o who_o their_o strength_n do_v consist_v three_o that_o it_o be_v god_n alone_o who_o do_v establish_v the_o most_o holy_a will_v appear_v other_o if_o you_o consider_v how_o great_a the_o power_n subtlety_n and_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v who_o be_v set_v against_o they_o more_o than_o any_o other_o as_o christ_n tell_v his_o apostle_n satan_n have_v a_o desire_n to_o sift_v they_o as_o wheat_n luk._n 22._o 31._o thus_o the_o devil_n do_v with_o the_o great_a violence_n oppose_v those_o that_o be_v more_o esteem_v for_o gift_n and_o grace_n than_o other_o these_o like_a uriah_n stand_v in_o the_o forefront_n of_o the_o battle_n for_o if_o they_o ●al●_n if_o they_o become_v a_o stumble_a block_n and_o a_o reproach_n god_n be_v more_o dishonour_v wicked_a man_n be_v more_o harden_v then_o if_o many_o weak_a christian_n shall_v fall_v and_o therefore_o those_o that_o be_v remarkable_o godly_a they_o be_v to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o high-mindednesse_a and_o self-confidence_n that_o indeed_o they_o be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o great_a fear_n and_o watchfulness_n for_o it_o be_v such_o as_o thou_o be_v the_o devil_n aim_v at_o the_o tree_n full_a of_o fruit_n have_v the_o great_a violence_n make_v upon_o their_o bough_n now_o alas_o what_o be_v a_o godly_a man_n strength_n to_o the_o devil_n violent_a assault_n and_o subtle_a insinuation_n if_o god_n do_v not_o strengthen_v he_o what_o defence_n have_v a_o sheep_n against_o a_o roar_a lion_n observe_v that_o reason_n express_v 1_o john_n 4._o 4._o you_o have_v overcome_v antichrist_n say_v that_o apostle_n but_o why_o because_o great_a be_v he_o that_o be_v in_o you_o than_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n in_o you_o that_o be_v emphatical_a it_o be_v christ_n dwell_v in_o we_o that_o keep_v off_o satan_n victorious_a power_n and_o all_o his_o instrument_n thus_o also_o 1_o john_n 5._o 5._o it_o be_v faith_n that_o overcome_v the_o world_n which_o always_o rely_v on_o a_o power_n without_o we_o for_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v a_o grace_n do_v not_o but_o as_o it_o receive_v strength_n from_o christ_n as_o the_o vine_n and_o ivy_n be_v not_o support_v of_o themselves_o but_o by_o those_o tree_n they_o lean_v unto_o four_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o god_n alone_o do_v establish_v the_o most_o able_a believer_n from_o he_o that_o providence_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o many_o time_n leave_v such_o to_o themselves_o that_o in_o their_o own_o experience_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o other_o they_o may_v see_v all_o help_n be_v from_o god_n alone_o this_o truth_n the_o godly_a be_v not_o always_o so_o practical_o convince_v of_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v hence_o they_o be_v apt_a to_o be_v puff_v up_o sometime_o with_o secret_a delight_n and_o complacency_n in_o themselves_o for_o which_o god_n do_v leave_v they_o to_o themselves_o that_o they_o thereby_o fall_v may_v know_v what_o they_o be_v of_o themselves_o and_o what_o they_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n thus_o it_o be_v note_v of_o hezekiah_n a_o man_n full_a of_o integrity_n in_o god_n way_n 2_o chron._n 32._o 31._o god_n leave_v he_o to_o try_v he_o that_o he_o may_v know_v all_o that_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n even_o this_o good_a man_n do_v not_o know_v how_o base_a false_a and_o deceitful_a his_o heart_n be_v and_o therefore_o god_n leave_v he_o and_o we_o see_v the_o bless_a effect_n of_o this_o merciful_a desertion_n vers_fw-la 26._o hezekiah_n humble_v himself_o for_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o here_o then_o a_o plain_a instance_n that_o god_n many_o time_n in_o much_o mercy_n leave_v the_o godly_a to_o themselves_o that_o so_o they_o may_v have_v full_a sentiment_n of_o this_o truth_n upon_o their_o heart_n this_o also_o be_v the_o case_n of_o peter_n who_o do_v not_o answer_v his_o name_n of_o a_o rock_n in_o this_o case_n and_o have_v the_o church_n be_v build_v on_o he_o as_o the_o papist_n boast_v it_o have_v fall_v all_o into_o piece_n for_o it_o be_v christ_n look_n upon_o he_o that_o recover_v he_o not_o any_o strength_n of_o his_o own_o but_o how_o come_v peter_n thus_o to_o stumble_v and_o fall_v it_o be_v because_o of_o his_o self-confidence_n and_o presumption_n in_o his_o own_o power_n yea_o some_o have_v say_v that_o christ_n leave_v he_o mere_o to_o himself_o not_o for_o any_o precede_a sin_n in_o peter_n but_o only_o by_o way_n of_o mere_a dispensation_n that_o hereby_o a_o example_n of_o humility_n and_o holy_a fear_n may_v be_v leave_v upon_o record_n to_o all_o age_n but_o that_o peter_n sin_n of_o gross_a confidence_n do_v deserve_v this_o gradual_a dereliction_n be_v more_o than_o probable_a only_o we_o grant_v that_o as_o god_n do_v sometime_o tempt_v so_o also_o forsake_v sometime_o for_o sin_n antecedent_n sometime_o from_o his_o mere_a sovereignty_n and_o holy_a wisdom_n thereby_o to_o teach_v man_n that_o which_o otherwise_o will_v not_o be_v acknowledge_v it_o be_v indeed_o a_o rule_n that_o deus_fw-la neminem_fw-la descrit_fw-fr nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la deseratur_fw-la god_n forsake_v none_o that_o do_v not_o forsake_v he_o which_o may_v be_v grant_v as_o true_a if_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o desertion_n by_o way_n of_o anger_n and_o punishment_n but_o of_o a_o desertion_n by_o way_n of_o mercy_n and_o trial_n or_o thereby_o to_o make_v way_n for_o great_a dispensation_n of_o his_o glory_n so_o it_o be_v not_o always_o true_a
we_o have_v dominion_n over_o your_o faith_n no_o more_o than_o they_o can_v say_v we_o be_v the_o true_a and_o great_a jehovah_n they_o can_v make_v a_o religion_n make_v sacrament_n but_o enjoin_v the_o observance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v require_v in_o the_o word_n and_o the_o reason_n which_o exclude_v both_o spiritual_a and_o civil_a governor_n be_v general_a to_o all_o we_o be_v not_o baptize_v into_o any_o man_n name_n neither_o have_v any_o emperor_n or_o church-officer_n die_v for_o we_o they_o have_v not_o be_v crucify_v for_o we_o neither_o have_v they_o power_n over_o our_o heart_n to_o impose_v a_o command_n upon_o they_o which_o must_v necessary_o be_v in_o the_o duty_n of_o faith_n neither_o can_v they_o damn_v or_o save_v man_n hence_o the_o apostle_n say_v there_o be_v one_o lawgiver_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o to_o destroy_v jam._n 4._o 12._o four_o although_o divine_a faith_n be_v such_o a_o noble_a and_o excellent_a work_n come_v from_o heaven_n and_o ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n again_o yet_o it_o do_v admit_v degree_n of_o degree_n in_o the_o subject_n where_o it_o be_v some_o have_v strong_a faith_n some_o weak_a some_o have_v more_o explicit_a and_o extensive_a faith_n than_o other_o yea_o and_o the_o most_o settle_a believer_n be_v subject_a to_o temptation_n they_o be_v often_o assault_v and_o that_o even_o in_o their_o faith_n about_o the_o principle_n and_o fundamental_o about_o god_n about_o the_o scripture_n about_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n about_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n and_o eternal_a torment_n fiery_a dart_n be_v sometime_o inject_v for_o which_o the_o people_n of_o god_n do_v abhor_v and_o loathe_v themselves_o therefore_o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o little_a faith_n and_o no_o faith_n between_o doubt_n and_o atheism_n and_o true_o for_o this_o end_n do_v god_n suffer_v error_n and_o heresy_n to_o arise_v in_o his_o church_n that_o truth_n may_v be_v more_o confirm_v and_o the_o approve_a may_v be_v make_v manifest_a it_o be_v to_o exercise_v the_o spiritual_a wisdom_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o godly_a whether_o they_o can_v discern_v of_o thing_n that_o differ_v and_o can_v tell_v which_o be_v the_o stranger_n voice_n and_o which_o be_v the_o true_a shepherd_n it_o be_v a_o very_a grievous_a temptation_n to_o be_v assault_v about_o fiducial_a faith_n whether_o the_o promise_n belong_v to_o thou_o in_o particular_a but_o in_o some_o respect_n it_o be_v far_o more_o terrible_a to_o be_v exercise_v in_o doubt_n about_o dogmatical_a faith_n for_o this_o tend_v to_o the_o raze_n of_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o argument_n or_o remedy_n to_o cure_v this_o distemper_n be_v more_o difficult_a use_v of_o instruction_n be_v faith_n thus_o immediate_o respect_v god_n above_o all_o instrument_n though_o make_v use_n of_o they_o then_o first_o they_o be_v not_o faith_n which_o do_v whole_o depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o man_n though_o never_o so_o eminent_a we_o may_v not_o rely_v on_o austin_n on_o chrysostome_n neither_o do_v we_o own_o those_o expression_n of_o lutheran_n and_o calvinist_n for_o although_o we_o acknowledge_v they_o eminent_a instrument_n in_o propagate_a of_o the_o gospel_n yet_o we_o believe_v not_o upon_o their_o authority_n mere_o because_o luther_n and_o calvin_n say_v so_o it_o be_v true_a nothing_o be_v more_o ordinary_a than_o to_o admire_v man_n person_n and_o while_o we_o extol_v their_o gift_n and_o ability_n we_o be_v secret_o entice_v to_o think_v of_o worthy_a men●_n above_o what_o we_o ought_v and_o find_v a_o awe_n in_o our_o conscience_n to_o recede_v from_o any_o opinion_n they_o have_v deliver_v but_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n we_o do_v not_o hereby_o become_v guilty_a of_o spiritual_a idolatry_n set_v up_o man_n as_o idol_n in_o our_o heart_n second_o this_o instruct_v that_o gross_a ignorant_a man_n can_v have_v any_o divine_a faith_n for_o they_o feel_v nothing_o of_o any_o work_n of_o god_n spirit_n or_o illumination_n upon_o their_o understanding_n hence_o they_o believe_v as_o other_o man_n believe_v as_o if_o a_o man_n be_v not_o to_o be_v save_v by_o his_o own_o faith_n three_o it_o show_v the_o sceptical_a and_o pyrrhonian_n man_n in_o religion_n the_o mere_a seeker_n that_o he_o have_v no_o faith_n if_o he_o have_v the_o substance_n of_o thing_n hope_v for_o and_o the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v upon_o his_o soul_n he_o will_v not_o be_v toss_v up_o and_o down_o as_o he_o be_v four_o it_o show_v that_o the_o mere_a carnal_a politician_n have_v no_o divine_a faith_n for_o he_o look_v upon_o religion_n but_o as_o a_o humane_a device_n or_o a_o state-engine_n and_o therefore_o can_v transform_v into_o all_o shape_n and_o time_n how_o contrary_a be_v this_o to_o true_a faith_n finis_fw-la a_o alphabetical_a table_n contain_v the_o chief_a head_n of_o this_o treatise_n a_o administration_n the_o godly_a sometime_o deceive_v about_o god_n administration_n towards_o they_o pag._n 293_o 294_o 295_o 296_o 297_o reason_n of_o it_o 298_o rule_n for_o the_o prevent_v it_o 299_o 300_o affliction_n god_n comfort_v his_o people_n in_o all_o their_o affliction_n both_o spiritual_a 167_o and_o temporal_a 168_o it_o be_v a_o special_a duty_n to_o comfort_v the_o afflict_a see_v comfort_n the_o most_o eminent_a saint_n when_o afflict_a need_n comfort_n 188_o 189_o 190_o see_v suffering_n it_o be_v of_o great_a use_n to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o affliction_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n 256_o reason_n of_o it_o ibid._n what_o use_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o preach_v about_o those_o affliction_n which_o paul_n and_o other_o suffer_v from_o the_o heathen_n 257_o 258_o 259_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o godly_a heavy_a and_o yet_o light_a 270_o faith_n and_o flesh_n pass_v different_a judgement_n upon_o affliction_n 270_o 271_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 271_o 272_o how_o we_o may_v know_v when_o flesh_n and_o when_o faith_n speak_v in_o affliction_n 274_o 275_o 276_o it_o be_v very_o useful_a to_o know_v that_o 277_o natural_a strength_n not_o able_a to_o carry_v a_o man_n through_o all_o affliction_n 280_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 280_o 281_o 282_o see_v trouble_n and_o suffering_n anoint_v all_o true_a believer_n have_v a_o spiritual_a anoint_v from_o god_n 620_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 620_o 621_o apostle_n what_o a_o apostle_n be_v 15_o two_o kind_n of_o they_o ibid._n they_o be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o first_o building_n of_o the_o church_n 16_o the_o property_n of_o a_o apostle_n 16_o 17_o 18_o 19_o of_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o office_n of_o a_o apostle_n and_o of_o a_o ordinary_a pastor_n 506_o 507_o assurance_n a_o believer_n may_v be_v assure_v he_o perform_v duty_n with_o a_o upright_a heart_n 394_o what_o be_v require_v to_o a_o assurance_n of_o our_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n 395_o 396_o the_o impediment_n of_o assurance_n 400_o 401_o god_n command_v to_o look_v after_o it_o 401_o 402_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o 402_o caution_n about_o it_o 403_o b_o blessing_n a_o threefold_a blessing_n mention_v in_o scripture_n 127_o christian_n ought_v to_o bless_v god_n for_o all_o his_o mercy_n ibid._n what_o be_v require_v to_o our_o blessing_n god_n aright_o 128_o 129_o 130_o 131_o we_o shall_v bless_v god_n more_o for_o spiritual_a mercy_n than_o for_o other_o 134_o see_v praising_n god_n c_o call_n the_o divine_a call_n of_o minister_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v 19_o two_o thing_n premise_v concern_v a_o minister_n call_v 20_o what_o be_v the_o practical_a concernment_n which_o will_v follow_v those_o who_o have_v a_o true_a call_v from_o god_n to_o the_o minister_n 21_o to_o the_o people_n 22_o the_o call_v to_o church-office_n proceed_v mere_o from_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o god_n 33_o 34_o what_o be_v there_o mean_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n 34_o 35_o 36_o change_a of_o change_a in_o matter_n of_o religion_n 546_o christ_n why_o our_o saviour_n call_v christ_n 36_o what_o it_o do_v imply_v 27_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 135_o proposition_n explain_v how_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 136_o 137._o 561_o 562_o 563_o 564_o this_o truth_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o christian_a comfort_n 138_o 139_o christ_n the_o only_a object_n of_o all_o preach_n 557_o when_o christ_n be_v preach_v 557_o 558_o 559_o 560_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o anoint_a of_o god_n 569_o see_v jesus_n church_n of_o the_o name_n church_n 50_o 51_o the_o nature_n and_o description_n of_o a_o church_n 51_o it_o be_v a_o society_n 52_o call_v of_o god_n 52_o 53_o 54_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o christ_n and_o church-communion_n 55_o 56_o wherein_o church_n communion_n consist_v 56_o 57_o the_o note_n and_o sign_n of_o a_o church_n 58_o 59_o why_o necessary_a
to_o be_v know_v ibid._n all_o be_v not_o of_o equal_a necessity_n ibid._n a_o latitude_n to_o be_v grant_v in_o the_o application_n of_o they_o 60_o of_o the_o twofold_a form_n of_o the_o church_n internal_a and_o external_a ib._n the_o mark_n of_o the_o visible_a not_o to_o be_v confound_v with_o the_o property_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n 61_o why_o paul_n write_v to_o the_o church_n and_o not_o to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 63_o a_o church_n be_v god_n people_n in_o a_o more_o peculiar_a manner_n 64_o seven_o thing_n imply_v in_o the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o god_n 64_o 65_o 66_o 67_o a_o church_n sometime_o gather_v among_o the_o most_o profane_a people_n 69_o a_o church_n may_v be_v a_o true_a one_o though_o defile_v with_o many_o corruption_n 70_o three_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 73_o three_o reason_n demonstrate_v it_o 76_o what_o corruption_n be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 71_o 72_o the_o soundness_n and_o purity_n of_o a_o church_n admit_v of_o degree_n 73_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v a_o church_n do_v far_o surpass_v all_o civil_a society_n and_o temporal_a dignity_n 77_o three_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 78_o 79_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o 79_o 80_o it_o be_v hard_a for_o church_n to_o keep_v within_o their_o proper_a bound_n about_o church_n administration_n 80_o it_o be_v a_o minister_n duty_n by_o all_o lawful_a mean_n to_o promote_v the_o church_n he_o be_v relate_v to_o 81_o all_n that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n be_v saint_n by_o profession_n 83_o what_o be_v comprehend_v under_o church-saintship_a 84_o 85_o all_o saint_n ought_v to_o join_v themselves_o to_o church_n communion_n 91_o yet_o some_o cause_n may_v excuse_v they_o 91_o 92_o what_o be_v those_o sinful_a ground_n why_o many_o do_v not_o join_v themselves_o to_o church_n communion_n 93_o 94_o the_o best_a church_n changeable_a in_o their_o affection_n to_o their_o guide_n 464_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 464_o 465_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o 466_o 467_o the_o church_n esteem_v many_o thing_n which_o the_o world_n despise_v 31_o 32_o church-officer_n church-officer_n appoint_v by_o christ_n as_o the_o head_n 28_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 29_o 30_o two_o thing_n church-officer_n be_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o pride_n and_o idleness_n 30_o 31_o how_o it_o concern_v church-officer_n to_o agree_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n 46_o three_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 46_o 47_o three_o thing_n conduce_v to_o that_o happy_a agreement_n 47_o 48_o comfort_n god_n a_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n to_o he_o 148_o what_o be_v imply_v in_o that_o expression_n 149_o what_o in_o the_o word_n comfort_n 150_o 151_o proposition_n about_o the_o comfort_n of_o god_n 152_o it_o be_v so_o to_o be_v manage_v as_o to_o be_v make_v a_o antidote_n against_o despair_n and_o yet_o a_o curb_n to_o presumption_n ib._n comfort_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v of_o without_o scripture-light_n 153_o god_n actual_o comfort_n his_o people_n 157_o how_o god_n comfort_v his_o people_n 158_o 159_o 160_o god_n a_o god_n of_o comfort_n only_o to_o believer_n 161_o six_o proposition_n clear_v the_o truth_n 162_o 163_o 164_o 165_o god_n comfort_n his_o people_n in_o all_o affliction_n 166_o 167_o no_o philosopher_n ever_o have_v the_o true_a art_n or_o ground_n of_o comfort_n 169_o god_n comfort_n only_o by_o the_o scripture_n 170_o what_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o comfort_n in_o scripture_n 171_o 172_o 173_o how_o god_n be_v say_v to_o comfort_v his_o people_n in_o all_o their_o affliction_n notwithstanding_o they_o be_v oft_o disconsolate_a 174_o 175_o 176_o 177_o comfort_n not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 175_o these_o only_o be_v fit_a to_o comfort_v other_o who_o have_v the_o experimental_a work_n of_o god_n grace_n upon_o their_o own_o heart_n 182_o four_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 182_o 183_o 184_o four_o reason_n confirm_v it_o 184_o 185_o 186_o it_o be_v a_o special_a duty_n to_o comfort_v the_o afflict_a 187_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 187_o 188_o 189_o 190_o two_o thing_n require_v to_o the_o comfort_v other_o in_o a_o right_a manner_n 190_o 191_o the_o same_o ground_n of_o comfort_n which_o revive_v one_o may_v revive_v another_o also_o 191_o what_o be_v the_o general_a ground_n of_o comfort_n in_o affliction_n 192_o 193_o reason_n of_o it_o 193_o 194_o 195_o our_o comfort_n be_v and_o abound_v by_o christ_n 209_o 210_o how_o christ_n make_v our_o comfort_n to_o abound_v in_o our_o suffering_n for_o his_o sake_n 210_o 211_o 212_o god_n common_o proportion_v our_o comfort_n to_o our_o suffering_n 214_o and_o sometime_o make_v they_o to_o exceed_v 215_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o 216_o 217_o why_o god_n often_o deny_v comfort_n in_o trouble_n 217_o 218_o our_o comfort_n be_v promote_v by_o other_o suffer_v for_o christ_n 223_o 224_o 225_o 226_o 227_o it_o be_v universal_a holiness_n that_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o comfort_n 443_o communion_n two_o sort_n of_o communion_n 251_o communion_n with_o the_o sufferer_n for_o christ_n a_o good_a way_n to_o interest_n we_o in_o their_o glory_n ibid._n confidence_n self-confidence_n self_n confidence_n a_o great_a sin_n 302_o proposition_n clear_v the_o nature_n of_o self_n confidence_n 302_o 303_o 304_o a_o godly_a man_n sometime_o guilty_a of_o it_o 309_o 310_o of_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o it_o 313_o 314_o 315_o confirm_v vide_fw-la establish_v conscience_n of_o the_o conscience_n 384_o the_o witness_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n a_o great_a ground_n of_o comfort_n 385_o what_o be_v require_v to_o a_o good_a conscience_n 385_o 386_o 387_o 388_o 389_o how_o the_o spirit_n witness_n with_o our_o conscience_n 389_o what_o be_v those_o effect_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o our_o conscience_n be_v right_o guide_v in_o witness_v to_o we_o 390_o 391_o distinction_n concern_v conscience_n and_o its_o testimony_n 392_o 393_o consolation_n vide_fw-la comfort_n conversation_n of_o a_o twofold_a conversation_n 443_o what_o be_v require_v to_o a_o good_a conversation_n 445_o 446_o conversion_n a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n in_o the_o person_n the_o convert_v 42_o and_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o conversion_n 43_o the_o reason_n of_o both_o 44_o corinth_n of_o the_o city_n corinth_n 68_o d_o day_n christ_n have_v a_o solemn_a day_n wherein_o great_a change_n will_v be_v make_v 479_o wherein_o these_o great_a change_n will_v be_v 479_o 480_o 481_o 482_o etc._n etc._n dead_a of_o god_n raise_v the_o dead_a 326_o what_o it_o imply_v 328_o 329_o death_n the_o natural_a fear_n of_o death_n not_o remove_v by_o grace_n 284_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 285_o 286_o of_o what_o use_n the_o natural_a fear_n of_o death_n be_v 286_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a fear_n of_o death_n in_o all_o though_o in_o some_o more_o in_o some_o less_o 288_o when_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v sinful_a 289_o 290_o 291_o deliverance_n deliverance_n both_o temporal_a and_o spiritual_a from_o god_n 341_o 342_o despair_n whence_o despair_n arise_v 352_o dispensation_n all_o god_n dispensation_n further_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n 242_o etc._n etc._n two_o sort_n of_o dispensation_n which_o conduce_v to_o that_o end_n 244_o vide_fw-la administration_n e_o earnest_n grace_n the_o earnest_a of_o glory_n 651_o how_o grace_n and_o a_o earnest_n differ_v 652_o 653_o what_o be_v imply_v in_o the_o earnest_n of_o god_n spirit_n 654_o 655_o 656_o they_o who_o have_v the_o earnest_a of_o the_o spirit_n can_v fall_v away_o 657_o 658_o education_n education_n not_o to_o be_v rest_v upon_o 44_o 45_o ends._n what_o be_v these_o inferior_a end_n interpose_v betwixt_o god_n and_o we_o which_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o look_v upon_o 416_o 417_o enjoyment_n temporal_a enjoyment_n as_o well_o as_o spiritual_a mercy_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 369_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 370_o 371_o 372_o reason_n for_o it_o 373_o establish_v wherein_o the_o establish_n work_n of_o god_n grace_n lie_v 607_o 608_o 609_o 610_o 611_o 612_o argument_n prove_v all_o establish_n to_o be_v from_o god_n 613_o the_o most_o eminent_a need_n establishment_n as_o well_o as_o the_o weak_a 614_o demonstration_n of_o it_o 615_o 616_o 617_o it_o be_v in_o christ_n alone_o that_o we_o be_v establish_v 617_o 618_o reason_n why_o we_o can_v establish_v ourselves_o 636_o 637_o experience_n experience_n in_o former_a shall_v encourage_v to_o trust_v in_o god_n for_o future_a mercy_n 345_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 346_o 347_o f_o faith_n of_o the_o different_a judgement_n which_o faith_n and_o flesh_n put_v upon_o affliction_n 274_o etc._n etc._n the_o division_n of_o faith_n as_o to_o the_o object_n 638_o whether_o in_o faith_n and_o by_o faith_n be_v oath_n 665_o minister_n have_v no_o power_n over_o a_o christian_n faith_n 684_o a_o christian_n faith_n relate_v only_o to_o god_n 694_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 696_o 697_o father_n
work_n consist_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n in_o comfort_v the_o afflict_a 689_o n_o name_n the_o prefix_v of_o a_o name_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o prove_v the_o authority_n of_o any_o scripture_n 11_o note_n what_o thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o note_n 59_o o_o oath_n what_o a_o oath_n be_v 659_o 660_o 661_o whether_o word_n be_v necessary_a to_o a_o oath_n 663_o whether_o in_o faith_n and_o by_o faith_n be_v oath_n 665_o officer_n of_o the_o church_n vid._n church-officer_n ordinance_n public_a ordinance_n useful_a and_o acceptable_a 374_o 375_o reason_n for_o it_o 375_o 376_o 377_o oil_n the_o property_n of_o material_a oil_n compare_v with_o spiritual_a 621_o 622_o 623_o p_o patience_n it_o be_v patience_n in_o suffering_n that_o make_v they_o conduce_v to_o our_o salvation_n 232_o patience_n commend_v by_o all_o 233_o what_o go_v to_o the_o produce_v of_o it_o 234_o 235_o motive_n to_o patience_n 236_o 237_o 238_o 239_o paul_n why_o saul_n call_v paul_n 2_o paul_n sin_n 3_o his_o serviceablenesse_n 3_o 4_o his_o learning_n 6_o of_o the_o name_n paul_n be_v prefix_v before_o his_o epistle_n 10_o 11_o that_o argue_v they_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a authority_n 11_o why_o he_o style_v himself_o a_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 31_o peace_n peace_n from_o god_n and_o christ_n earnest_o to_o be_v pray_v for_o 108_o wherein_o it_o consist_v how_o wrought_v and_o preserve_v 109_o 110_o etc._n etc._n what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o 114_o 115_o direction_n for_o the_o attain_n of_o it_o 116_o people_n as_o relate_v to_o minister_n vide_fw-la minister_n perseverance_n it_o be_v perseverance_n that_o be_v the_o crown_n of_o holiness_n 458_o hopeful_a beginning_n in_o the_o way_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o enough_o without_o perseverance_n 459_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 459_o 460_o 461_o prayer_n the_o most_o eminent_a in_o gift_n and_o grace_n still_o need_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o mean_a 359_o reason_n of_o it_o 360_o people_n ought_v to_o pray_v for_o their_o minister_n 361_o 362_o 363_o prayer_n to_o be_v make_v not_o only_o private_o but_o public_o 375_o reason_n of_o it_o 375_o 376_o praising_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o praise_n god_n for_o all_o his_o mercy_n 364_o what_o be_v require_v to_o our_o praising_n god_n 365_o 366_o 367_o motive_n to_o it_o 367_o 368_o vide_fw-la blessing_n public_a praise_n vid._n public_a prayer_n preach_v christ_n be_v the_o only_a object_n of_o our_o preach_v 557_o when_o christ_n be_v preach_v 557_o 558_o 559_o presumption_n sign_n of_o presumption_n 350_o 351_o principle_n two_o distinct_a principle_n in_o every_o regenerate_a man_n 271_o 272_o of_o principle_n in_o general_n 525_o 526_o 527_o of_o the_o principle_n of_o a_o godly_a man_n 527_o 528_o 529_o principle_n of_o flesh_n vid._n flesh_n professor_n carnal_a professor_n make_v great_a opposition_n to_o the_o ministry_n 261_o 262_o 263_o who_o be_v they_o which_o profess_v religion_n mere_o upon_o carnal_a end_n 263_o 264_o etc._n etc._n promise_v god_n have_v make_v many_o promise_n to_o we_o in_o christ_n 581_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 581_o 582_o 583_o 584_o of_o the_o several_a sort_n of_o promise_n 585_o 586_o promise_n be_v the_o execution_n of_o god_n decree_n 587_o no_o wicked_a man_n have_v any_o right_n to_o the_o promise_n ibid._n the_o promise_n suppose_v faith_n 588_o god_n have_v seal_v they_o to_o we_o ibid._n it_o be_v great_a skill_n to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o promise_n 589_o the_o promise_n be_v all_o confirm_v in_o christ_n 591_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 591_o 592_o 593_o what_o a_o christian_a shall_v do_v that_o doubt_n whether_o the_o promise_n belong_v to_o he_o or_o no._n 596_o 597_o 598_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n will_v never_o be_v alter_v 598_o 599_o the_o promise_n give_v glory_n to_o god_n both_o as_o make_v by_o he_o and_o as_o believe_v by_o we_o 600_o 601_o wherein_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v manifest_v in_o his_o promise_n 601_o 602_o how_o faith_n in_o the_o promise_n give_v glory_n to_o he_o 602_o 603_o our_o establishment_n in_o the_o promise_n be_v the_o work_n of_o g●…lone_o 605_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 606_o 607_o sign_n of_o our_o interest_n in_o the_o promise_n 640_o prudence_n what_o be_v that_o holy_a prudence_n that_o minister_n be_v to_o use_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o ministerial_a power_n 678_o 679_o wherein_o it_o do_v consist_v 680_o 681_o r_o raise_v what_o be_v employ_v in_o god_n raise_v from_o the_o dead_a 328_o 329_o rejoice_v a_o holy_a rejoice_v and_o glory_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n lawful_a 380_o what_o be_v require_v to_o this_o holy_a rejoice_v 380_o 381_o in_o what_o respect_n it_o be_v lawful_a 381_o wherein_o unlawful_a 382_o 383_o religion_n religion_n oppose_v by_o two_o sort_n of_o people_n 262_o who_o be_v those_o who_o profess_v religion_n only_o upon_o carnal_a ground_n 263_o 264_o etc._n etc._n s_o saint_n god_n of_o great_a sinner_n oft_o make_v eminent_a saint_n 2_o reason_n for_o it_o 4_o 5_o all_z that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n be_v saint_n by_o profession_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v so_o by_o conversation_n 83_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o real_a saintship_n 86_o 87_o 89_o two_o motive_n to_o it_o 88_o 89_o saint_n ought_v to_o join_v themselves_o in_o a_o churchway_n 91_o yet_o some_o reason_n may_v excuse_v they_o 90_o what_o those_o reason_n be_v 91_o 92_o what_o reason_n be_v not_o justifiable_a 93_o 94_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o poor_a saint_n not_o to_o be_v neglect_v 94_o salvation_n the_o salvation_n of_o believer_n be_v promote_v by_o their_o suffering_n for_o christ_n 228_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a salvation_n temporal_a and_o spiritual_a 241_o the_o salvation_n of_o god_n people_n be_v further_v by_o all_o his_o dispensation_n 242_o what_o this_o salvation_n do_v imply_v 242_o 243_o two_o sort_n of_o dispensation_n whereby_o salvation_n be_v promote_v 244_o saviour_n our_o saviour_n how_o call_v jesus_n christ_n 1_o 24_o 26_o how_o christ_n be_v a_o saviour_n 25_o what_o kind_n of_o saviour_n he_o be_v 26_o vide_fw-la jesus_n saul_n why_o saul_n be_v call_v paul_n 2_o scripture_n the_o penman_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v instrument_n not_o the_o author_n 12_o we_o be_v to_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o the_o style_n and_o method_n of_o scripture_n 12_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n not_o to_o be_v question_v 13._o four_o consideration_n whereby_o to_o arm_v ourselves_o against_o the_o opposer_n of_o scripture_n 13_o 14_o seal_v the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v his_o seal_a one_o 625_o proposition_n clear_v it_o 625_o 626_o what_o the_o seal_v of_o the_o godly_a imply_v 626_o 627_o 628_o 629_o the_o description_n of_o the_o seal_v of_o god_n spirit_n 632_o 633_o 634_o etc._n etc._n whether_o all_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v his_o seal_a one_o 645_o 646_o how_o this_o seal_v may_v be_v stop_v 647_o 648_o self-confidence_n vide_fw-la confidence_n simplicity_n godly_a simplicity_n afford_v much_o comfort_n 404_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o simplicity_n as_o it_o relate_v to_o god_n 405_o 406_o 407_o 408_o etc._n etc._n as_o it_o relate_v to_o man_n 411_o 412_o sincerity_n how_o it_o be_v call_v godly_a sincerity_n 413_o godly_a sincerity_n carry_v a_o man_n above_o all_o other_o thing_n to_o god_n himself_o 414_o what_o it_o be_v in_o god_n that_o a_o sincere_a heart_n look_v upon_o 415_o 416_o proposition_n discover_v the_o nature_n and_o effect_n of_o godly_a sincerity_n 418_o 419_o 420_o spirit_n how_o the_o spirit_n witness_v with_o our_o conscience_n 390_o spiritual_a spiritual_a mercy_n to_o be_v desire_v before_o temporal_a 96_o a_o natural_a man_n can_v desire_v spiritual_a thing_n ibid._n only_o the_o regenerate_a 97_o what_o be_v the_o qualification_n which_o provoke_v the_o godly_a to_o esteem_v spiritual_a favour_n before_o other_o ibid._n the_o reason_n of_o it_o 98_o god_n spiritual_a work_n upon_o his_o people_n be_v not_o only_o for_o their_o but_o also_o for_o other_o good_a 179_o two_o kind_n of_o spiritual_a gift_n ibid._n what_o be_v these_o spiritual_a thing_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v serviceable_a to_o other_o 180_o 181_o suffer_v what_o be_v imply_v in_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n 196_o 197_o what_o in_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n abound_v 197_o the_o profession_n of_o christ_n be_v accompany_v with_o suffering_n sometime_o excessive_a ibid._n proposition_n clear_v it_o 198_o 199_o 200_o what_o be_v require_v in_o our_o suffer_v for_o christ_n ex_fw-la parate_a objecti_fw-la 201_o 202_o 203_o what_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la subjecti_fw-la 205_o 206_o 207_o 208_o how_o christ_n make_v our_o comfort_n to_o abound_v in_o our_o suffering_n for_o he_o 210_o the_o advantage_n of_o our_o suffer_v for_o christ_n 213_o our_o suffering_n for_o christ_n be_v for_o the_o church_n good_a 218_o 219_o
for_o the_o future_a consideration_n clear_v the_o truth_n 1._o though_o we_o have_v oft_o have_v experience_n of_o god_n goodness_n yet_o every_o new_a trouble_n be_v ready_a to_o startle_v we_o 2._o though_o the_o promise_n be_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o our_o trust_n yet_o experience_n do_v much_o promote_v faith_n 3._o it_o be_v a_o good_a way_n to_o keep_v the_o heart_n calm_a even_o to_o exercise_v trust_n in_o god_n for_o the_o future_a 4._o the_o future_a good_a thing_n that_o we_o be_v to_o trust_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o be_v both_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a object_n answer_n 1._o there_o be_v motive_n to_o trust_v in_o god_n from_o both_o the_o personal_a and_o general_a privilege_n of_o believer_n 2._o what_o be_v the_o opposite_n to_o trust_v in_o god_n 1._o presumption_n sign_n of_o presumption_n 1._o when_o we_o walk_v not_o by_o scripture-light_n 2._o when_o we_o be_v confident_a without_o a_o promise_n 3._o when_o we_o separate_v the_o mean_n from_o the_o end_n 4._o when_o we_o use_v false_a mean_n 5._o when_o we_o think_v by_o our_o own_o strength_n to_o obtain_v grace_n and_o glory_n 2._o despair_n whence_o despair_n arise_v 1._o from_o low_a thought_n of_o god_n as_o 1._o the_o power_n of_o god_n 2._o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n 3._o of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n 2._o from_o wrong_a apprehension_n about_o our_o sin_n 3._o this_o grace_n of_o trust_v in_o god_n can_v be_v expect_v to_o be_v perfect_a here_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n not_o to_o separate_v god_n power_n and_o goodness_n from_o the_o mean_v require_v how_o god_n and_o the_o creature_n work_v together_o 1._o all_o god_n spiritual_a mercy_n have_v many_o thing_n concurrent_a before_o they_o be_v accomplish_v 2._o the_o oppose_v of_o these_o requisite_n one_o against_o another_o have_v breed_v much_o confusion_n and_o error_n how_o we_o shall_v rely_v whole_o upon_o christ_n and_o yet_o make_v use_n of_o the_o mean_n and_o how_o we_o may_v know_v whether_o we_o do_v or_o no._n 1._o when_o we_o acknowledge_v whatsoever_o we_o have_v to_o come_v from_o christ_n 2._o when_o we_o attribute_v no_o merit_n or_o causality_n to_o the_o mean_n 3._o when_o we_o rest_v upon_o christ_n only_o for_o our_o justification_n 4._o when_o we_o put_v no_o trust_n or_o confidence_n in_o the_o mean_n 5._o we_o dishonour_v god_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o mean_n when_o we_o think_v we_o profit_v he_o thereby_o the_o most_o eminent_a in_o gift_n and_o grace_n need_v the_o prayer_n of_o their_o inferior_n reason_n 1._o because_o there_o be_v a_o more_o peculiar_a promise_n make_v to_o the_o prayer_n of_o many_o then_o one_o 2._o because_o the_o church_n in_o scripture_n be_v call_v a_o body_n who_o part_n stand_v in_o need_n one_o of_o another_o use_v people_n ought_v to_o pray_v for_o their_o spiritual_a guide_n consideration_n explain_v the_o truth_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o error_n of_o the_o socinian_o to_o say_v god_n command_v prayer_n only_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n 2._o no_o merit_n or_o confidence_n to_o be_v put_v in_o our_o prayer_n 3._o minister_n be_v to_o pray_v for_o their_o people_n and_o people_n for_o their_o minister_n 4._o this_o suppose_v the_o people_n to_o be_v both_o gift_a and_o gracious_a 5._o many_o thing_n there_o be_v which_o people_n be_v to_o desire_v of_o god_n for_o their_o ministor_n 1._o that_o they_o may_v be_v preserve_v 2._o that_o their_o word_n may_v be_v suceesfull_a 3._o that_o their_o gift_n and_o grace_n may_v be_v quicken_v 4._o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v whensoever_o we_o have_v receive_v mercy_n from_o god_n we_o be_v by_o praise_n and_o thankfulness_n to_o acknowledge_v then_o to_o he_o what_o be_v require_v to_o the_o praise_v of_o god_n 1._o a_o acknowledgement_n that_o god_n alone_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o our_o mercy_n 2._o both_o the_o general_a and_o particular_a act_n of_o faith_n 3._o love_n to_o god_n 4._o heavenly_a mindedness_n 5._o chearfulnes_n motive_n to_o praise_n god_n 1._o it_o be_v a_o excellent_a duty_n in_o that_o we_o be_v so_o backward_o to_o it_o 2._o it_o be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n 3._o it_o be_v a_o debt_n due_a to_o god_n 4._o the_o chief_a motive_n be_v thankfulness_n 5._o a_o thankful_a heart_n be_v the_o most_o proper_a disposition_n to_o gospel_n dispensation_n 6._o the_o neglect_n of_o this_o duty_n be_v a_o argument_n of_o a_o rot_a heart_n our_o ordinary_a temporal_a enjoyment_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 1._o the_o effect_n of_o natural_a cause_n be_v still_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n 2._o the_o comfort_n that_o flow_v from_o moral_a cause_n be_v still_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n 3._o what_o we_o receive_v from_o man_n it_o be_v still_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n 4._o whatsoever_o we_o have_v by_o the_o art_n and_o skill_n of_o other_o 5._o such_o thing_n as_o come_v upon_o we_o without_o our_o care_n reason_n why_o these_o be_v all_o god_n gift_n 1._o god_n be_v not_o necessitate_v to_o give_v they_o 2._o we_o have_v oft_o forseit_v they_o by_o our_o sin_n 3._o we_o be_v to_o pray_v to_o he_o for_o they_o not_o only_o personal_a but_o public_a prayer_n and_o praise_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n reason_n 1._o hereby_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n be_v more_o promote_v 2._o hereby_o our_o love_n to_o one_o another_o be_v much_o quicken_v 3._o god_n in_o a_o more_o especial_a manner_n present_v there_o 4._o herein_o the_o lively_a may_v prevail_v for_o the_o dull_a and_o indispose_v mercy_n vouch_v save_v to_o the_o minister_n be_v to_o be_v account_v as_o church_n mercy_n a_o holy_a rejoice_v and_o glory_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v lawful_a what_o be_v require_v to_o our_o glory_v in_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n we_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n 1._o a_o high_a esteem_n of_o our_o grace_n 2._o a_o certain_a persuasion_n that_o we_o have_v they_o 3._o good_a ground_n and_o scripture-demonstration_n thereof_o 4._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o what_o respect_n it_o be_v lawful_a thus_o to_o rejoice_v and_o glory_n 1._o as_o they_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o god_n favour_n 2._o as_o they_o bear_v up_o our_o heart_n against_o all_o accusation_n either_o external_a or_o internal_a wherein_o this_o rejoice_v be_v unlawful_a 1._o when_o we_o rejoice_v in_o our_o grace_n as_o if_o they_o be_v perfect_a 2._o when_o we_o so_o rejoice_v in_o they_o as_o so_o rest_n upon_o they_o 3._o when_o we_o rejoice_v in_o they_o as_o come_n from_o ourselves_o not_o god_n the_o witness_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n be_v great_a ground_n of_o comfort_n what_o be_v require_v to_o a_o good_a conscience_n 1._o that_o it_o witness_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o the_o help_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o word_n 3._o pure_a aim_n and_o intention_n 4._o inward_a sanctification_n what_o else_o be_v requisite_a to_o a_o well-regulated_n conscience_n 1._o the_o witness_v and_o seal_v power_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o our_o conscience_n how_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v not_o witness_v with_o our_o conscience_n how_o it_o do_v 1._o effective_o 2._o objective_o what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o our_o conscience_n be_v right_o guide_v in_o witness_v to_o we_o 1._o a_o purpose_n to_o leave_v all_o know_a sin_n 2._o a_o zeal_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n 3._o a_o holy_a confidence_n in_o our_o approaching_n unto_o god_n 4._o love_n to_o the_o brethren_n 5._o self-denial_n 6._o delight_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n distinction_n concern_v the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n 1._o it_o be_v either_o particular_a or_o general_a 2._o it_o witness_v either_o perfection_n or_o sincerity_n 3._o conscience_n be_v either_o habitual_o enable_v or_o actual_o prepare_v to_o testify_v 4._o the_o testimony_n of_o conscience_n be_v either_o alone_a or_o relate_v to_o christ_n a_o believer_n may_v be_v assure_v he_o perform_v duty_n with_o a_o upright_a heart_n what_o be_v require_v to_o a_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o our_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n 1._o a_o firm_a assent_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n promise_n and_o word_n 2._o a_o particular_a application_n of_o the_o promise_n to_o themselves_o what_o be_v require_v to_o a_o experimental_a discern_v of_o our_o grace_n 1._o a_o humble_a heart_n 2._o a_o regular_a disposition_n in_o the_o soul_n 3._o a_o holy_a fear_n 4._o the_o help_n of_o god_n spirit_n what_o be_v the_o hindrance_n which_o keep_v man_n from_o look_v after_o a_o assurance_n of_o their_o sincerity_n 1._o self-fulness_n and_o presumptuous_a security_n 2._o a_o profane_a careless_a spirit_n 3._o cark_n carefulness_n 4._o despair_v and_o discourage_v thought_n of_o god_n command_n to_o get_v assurance_n the_o effect_n of_o our_o soul_n 1._o a_o quiet_a heart_n 2._o spiritual_a
free_a mercy_n of_o god_n the_o apostate_n angel_n have_v not_o the_o least_o promise_n of_o any_o good_a to_o they_o so_o that_o be_v without_o a_o promise_n they_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n altogether_o miserable_a but_o the_o lord_n have_v a_o love_n to_o mankind_n do_v free_o and_o gracious_o make_v his_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o he_o all_o blessedness_n to_o those_o that_o be_v he_o insomuch_o that_o the_o spring_n of_o all_o our_o happiness_n be_v god_n promise_n we_o can_v plead_v any_o worthiness_n only_o thy_o promise_n lord_n that_o we_o put_v thou_o in_o mind_n of_o which_o be_v like_o the_o rainbow_n when_o god_n behold_v that_o he_o will_v not_o drown_v the_o world_n more_o and_o when_o god_n remember_v his_o covenant_n than_o he_o work_v all_o good_a for_o his_o people_n thus_o when_o god_n will_v delay_v his_o help_n no_o long_o but_o deliver_v his_o people_n groan_v under_o their_o oppression_n it_o be_v say_v god_n remember_v his_o covenant_n with_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n exod._n 2._o 24._o there_o be_v no_o natural_a necessity_n nor_o no_o moral_a necessity_n that_o can_v induce_v god_n to_o make_v these_o promise_n to_o we_o no_o natural_a necessity_n for_o god_n be_v a_o free_a agent_n and_o so_o do_v not_o as_o the_o bee_n that_o necessary_o make_v his_o honey_n god_n do_v not_o necessary_o communicate_v his_o goodness_n to_o we_o as_o god_n be_v a_o free_a agent_n so_o he_o be_v alsufficient_a he_o be_v perfect_a and_o bless_a in_o himself_o he_o need_v not_o man_n he_o want_v not_o his_o service_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v not_o upon_o this_o account_n make_v any_o promise_n but_o it_o be_v his_o mere_a voluntary_a goodness_n again_o there_o be_v no_o moral_a necessity_n that_o be_v there_o be_v no_o suppose_a worth_n or_o dignity_n in_o we_o for_o which_o it_o behove_v god_n to_o make_v such_o promise_n he_o find_v nothing_o in_o we_o but_o matter_n of_o his_o displeasure_n and_o wrath_n to_o we_o all_o the_o threaten_n in_o the_o law_n do_v belong_v and_o not_o one_o promise_n insomuch_o as_o the_o damn_a in_o hell_n have_v not_o any_o promise_n make_v to_o they_o they_o have_v not_o the_o least_o ground_n for_o any_o hope_n no_o not_o for_o a_o drop_n of_o water_n to_o relieve_v they_o in_o those_o scorch_a flame_n so_o it_o may_v be_v with_o every_o man_n if_o god_n grace_n do_v not_o interpose_v not_o any_o promise_n may_v have_v be_v make_v for_o thou_o to_o have_v the_o least_o dependence_n upon_o thus_o you_o see_v god_n mercy_n alone_o to_o be_v the_o grace_n ground_n of_o all_o promise_n five_o because_o god_n do_v this_o out_o of_o his_o mere_a bounty_n make_v a_o promise_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o we_o the_o fulfil_n of_o they_o be_v not_o of_o debt_n to_o we_o but_o from_o his_o grace_n and_o verity_n and_o thus_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o promise_n between_o man_n and_o man_n that_o be_v make_v in_o contract_n or_o otherwise_o there_o a_o promise_n be_v make_v but_o upon_o some_o consideration_n or_o work_n do_v which_o be_v equivalent_a to_o the_o thing_n promise_v but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o god_n he_o promise_v out_o of_o grace_n and_o fullfil_v it_o likewise_o out_o of_o grace_n thus_o when_o god_n have_v promise_v pardon_n to_o the_o humble_a sinner_n and_o believe_v not_o only_o the_o promise_n but_o the_o actual_a pardon_v be_v of_o grace_n neither_o be_v god_n by_o his_o promise_n become_v a_o debtor_n to_o we_o as_o if_o god_n will_v be_v unjust_a if_o he_o do_v not_o bestow_v such_o a_o privilege_n upon_o we_o but_o because_o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o can_v lie_v or_o he_o can_v deny_v himself_o so_o that_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o make_v good_a his_o promise_n be_v not_o because_o we_o have_v any_o condignity_n in_o ourselves_o to_o claim_v those_o thing_n but_o because_o he_o be_v immutable_a and_o unchangeable_a so_o that_o upon_o this_o account_n he_o make_v good_a his_o promise_n even_o because_o he_o be_v god_n and_o can_v lie_v or_o change_v his_o mind_n therefore_o divine_v speak_v well_o of_o a_o twofold_a debitum_fw-la about_o god_n promise_n debitum_fw-la fidelitatis_fw-la and_o debitum_fw-la justitiae_fw-la a_o debt_n of_o fidelity_n and_o a_o debt_n of_o justice_n when_o god_n make_v a_o promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o a_o godly_a man_n he_o may_v urge_v god_n with_o his_o promise_n and_o there_o be_v a_o debt_n of_o fidelity_n whereby_o god_n have_v engage_v himself_o to_o do_v this_o but_o we_o can_v say_v god_n be_v a_o debtor_n to_o man_n hereby_o no_o he_o be_v a_o debtor_n as_o it_o be_v to_o himself_o he_o can_v go_v against_o his_o own_o word_n his_o truth_n will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o change_v but_o in_o no_o respect_n must_v we_o say_v he_o be_v a_o debtor_n to_o man_n reddis_fw-la debita_fw-la nulli_fw-la debens_fw-la it_o be_v say_v of_o old_a this_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o so_o under_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v to_o we_o we_o may_v not_o look_v upon_o ourselves_o but_o god_n promise_v only_o but_o then_o there_o be_v a_o debt_n of_o justice_n and_o righteousness_n and_o herein_o many_o papist_n be_v proud_a and_o arrogant_a for_o they_o distinguish_v of_o god_n promise_n those_o that_o be_v for_o the_o first_o grace_n and_o those_o that_o be_v for_o the_o second_o and_o after_o grace_n they_o grant_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o first_o grace_n to_o be_v only_o from_o a_o debt_n of_o fidelity_n but_o then_o for_o the_o second_o grace_n they_o maintain_v a_o debt_n of_o justice_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o conclude_v that_o heaven_n and_o salvation_n though_o we_o have_v it_o by_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n yet_o it_o be_v by_o debt_n of_o justice_n and_o not_o mere_a grace_n hence_o we_o read_v of_o a_o die_a monk_n who_o blasphemous_o utter_v these_o word_n red_a mihi_fw-la domine_fw-la vitam_fw-la aeternam_fw-la quam_fw-la debes_fw-la sive_fw-la velis_fw-la sive_fw-la nolis_fw-la but_o a_o gracious_a heart_n can_v but_o tremble_v at_o such_o arrogancy_n it_o be_v true_a paul_n call_v god_n a_o righteous_a judge_n who_o will_v give_v he_o a_o crown_n of_o glory_n and_o he_o tell_v the_o hebrew_n that_o god_n be_v not_o unrighteous_a to_o forget_v their_o labour_n of_o love_n heb._n 6._o 10._o but_o righteousness_n be_v not_o here_o take_v strict_o for_o proper_a justice_n but_o for_o fidelity_n and_o faithfulness_n if_o god_n shall_v not_o give_v heaven_n to_o his_o people_n who_o endure_v persecution_n for_o his_o name_n sake_n he_o will_v go_v against_o his_o own_o nature_n he_o will_v deny_v his_o truth_n and_o so_o even_o cease_v to_o be_v god_n not_o that_o he_o will_v be_v unjust_a proper_o to_o man_n as_o if_o man_n by_o do_v or_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o his_o sake_n do_v that_o which_o be_v equivalent_a to_o eternal_a glory_n we_o see_v the_o apostle_n defy_v this_o 2_o cor._n 4._o 17._o calling_n it_o but_o a_o light_a affliction_n and_o for_o a_o moment_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o eternal_a weight_n of_o glory_n and_o aristotle_n observe_v that_o there_o can_v be_v justice_n or_o righteousness_n between_o we_o and_o the_o god_n and_o our_o parent_n for_o their_o be_v no_o equality_n and_o we_o owe_v all_o to_o they_o and_o as_o durand_n well_o argue_v it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o justice_n or_o righteousness_n that_o we_o may_v claim_v glory_n that_o the_o more_o grace_n god_n have_v give_v we_o to_o prepare_v thereunto_o the_o more_o we_o be_v behold_v to_o he_o and_o can_v the_o less_o plead_v for_o ourselves_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o we_o receive_v of_o his_o grace_n so_o that_o the_o more_o gracious_a act_n we_o do_v we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o merit_v that_o we_o be_v the_o more_o oblige_v to_o god_n yet_o sixthly_a lest_o because_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v fullfil_v of_o his_o conditional_a grace_n only_o and_o because_o all_o work_n of_o we_o be_v reject_v as_o causal_n and_o meritorious_a we_o shall_v fall_v into_o antinomianisin_n and_o fancy_n to_o ourselves_o such_o absolute_a and_o irrespective_a promise_n that_o though_o abide_v and_o wallow_v in_o our_o sin_n yet_o we_o may_v think_v it_o lawful_a to_o run_v to_o they_o as_o to_o a_o city_n of_o refuge_n and_o there_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o our_o sin_n we_o must_v know_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n absolute_a and_o conditional_a absolute_a and_o such_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n for_o the_o work_n of_o our_o first_o grace_n in_o we_o of_o conversion_n and_o take_v away_o the_o heart_n of_o stone_n from_o we_o of_o which_o promise_v the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n and_o ezechiet_n speak_v though_o some_o will_v not_o allow_v those_o to_o be_v promise_n
but_o prediction_n yet_o the_o very_a tenor_n of_o they_o do_v evidence_n it_o now_o these_o do_v not_o suppose_v but_o work_v all_o condition_n and_o qualification_n in_o we_o for_o other_o mercy_n for_o it_o will_v be_v absurd_a to_o say_v god_n promise_v to_o give_v we_o faith_n if_o we_o do_v believe_v or_o to_o renew_v and_o change_v our_o will_n if_o we_o will_v these_o absolute_a promise_n than_o be_v the_o execution_n of_o his_o decree_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n upon_o the_o elect._n but_o then_o there_o be_v conditional_a promise_n and_o such_o be_v the_o promise_n of_o pardon_n to_o the_o believer_n of_o eternal_a glory_n to_o he_o that_o be_v godly_a only_o you_o must_v know_v that_o they_o be_v condition_n only_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n they_o be_v more_o proper_o call_v qualification_n and_o determination_n of_o those_o who_o be_v thus_o to_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v faith_n indeed_o in_o our_o justification_n have_v a_o peculiar_a notion_n of_o be_v a_o instrument_n or_o supernatural_a mean_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o christ_n and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v call_v a_o condition_n when_o we_o speak_v exact_o you_o see_v then_o that_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n for_o licentiousness_n and_o dissoluteness_n to_o venture_v all_o upon_o the_o gracious_a promise_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v determine_v and_o specify_v by_o such_o qualification_n who_o shall_v have_v either_o pardon_n here_o or_o salvation_n hereafter_o only_o you_o must_v know_v that_o when_o we_o call_v they_o conditional_a promise_n the_o meaning_n be_v not_o as_o if_o we_o have_v power_n of_o our_o own_o to_o fulfil_v these_o condition_n and_o so_o the_o promise_n remain_v suspense_n till_o we_o perform_v they_o no_o these_o condition_n we_o be_v enable_v to_o accomplish_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n they_o be_v his_o gift_n as_o well_o as_o our_o duty_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o condition_n require_v of_o we_o which_o also_o we_o be_v not_o enable_v unto_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o all_o may_v glory_v in_o god_n grace_n and_o not_o in_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o god_n have_v appoint_v a_o order_n between_o his_o gracious_a gift_n this_o goddess_n be_v for_o happiness_n holiness_n be_v for_o glory_n faith_n be_v for_o justification_n and_o if_o we_o speak_v exact_o we_o can_v so_o well_o say_v god_n promise_n be_v conditional_a as_o the_o thing_n promise_v may_v be_v condition_n to_o one_o another_o by_o god_n appointment_n last_o there_o may_v be_v good_a reason_n assign_v why_o god_n be_v please_v thus_o to_o promise_v faith_n he_o may_v have_v give_v and_o never_o have_v make_v any_o promise_n at_o all_o but_o before_o he_o be_v please_v to_o bestow_v the_o actual_a benefit_n he_o be_v please_v to_o give_v we_o many_o sure_a and_o gracious_a promise_n that_o he_o will_v do_v such_o thing_n for_o we_o in_o time_n the_o reason_n may_v be_v first_o because_o hereby_o god_n will_v exercise_v our_o faith_n and_o teach_v we_o to_o live_v upon_o he_o only_o for_o when_o we_o can_v see_v any_o possibility_n in_o second_o cause_n when_o they_o with_o sarah_n have_v a_o dead_a womb_n yet_o because_o of_o god_n promise_v we_o shall_v keep_v up_o our_o heart_n as_o abraham_n do_v why_o be_v it_o then_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v in_o no_o more_o esteem_n and_o request_n with_o we_o be_v it_o not_o for_o they_o how_o many_o time_n may_v thy_o heart_n break_v yea_o to_o put_v our_o faith_n to_o great_a experiment_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o though_o he_o have_v promise_v such_o thing_n yet_o his_o providence_n seem_v to_o cross_v all_o and_o after_o god_n promise_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o israelite_n deliverance_n all_o thing_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o unlikely_a than_o before_o a_o second_o reason_n for_o i_o shall_v instance_n in_o no_o more_o may_v be_v to_o teach_v we_o humility_n humility_n and_o thankfulness_n acknowledge_v god_n promise_v alone_a to_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o the_o good_a we_o enjoy_v by_o the_o promise_n we_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o promise_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o promise_n we_o be_v glorify_v we_o be_v what_o we_o be_v only_o by_o the_o promise_n hence_o all_o the_o godly_a be_v say_v with_o isaac_n to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o promise_n gal._n 4._o 28._o by_o the_o promise_n we_o have_v our_o spiritual_a be_v and_o by_o the_o promise_n we_o be_v preserve_v in_o it_o but_o this_o deserve_v more_o improvement_n serm._n cxxv_o a_o further_a discovery_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o sort_n of_o god_n promise_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 20._o for_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n yea_o and_o amen_o etc._n etc._n our_o work_n be_v to_o enlarge_v more_o upon_o this_o useful_a and_o necessary_a subject_n viz._n elical_a the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o may_v give_v in_o division_n of_o the_o promise_n or_o the_o distribution_n of_o they_o as_o there_o be_v legal_a promise_n and_o evangelical_n promise_v the_o ignorant_a confusion_n whereof_o have_v cause_v much_o mischief_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o legal_a promise_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n contain_v in_o that_o expression_n do_v this_o and_o live_v for_o as_o they_o be_v curse_v who_o continue_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o law_n require_v so_o again_o they_o be_v bless_v and_o eternal_a life_n be_v promise_v to_o all_o such_o who_o perfect_o obey_v the_o law_n of_o god_n by_o this_o promise_n god_n deal_v with_o adam_n and_o although_o god_n never_o transact_v with_o man_n when_o fall_v by_o this_o way_n of_o promise_n yet_o he_o be_v please_v to_o have_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n in_o its_o full_a perfection_n manifest_v to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n but_o in_o a_o evangelical_n intention_n that_o so_o the_o israelite_n be_v humble_v under_o their_o utter_a impotency_n and_o inability_n ever_o to_o perform_v it_o may_v make_v their_o earnest_a application_n unto_o christ_n for_o help_v and_o succour_v for_o what_o be_v impossible_a by_o the_o law_n through_o our_o weakness_n christ_n make_v possible_a through_o his_o obedience_n now_o this_o legal_a promise_n the_o jew_n general_o attend_v unto_o neglect_v the_o evangelical_n consideration_n of_o promise_n in_o christ_n the_o promise_n to_o work_n make_v unto_o adam_n be_v not_o intend_v in_o this_o text_n they_o be_v not_o yea_o and_o amen_o see_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o mediator_n if_o adam_n have_v not_o fall_v only_o now_o all_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n become_v firm_a and_o sure_a in_o he_o but_o natural_o we_o regard_v the_o legal_a promise_n more_o than_o evangelical_n what_o labour_n do_v the_o apostle_n show_v to_o bring_v the_o jew_n off_o from_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o whence_o be_v that_o pharisaical_a and_o popish_a principle_n of_o self-righteousnesse_n but_o because_o we_o trust_v in_o our_o work_n and_o not_o in_o the_o promise_n so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o excellent_a proficiency_n in_o christianity_n when_o person_n be_v take_v off_o from_o be_v legal_a to_o be_v evangelical_n when_o they_o do_v not_o slavish_o rely_v upon_o their_o work_n do_v but_o filial_o depend_v upon_o the_o promise_n the_o apostle_n do_v excellent_o and_o at_o large_a declare_v the_o difference_n between_o these_o two_o galat._n 3._o and_o 4._o chapter_n it_o be_v strange_a that_o any_o shall_v desire_v to_o be_v under_o the_o law_n rather_o than_o the_o promise_n yet_o all_o pharisaical_a justiciaries_n be_v propense_a that_o way_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o desire_v to_o be_v under_o a_o curse_n and_o perpetual_a malediction_n whereas_o the_o evangelical_n promise_n be_v like_o the_o city_n of_o refuge_n to_o the_o pursue_a malefactor_n it_o be_v better_a than_o jonah_n gourd_n against_o the_o scorch_a heat_n of_o god_n wrath_n because_o of_o sin_n for_o no_o worm_n can_v arise_v and_o consume_v this_o so_o that_o the_o evangelical_n promise_v be_v whole_o of_o freegrace_n god_n thereby_o pardon_v we_o free_o sanctify_v we_o free_o justify_v we_o free_o be_v like_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n flow_v with_o milk_n and_o honey_n it_o be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d be_v promise_n that_o every_o humble_a sinner_n must_v look_v as_o the_o israelite_n sting_v do_v upon_o the_o brazen_a srepent_v let_v therefore_o the_o people_n of_o god_n look_v more_o to_o the_o promise_n without_o they_o they_o poreupon_o their_o own_o heart_n they_o perplex_v themselves_o with_o many_o doubt_n and_o fear_n but_o if_o thou_o do_v consider_v what_o a_o evangelical_n promise_n mean_v this_o will_v be_v like_o oil_n pour_v into_o thy_o wound_n when_o temptation_n aggravate_v by_o satan_n have_v leave_v thou_o not_o so_o much_o half_a dead_a as_o half_o damn_v in_o the_o next_o place_n promise_n be_v divide_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o